(logo)
(navigation image)
Home American Libraries | Canadian Libraries | Universal Library | Open Source Books | Project Gutenberg | Biodiversity Heritage Library | Children's Library | Additional Collections

Search: Advanced Search

Anonymous User (login or join us)Upload
See other formats

Full text of "The Canadian Militia : a history of the origin and development of the Force"

, oq 71 C 

or THE LAM ADI AM 



Entered according to Act of the Parliament of Canada, in 

tht- iifnr Xinetet n Hit mired and St> fti, nt the Depart 
ment of Agriculture, di/ Lou its M . Fre&cn 




THE HONOURABLE SIR F. W. BORDKN-, K.C.M.G., M.D., M.P. 
Minister of Militia since July 13th, 1896. 



he Canadian Militia 



A HISTORY OF THE ORIGIN AND DEVELOPMENT OF THE FORCE 



by 

Captain Ernest J. Chambers 

(Corps of Guides) 



Author of the histories of The 1st Prince of Wales Regiment; The 3rd (Montreal) Field Battery, The 2nd Queen s Own Rifles; The Montreal 
Highland Cadet Battalion; The Governor General s Body Guards; The I Oth Royal Grenadiers; 1 he 43rd Duke of Cornwall s 
Own Rifles; The 5th Royal Highlanders of Canada ; "Le 65me Carabiniers Mont Royal "; The Royal North- 
West Mounted Police; The 90th Winnipeg Rifles, Etc. Etc. 



L. M. FRESCO. - MONTREAL 
Publisher 



TABLE OF CONTENTS 



PAGE 

7 



PREFACE. . 

CHAPTER I. THE CANADIAN MILITIA OF THE FRENCH REGIME . 

CHAPTER II. THE CHANGE OF FLAGS AND TRANSFER OF ALLEGIANCE. -Military Rule in Canada. - 
The First British Canadian Militia 



CHAPTER III. SIR GUY CARLETON S MILITIA AND VOLUNTEERS. 



20 



CHAPTER IV. THE UPPER CANADA MILITIA. The Original Organization under Governor Simcoe.- 
The War of 1812 and The Rebellion of 1837-38 . . 

CHAPTER V. THE MILITIA OF LOWER CANADA. The Principles of the French Militia System 
Retained. The Royal Canadian Volunteers. Lower Canadian Militia and Volunteer Corps 
of 1812-14 and 1837. The Militia a Butt of Political Discord . 

CHAPTER VI. THE MILITIA OF UNITED CANADA. The Mother Country While Conceding Self 
Government to Canada Expects Her to do More in Her Own Defence. The Trent Affair and 
Fenian Raids.-The Militia Becomes a National Defensive Force Instead of a Mere Auxiliary to 

ft -t 

the Regular Army .............. 

7\ 

CHAPTER VII. THE MARITIME PROVINCE MILITIA... 



CHAPTER V11L MILITIA OF THE DOMINION. The First Dominion Militia Act and Amending 
Legislation. -The Fenian Raids of 1870 and 1871. The Red River Expeditions. The North 
west Rebellion and The South African War.-Canada s Defensive Force Emerges From The 

87 
Experimental Stage .............................. 

CHAPTER IX. RECENT DEVELOPMENTS. The Canadian Militia Becomes an Effective Army With 
Its Own Staff and Departmental Organizations And Arsenals.-Canada Assume. The Whole 
Responsibility of Keeping the Union Jack Flying in North America.-Departnre of the Last 
British Regulars. . . . .............. 



PREFACE 



THE remarkable progress made by Canada during the past eight or ten years 
in the development of her natural resources, in the extension of her domestic 
industries and in the expansion of her internal and foreign commerce, has 
been accompanied by a development of wholesome national military spirit and by 
an expansion of the defensive force of the Dominion just as noteworthy and 
unquestionably just as essential to the continued prosperity and happiness of 
the inhabitants of the Dominion as a people. 

IJThe sound, sober military spirit which permeates the loyal and patriotic popula 
tion of Canada is unquestionably one of the most valuable assets of this great 
country. History proves beyond all cavil that the continued possession of a ster 
ling military spirit is absolutely essential to the preservation of the liberty, the 
material prosperity, the higher standards of moral and religious life, and the true 
happiness of nations. Ancient empires like Assyria, Babylonia. Egypt, Phoenicia 
and Lydia. only succumbed when the virile military spirit which had established 
their prosperity and glory was extinguished. When the Lydians, during a momen 
tary revival of national military spirit, endeavored to throw off the Persian yoke, 
Cyrus (559-531 B.C.) decided that the subjugation of the proud race should be 
crushing and final. He did not lay the rebellious country waste nor put its people 
to the sword. The Lydians were fabulously rich, so much so that the name of their 
king Croesus to this day stands as a synonym for vast wealth. Cyrus, who com 
bined the wisdom of a philosopher with the skill and courage of a mighty con 
queror, decided that the national wealth of the Lydians coupled with the oblitera 
tion of the military spirit prevailing among them should be made to work the 
nation s death. They were deprived of their arms and all trophies and monuments 
recalling past military glories. They were forbidden to practice military evolutions 
or anything resembling them, and were actually compelled to live in the idle enjoy 
ment of the wealth they possessed, in order that the race might become demora 
lized and effeminate. This policy soon accomplished its purpose. 

fThanks to the oft-recurring outbreaks of unfriendliness among sections of the 
people of the neighbouring but not always neighbourly republic, and to the deep- 
rooted determination of the Canadian people, begotten of their royalist stock, to 
preserve inviolate at all costs the territory of Canada as the home of British par 
liamentary institutions and the ark of true freedom in North America, there has 
always been more or less military spirit in this country, and the existence of 
the Canadian Militia, even during the periods of most pronounced neglect, has 
done not a little to foster and nourish it. 

IThe South African War stimulated the military spirit in Canada as it had not 
been for years; and in demonstrating the mighty scope which existed for co 
operation between the Mother Country and her daughter nations in defence of 
the Empire, at once raised the Canadian Militia from the level of a mere auxiliary 
of the regular army, liable to be called upon to furnish men. and perhaps a few 
selected officers, in cases of local emergency, to the status of a powerful and 
necessary unit of the Imperial defensive force. 

IfThe Canadian people and the Canadian Militia have manfully assumed the 
increased responsibility, and the intervening few years have seen an incompletely 
organized, a poorly supported, and an oft -neglected militia transformed into an 
effective army with a carefully selected and trained staff, with modern armaments 
and equipment, and with its own arsenals, maga/ines and departments. 



PREFACE Continued 

t And Canada, possessing, as her oft-tried loyalty well warrants, the absolute con 
fidence of the Mother Country, has dutifully and proudly assumed the full respon 
sibility of keeping the flagof the Empire flying in the northern half of this continent. 
The last soldier on the pay rolls of His Majesty s regular army has left Canadian 
soil. 

1 A new epoch in the history of the Canadian forces has been reached, and the time 
seems opportune for taking a glance backward and for reviewing the various stages of 
the development of the Canadian Militia. It might now, more correctly, be styled 
the Canadian Army. 

fFor many years the writer has had in contemplation the production of a volume 
or series of volumes giving, in comprehensive detail, a record of the origin, develop 
ment and services of the Canadian Militia, and he hopes yet to carry out that idea. 
When he was first approached by the publishers of this book and invited to under- 
take the writing of it, he hesitated somewhat, as the time and space placed at his 
disposal were limited; but realizing that the volume proposed could hardly fail 
to be of immediate practical use to his comrades of the militia and others in 
terested, for a book of the kind has been long needed, he agreed to do the work. 

{The Minister of Militia, Sir Frederick Borden, had been already interviewed by 
the publishers and kindly expressed his approval. He also most courteously 
promised the writer that any departmental information he required should be 
placed at his disposal. 

IfOn account of the lack of space at his command the author found that it was 
impossible in this volume to give more than a passing notice to the campaigns of 
the Militia, deeming it of more practical importance to trace the development 
of the force and to record the successive changes which have taken place in its 
organization and internal administration. 

f Thanks have to be accorded to Doctors De Celles and Griffin, Librarians of Parlia 
ment, and to their staff of the Parliamentary Library, Ottawa, more particularly 
to Lieut. -Colonel A. H. Todd and Messrs. Sylvain and MacCormae; to Dr. Arthur 
Doughty. C.M.G., Dominion Archivist; to Colonel F. L. Lessard, Adjutant-General 
of Militia; to Colonel D. A. MacDonald, Quartermaster-General; to J. W. Borden, 
Accountant and Paymaster-General; to Major R. J. Wicksteed, author of a most 
interesting pamphlet on the militia (1875); to Mr. Lane, Librarian of the Militia 
Department ; to Major Irving, of the Canadian Military Institute, Toronto, and 
to a large number of military and literary friends who have placed material 
and pictures at the author s disposition. 

TfThere is in the Dominion Archives a veritable mine of invaluable information 
with reference to the infancy of the Canadian defensive force, and it must be a 
subject for congratulation to all interested in the force to know that this material 
is being so skilfully and carefully arranged that it will be directly and usefully avail 
able to them. In the preparation of the following pages the Archives have been 
largely drawn upon and so have the annual reports of the Militia Department, 
parliamentary papers and the Hansards of the Senate and House of Commons. 

ERNEST J. CHAMBERS. 
o Dalv Ave., Ottawa, .hilv 1. 1907. 














CHAPTER I 



THE CANADIAN MILITIA OF THE FRENCH REGIME 



ALTHOUGH as it at present exists, the Canadian 
.Militia* system bears the impress of the 
influences of the old militia organizations of 
Kngland rather than that of those of Xew France, 
there are many points of connection entitling; the 
present Militia of the Dominion of Canada to 
claim some sort of relationship to the gallant 
Canadian Militia of the French Regime. The 
Act of Capitulation of Montreal, cancelling the 
authority of the King of France in Canada, of 
course voided, or to be more accurate, for the capitu 
lation, was subject to subsequent treaty, suspended 
that sovereign s commissions in the colon}-, including 
those of the officers of Militia. But the ink upon the 
document in question was scarcely dry before the 
British authorities provided for the recommissioning 
of such of the militia officers as would take the oath 
of allegiance. True, the object of the British was to 
obtain the services of the officers of the old Canadian 
Militia in their civil rather than in their military 
capacities. But it was the old militia organization 
which was temporarily revived under British auth 
ority, nevertheless. After the formal cession by treaty 
of Canada to Britain the French commissions were 
cancelled by ordinance, but the authorities appear to 
have availed themselves of the good offices of the 
militia captains, and it \vas the}- who were relied upon 
to raise and command the first British Canadian 



armed force raised in Montreal, Quebec and Three 
Rivers in 1764 for use in the operations against the 
western Indians. Similarly it was the oflicers of the 
old French militia who raised and officered the most 
of the volunteer corps which served, not only in re 
pelling the American invasion of 1775-76. but rendered 
good service with the Loyalist armies during the 
[evolutionary campaigns in what is now the United 
States. And when the first colonial acts respecting 
the organization of a militia under the British rule 
were drafted the militia laws and practices of the old 
regime were taken into consideration and had a 
marked effect on the legislation in question. As to 
the personnel of the first Canadian militia under 
British rule, the muster rolls of that period could be 
easily mistaken for those of the splendid but poorly 
appreciated militia that rendered such fine service 
under Montcalm and de Levis. so many of the officers 
who had fought so valiantly to uphold the fleurs-de- 
lys, accepting similar appointments under the Union 
Jack. To all effects and purposes the first Canadian 
militia organized under the British regime was the 
same body as had served the Bourbons so well before 
the Capitulation of .Montreal. 

Few people realize what a powerful force the militia 
of the old French colony was. The year of the first 
battk 1 of the Plains of Abraham. 1759. Montreal con 
tained 4,000 inhabitants, and yet the militia organi/a- 



*The word "militia" (from the Latin mile*, a soldier) is s;eiierally con 
sidered by cni vr!opedi-ts and historians a* meaning that portion of the 
military strength of a nation enrolled for discipline and insrruction, (nit 
local in its organization, and e-ma^cd in active service only in case of emer 
gency, The organized national reserve in fact. Clearly, from the derivation 
of the word, this present acknowledged m aniim \va^ not its orimnal one. 
and we know from parliamentary history that old Kmrlish representatives 



in the House of Commons, reali/im: the national dread of military dictator 
ship, objected to the application of the term "militia" to the constitutional 
and popular l>r;tneh of the defensive forces of the country. In the srencraUy 
accepti d s--nse referred to the term is now a misn mler applied to the 
defensive force of Canada, for what we call the "Act ive Militia" is the Domin 
ion s first line of defence, and includes- a force (small it is mie\ of perman 
ently embodied troops regulars \\itli a complete permanent staff. 



8 



tion of the province was so perfect, that Montreal 
alone had a militia force of about 1,000 men on service 
in the field. This enrollment of such a large pro 
portion of the population was accomplished by the 
aid of the Feudal law of Fiefs. 

Under the French Militia Ordinances, based upon 
this law, every man in the colony, the clergy and 
noblesse excepted, was required to enroll himself 
in the militia. The military administrative organiza 
tion in each district, outside of Quebec, where the 
colonial administration was located, consisted of a 
Governor, a Lieutenant du Roi and a Town Major, 
all under salary. In every parish there was a Captain 
of Militia, responsible for the drill and good order of 
his men, while the seigneurs were generally commis 
sioned as colonels. The Governors, in cases of 
emergency, decided what quotas were required from 
each seigniory and town and forwarded a requisition 
therefor to the Town Majors and Seigneurs. These 
officials in turn decided upon the strength of the 
quotas of the various parishes, and requisitioned 
the Captains of Militia therefor, the Captains raising 
the men by a draft, and marching them under escort 
into the nearest town where the Town Major fur 
nished each militiaman with arms and clothing. 

Many duties of a civil nature in connection with 
the administration of the law, the regulation of statute 
labour, and the making and maintenance of roads, 
bridges and other public utilities were imposed upon 
the Captains of Militia, these useful officials being 
compensated for their services in time of peace by 
grants of powder and ball. At least from the year 
1754 until the Capitulation of Montreal every parish 
was a garrison, commanded by a Captain of Militia, 
whose authority was not only acknowledged but 
rigidly enforced. From the date first mentioned 
until the appearance of Saunders fleet in the St. Law 
rence, the militia of Quebec, Montreal and Three 
Rivers was frequently exercised, the Quebec militia 
including a carefully trained artillery company which 
performed good service during the siege. 

The clothing supplied the militiaman can scarcely 
be described as a uniform. At the embodiment of the 
levies the Town Mayor furnished each militiaman 
with ;i gun, a capote, a Canadian cloak, a breech 
clout, a cotton shirt, a cap, a pair of leggings, 
a pair of Indian shoes and a blanket. The old 
Canadian militiaman during the French regime 
must certainly have looked more serviceable than 
soldierly, particularly to the critical eyes of those 
used to the prim, tight-laced soldiers of those days. 
Hut he showed in the field and forest that he could 
do the work required of him. 

10 



After receiving their equipments, the militiamen 
were marched to the garrison for which they were 
destined. The French authorities do not appear to 
have made any serious attempt, apart from the case 
of the Quebec artillery company, to make trained line 
soldiers or artillerymen out of the militia. They pre 
ferred to rely upon the smart professional soldiers 
of the Carignan, Languedoc, Bearne, Guienne 
La Sarre, Berry and Royal Roussillon regiments 
and the Troupes de la " Marine" for the line of battle, 
leaving to the militia the just as dangerous, and con 
sidering the country, just as important, functions of 
partisans and bushrangers. As the country was not 
suitable for cavalry, tho commanders depended largely 
upon the militia for the important duties of the scouting 
and intelligence service. Consequently, while clothing 
the peasant soldiery in a fashion as much unlike the 
military uniform of the day as anything well could be, 
the French officers made no attempt to instill into the 
ranks of the militia any idea of drill and discipline 
beyond such as was necessary to secure a fair show of 
order while on the march. The employment as scouts 
and skirmishers was congenial to the warlike race, 
and they readily came forward whenever the war drum 
sounded. 

Sometimes the old French Canadian militia dressed 
exactly like their Indian allies. Some of the Canadian 
prisoners captured in affairs of outposts during Wolfe s 
siege of Quebec were naked, with their bodies daubed 
with red and blue paint, and with bunches of painted 
feathers in their hair. According to Parkman, they 
were said to use the scalping knife as freely as the 
Indians, in which respect they resembled the New 
England Rangers. 

The old French militia was, according to War- 
burton, generally reviewed once or twice a year for 
the inspection of their arms; that of Quebec was 
frequently exercised, and the artillery company at 
tached thereto was very efficient. 

During the Anglo-Indian French war, says Rogers 
in his "Rise of Canada," in 1754 to be exact, when 
the English American colonists had determined upon 
the four expeditions against Crown Point, Niagara 
and the French fortresses in Nova Scotia and on the 
Ohio, the Marquis du Quesne, then Governor of 
Canada, organized the militia of Quebec and Montreal; 
minutely inspected and disciplined the militia of the 
seigniories, and atctahed considerable bodies of regular 
artillery to every garrison. When the Marquis de 
Vaudreuil do Cavagnac arrived in 1775 to succeed 
du Quesne, he found all Canada in arms. 

The French governors undoubtedly appreciated 



the value of the force, and when the last decisive 
struggle was impending, at the close of the year 1758, 
the Marquis de Vaudreuil issued a proclamation to the 
officers of the Canadian militia to excite their zeal 
and quicken their activity in preparations for resist 
ance. "Notwithstanding our glorious successes," said 
he, "the state of the colony is perilous. No time must 
be lost in organizing our defence." He then directed 
that all the male inhabitants of the province, from 
sixteen to sixty years of age, should be enrolled in the 
militia, and should remain hi readiness to march at a 
moment s notice. The Captains of militia faithfully 
endeavoured to comply with these orders, but the 
habitants showed some disinclination to leave their 
farms. In many cases the levies, under the law of 
universal conscription, were carried out to the letter, 
sections of the country remained waste, and eventually 
the country was involved in a state of absolute famine. 
On the occasion of this last appeal of the French 
governor there was really a magnificent response, for, 
at the time of the conquest, according to British 
official returns, the effective militiamen of the colony 
numbered 20,433 men, divided among the military 
districts as follows: Quebec, 64 companies or 7,976 
men; Three Rivers, 19 companies, 1,115 men; Mont 
real, 87 companies, 7,331 men. 

The "Troupes de la Marine," which formed the 
permanent military establishment of Canada, might 
be described as forming a part temporarily of the French 
Colonial militia. Francis I arkman, in his pre-eminently 
interesting and accurate volumes "Montcalm and 
Wolfe," speaking of this force says: "Though at 
tached to the naval department they served on land, 
and were employed as a police within the limits of 
the colony, or as garrisons of the outlying forts, where 
their officers busied themselves more with fur trading 
than with their military duties. Thus they had 
become ill-disciplined and inefficient, till the hard 
hand of du Quesne restored them to order. They 
originally consisted of twenty-eight independent com 
panies, increased in 1750 to thirty companies, at first 
of fifty, and afterwards of sixty-five men each, form 
ing a total of 1,950 rank and file. In March 1757, ten 
more companies were added. They wore white uni 
forms of similar pattern to the line regiments, but with 
black facings." 

The colonies, in fact, were administered by the French 
Department of Marine, which maintained an army of its 
own, distinct from the Royal Army, for colonial service. 
The officers of this service while on duty in Canada 
signed themselves "Captain" or "Lieutenant," as 
the case may be, "of a company of the troops detached 
from the Marine, in Canada." 



And, now, as to the origin of the French Militia in 
Canada. Practically all of the first settlers, except 
the priests, were soldiers, and equipped to do duty as 
such. 

Courage and self-sacrifice were required on behalf of 
all concerned to maintain the little colony. Pestilence 
and famine, the prowling savage, and the treacherous 
courtier, combined to endanger the very existence of 
the settlements; but the brave colonists, undaunted, 
worked out the salvation of themselves and of New 
France. The annals of this heroic period of Canadian 
history have a peculiar fascination for the reader. 

The population of the colony did not extend very 
rapidly during its earliest years, but the geographical 
bounds of its commercial activity increased tre 
mendously. Although the population of New France, 
as compared with that of the English, Dutch and 
Spanish colonies along the Atlantic seaboard, was 
insignificant, the hardy pioneers of the colony on the 
banks of the St. Lawrence pursued their explorations 
completely around, and well beyond the spheres of in 
fluence of all rival colonies. New France had the 
great advantage which Canada has to-day, of the 
greatest inland waterway in the world, and so it came 
that the Mississippi, the western prairies, and the 
distant Rocky Mountains were discovered and first 
explored by parties from this colony. 

With the extension of the colony a purely commercial 
element sprang up and developed, with other matters 
to engage their attention than defence. The import 
ance of that question could not be overlooked by the 
authorities, and we find as early as 1627 the first legal 
enactment imposing military responsibility on the 
population at large. On the date mentioned an order 
was issued that all the male inhabitants of Port Royal 
(now Annapolis, N.S.) were required to assist the 
soldiers in garrison duty if needed. In 1648 mention 
is made of the organization of some of the inhabitants 
in Acadia and along the St. Lawrence into companies. 

In 1649 the first call upon the inhabitants for actual 
militia service appears to have been made. The whole 
male population of the colony did not exceed 1,000 
men, yet fifty men were called out and placed under 
arms to assist in repelling one of the ever-recurring 
Iroquois attacks. That same year 100 volunteers were 
called out as a "camp volant" to patrol the country 
between Montreal and Three Rivers, and this service 
appears to have been maintained continuously until 
1651. In 1653 was organized a sort of volunteer corps 
of 63 men, known as the "Fraternit6 de la Tres Sainte 
Merge." In 1664 the whole male population of Mont 
real able to bear arms was enrolled as volunteers as a 
precaution on account of threatened Indian troubles. 



11 



And similar precautions were doubtless taken in the 
other settlements. 

A strong military element was about this time 
bodily incorporated in the population of Canada. 
When the Marquis de Tracy arrived to take over the 
duties of Viceroy in 1664, he brought with him as 
settlers the then newly disbanded regiment of Carignan- 
Sallieres, which had returned to France after fighting 
the Turks in Hungary. These men, who had aided 
in setting bounds to Mahomedan encroachment, were 
admirably adapted for settlement in a country in which 
constant fighting was going on with the Iroquois and 
the English colonists, and when the regiment returned 
to France in 1669 many of its officers and men remained 
in Canada, and their descendants are here to this 
day. 

Much of the glory of the first campaigns against 
the Iroquois belonged to the Canadian levies. 

April 3rd, 1669, the King of France wrote M. De 
Courcelles, Governor of New France, to organize all 
the male inhabitants of Canada into companies in 
order to teach them the use of arms. (Canadian 
Archives.) 

Met ween 1674 and 1676 Frontenac, the iron governor 
of New France, thoroughly reorganized the militia, 
giving that body the form it retained up to 1759-60, the 
able-bodied men of each parish or cot6, forming a com 
pany of militia, "milices," to be brigaded in time of 
war only. 

.May 16, 1677, an Edict was issued creating the 
office of "Prevot" in Canada, and providing for six 
"officiers d archers," to execute its ordinances and 
decrees. 

Although the internal organization was progressing, 
the colonial officials felt the need of regular troops. 

In 1679, M. de Frontenac, the Governor-General, 
on account of trouble with the Iroquois and English, 
wrote to the French government demanding re-inforce- 
ments of troops. 

In 1682, M. De La Barre. the then governor, again 
appealed to the King for military aid to protect the 
colony against the Iroquois. The same year M. de 
Monies, intendant, writing on the state of the colony 
to the minister, complained that there were no guard 
houses for the troops in Montreal and Three Rivers. 
The following year de La Barre wrote another letter 
to the King renewing his request for troops to make 
war upon the Iroquois, and petitioned His Majesty 
to award a commission in the navy to a son of M. de 
Saurel, recently deceased. In those early days the 
ambition of young Canadians to serve in the regular 
armed forces of the Crown was very marked, and 
many of them served in the French army and navy 



with distinction. November 12, 1707, M. de 
Ramezay, Governor of Montreal, wrote the minister 
thanking him for having appointed his son to a com 
mission in the Marine Guards. November 1st, 1711, 
de Ramezay wrote to Governor Vaudreuil requesting 
a commission for his second son, his first having been 
killed the year before in an expedition to Brazil. 

April 10, 1684, the King wrote M. de La Barre that 
200 soldiers had been sent from France to assist the 
colony. The Governor had, meantime, made pre 
liminary arrangements for a punitive expedition 
against the Iroquois, causing a number of friendly 
Indians to assemble at Fort Frontenac (now King 
ston), and reviewing them April 17th. June 5th, the 
reinforcements from over the ocean not having arrived, 
the Governor wrote to the minister praying that the 
reinforcements asked for be sent or that he may be 
permitted to resign and return to France. Meantime 
de La Barre proceeded with his preparations for the 
expedition, and assembled a force of Canadians and 
Indians at Fort Frontenac and reviewed them there 
August 14, 1684. 

From this time forward drafts of the Canadian 
militia were on almost constant service, and, according 
to the reports of the commanding officers, acquitted 
themselves with distinction. 

In 1684, a company of Canadian militia from Cap 
Rouge, commanded by Captain Denis Joseph Juch- 
ereau de La Ferte, served in de La Barre s expedition 
against the Iroquois, and this same militia officer 
serving with d Iberville in the Hudson Bay in 1689, 
at the head of a party of Canadian militia, captured 
near Fort Nelson, the English governor of New Severn. 

During this period there was almost constant trouble 
with the Iroquois, and the governors and other officials 
were firmly convinced that the Indians were instigated 
by the English colonists. The Chevalier de Callieres, 
Governor of the Island of Montreal, was so firmly 
convinced of this that he submitted a scheme to the 
minister for the capture of New York, volunteering 
to carry the scheme into execution himself chiefly with 
militia. The proposition was favourably entertained 
at Court, and instructions as to its execution issued to 
Count de Frontenac, who had returned to Quebec as 
Governor-General. 

In his reports to the minister on the successful 
repulse at Quebec of the British Colonial fleet under 
Admiral Phipps in 1690, de Frontenac gave great 
credit to the Canadians, and suggested that as a reply 
to Phipps expedition Boston be captured. 

The drafting of so many of the inhabitants for 
militia service caused considerable trouble in the 
colony, shortages of crops often resulting. To obviate 



12 



this danger constant demands were made for regular 
troops. 

In 1691, de Frontenac wrote the King -asking for 
fresh regular troops, and September loth, 1002. a 
memorial was despatched to the minister by de Fron 
tenac, and M. de Champigny, the Iiitendant, setting 
forward the urgent need for a thousand soldiers. 
Similar requests were made in 1693, and in October of 
the last-named year, some reinforcements were re 
ceived. 

In a letter dated November 10, 1695, to the minister, 
de Champigny and de Frontenac spoke of having 
despatched 700 men to Fort Frontenac, and highly 
praised the Canadians operating with the Royal 
troops. The following year the old governor left 
Montreal on. his chief punitive expedition at the head 
of 2,200 men, a large proportion of them militia. 

The war party sent to the Boston country under 
command of d Eschaillons and de Rouville in 1708 
was composed principally of Canadians. 

October 18, 1708, M. Randot, Intendant, wrote to 
the Minister with reference to salaries for Councillors, 
Militia Captains, etc., the duties of the latter having 
extended so considerably as to call for regular official 
recognition. September 20, 1714, M. de Vaudreuil, 
governor general, reported to the minister upon the 
reorganization of the troops and militia. 

In 1714, Governor de Vaudreuil forwarded a mem 
orandum to the Council of Marine on the danger to 
Canada in the event of war with England, in view of 
the small number of inhabitants able to bear arms. 
The same year he forwarded another memorandum 
on the same subject to the Duke of Orleans, Regent 
of the kingdom. He contrasted the small number 
of the inhabitants of Canada fit to bear arms with 
the large proportion of English colonists. He asked 
that regulars be sent out, and steps taken to settle 
and fortify the colon} in every way. 

It was fully realized by the officials of the colony 
that each succeeding year placed New France at an 
increased military disadvantage compared with the 
Xew England colonies, and every precaution was taken 
to make the most of what military resources the colony 
possessed. 

Governor de Vaudreuil, May 22, 1725, wrote the 
minister of Marine recommending that soldiers marry 
ing in Canada and settling here be allowed to retain 
their muskets. This suggestion was apparently ad 
opted, and in September 28, 1726, M. De Beauharnois, 
de Vaudreuil s successor, recommended that muskets 
be also given to old soldiers who had previously 
married and settled in the colony. In a letter dated 
Quebec, October 17, 1830, Hocquart, the Intendant, 



wrote acknowledging the receipt of permission to 
distribute muskets to discharged soldiers remaining 
in the colony. October 20th, 1727, M. Dupuy, In 
tendant, wrote to the Minister of Marine that an in 
creased public expenditure had been caused by the 
assembling of militia to be sent to Choueguen. 

In Quebec, the corps of militia artillery maintained 
to assist the regular troops in the manipulation of the 
big guns in that fortress, attained considerable dis 
tinction for its efficiency, and an official statement 
dated Quebec, October 1, 1728, contains the names 
of the burgesses and citizens of Quebec who presented 
themselves in order to learn the gun drill during the 
years 1725, 1726 and 1727. 

About this time the French Government impressed 
with the comparatively rapid development of the 
military resources of the English colonies, and pro 
bably anxious to avoid the constant demands of the 
Canadian governors for regular troops, drew the 
attention of the officials in the colonies to the desir 
ability of husbanding the local resources. How well 
the situation was appreciated in France is shown by 
a document among the Dominion Archives. On the 
24th of May, 1728, De Maurepas, Minister of Marine, 
writing to M. Dupuis, then Intendant of Canada, 
wrote : " The policy of the people of New England 
being to labour at the thorough cultivation of their 
farms and to push on their settlements little by little, 
when it comes to a question of removing to a distance 
they will not consent to do so, because the expense 

would fall upon themselves The settlers of 

Xew France are of a different mind. They always 
want to push on, without troubling themselves about 
the settlement of the interior, because they earn more 
and are more independent when they are further away. 
The result of this difference in the mode of proceeding 
is, that their colonies are more densely peopled and 
better established than ours." 

The exigencies of military service, however, made it 
necessary to use the Canadian settlers on far distant 
fields on militia service. When Celeron de Hienville, 
June 15th, 1749, left Lachine on his celebrated ex 
pedition to the Valley of the Ohio, he had no less than 
180 Canadian Militia with him, the rest of his force, 
exclusive of Indians, being 14 officers and cadets and 
20 soldiers. This was about the ordinary proportion 
of regulars and militia of the numerous hard-fighting 
war parties of those years, for after the departure of 
the Carignan regiment the regular garrisons did not 
exceed in the aggregate 300 men. and they were com 
manded by a Captain of Infantry. Six or seven extra 
companies were sent to the colony, however, at 
different times between 1684 and 1713-7. 

The militia system in New France appears to have 

L3 



been in many respects in advance of that of the Mother 
Country. "Les Milices Provinciales " of Old France 
were auxiliary troops recruited upon emergency. 
They comprised in principle all able-bodied men 
between the ages of sixteen and forty, but exclusive 
of the two first orders, the clergy and the nobility. 
The lists, very arbitrary in practice, were drawn up 
by the intendants. The King fixed by an ordinance 
the number of men to be called out, and this number 
was, in council, divided among the provinces. In each 
province the intendant determined what contingent 
was to be furnished by each community, and those 
enrolled determined by lot who were to go with the 
draft. The militia on being drawn were given three 
francs, uniform and underclothing, the King charging 
himself with the arms and equipment. The men so 
drawn and equipped were eligible for service for ten 
years, but they were not called out except in case of 
war. During peace the regimental staffs (cadres) 
only were maintained. This institution had its origin 
in the militia of the Communes, and was first put into 



effect by Louis XIV between 1688 and 1697, when a 
temporary militia force of 25,000 men was maintained 
in France. It became permanent in 1726 under the 
administration of the Duke of Bourbon; but the first 
drawing in Paris did not take place until March, 1743. 
The militia of France in 1749 formed 40 regiments of two 
battalions each, 13 of one, and 29 separate battalions. 
The political government of Canada before the 
conquest was very simple, if arbitrary, all power 
practically residing in the Governor and Intendant, 
the Council having little real power. Office, rank and 
authority were divided among the gentry with due 
degrees of subordination, the gentry being drawn into 
still closer attachment to the governments of their 
posts by commissions in the Provincial (Les Troupes 
de la Marine) and Royal troops. As a matter of fact 
the seigneurs owed their titles and estates to past 
military services, and their capacity for rendering 
valuable aid in the defence of the colony. This is 
clearly shown by the instruments creating the various 
seignories. 




14 





CHAPTER II 

THE CHANGE OF FLAGS 



MILITARY RULE IN CANADA. THE FIRST BRITISH CANADIAN MILITIA. 



LOUISBURG, C.B., capitulated to General Amherst 
July 26th, 1758 ; Fort Niagara was captured 
by the British force under Brigadier General 
Prideaux and Sir Wm. Johnson, July 25, 1759 ; the 
first Battle of the Plains of Abraham was fought 
September 13, the last named year, and Quebec 
capitulated September 18. 

The change of flags in Canada dates from the capitu 
lation of Montreal, September 8, 1760. when the 
Marquis de Vaudreuil and General de Levis, submit 
ting to the inexorable logic of a vastly superior force, 
surrendered the French armies and the whole of New 
France to General Amherst. 

When quitting Canada, de Vaudreuil paid this 
homage to the Canadian people in a letter to the French 
ministry: "With these beautiful and vast countries 
France loses 70,000 inhabitants of a rare quality; a 
race of people unequalled for their docility, bravery 
and loyalty." 

That this tribute was richly deserved one has but to 
study the history of the Old Regime to realize. 

The militiamen of Montreal must have felt keen 
pangs of regret when the Union Jack replaced the 
Fleurs de Lys on the little citadel near the site of the 
present Place Viger Station, the morning after the sign 
ing of the capitulation. But they had been for years 
growing disgusted at the rapacity and rascality of many 
of the French colonial officials and at the slights put 
upon them by some of the regular officers. 

The ordinary people, too, had suffered con 
siderably in many cases from the overbearing 



conduct of the seigneurs, and consoled themselves 
in the hour of the triumph of their hereditary 
enemies by the hope that it might deliver them from 
a species of petty tyranny which they knew did not exist 
in the English colonies. There was a feeling, too, in the 
colony that New France had been to a considerable ex 
tent left to its fate by the Mother Country. And 
above all, to the war-scarred veterans of the militia 
the proud consciousness of having, during many 
years of most exacting service, done their whole duty, 
robbed defeat of its bitterest sting. Though the 
fortunes of war had been against them and Britain 
had won their country, they had gained, at least, as 
much honour out of the prolonged contest as their 
conquerors many armies of conceited and quarrelsome 
colonials, and of contract-raised, and poorly handled 
" regular " regiments that had often suffered defeat at the 
handsof the Canadian militia, and the white-coated colon 
ial troops and regulars of France before this day of final 
defeat. To the rich harvest of imperishable glory 
reaped by the devoted supporters of the cause of the 
Bourbons during this, to them, disastrous campaign, 
the gallantry, the amazing hardihood and the pathetic 
devotion of the Canadian militia fairly contributed 
the lion s share. There was no disgrace for such men 
as these in the final defeat of the cause for which they 
had so heroically and, for long, so successfully, fought. 
When General Murray, in the spring of 1760 ascended 
the St. Lawrence from Quebec, with his army, to par 
ticipate in the operations against Montreal, he received 
the submission of the various parishes on his way. 



15 



the rural militiamen considering the country lost, 
depositing their arms. Xo less than . 1,400 men of 
the seigniory of Boucherville alone took the oath of 
neutrality. Murray issued a proclamation that all 
Canadians found in corps serving with the French 
would be transported to France with the regular 
troops, 

A detachment of the British army entered Montreal 
to take formal possession the day after the signing of 
the capitulation, and at Place D Armes the regular 
regiments of the garrison were drawn up and surren 
dered their arms. The British force at once mounted 
guards and posted sentries, and that night, for the first 
time, English drums beat the sunset tattoo in the streets 
of Montreal. The French regulars and officials were 
without any unnecessary delay shipped home to Franco. 
The English colonial troops with Amherst s armies 
were also returned to their homes. 

September 19th General Amherst instructed Colonel 
Haldimand to assemble the militia of Montreal who 
had served under the French regime, at once, and order 
them to give up their arms. That done, provided 
they would take the oath of allegiance to the British 
Crown, the arms would either be returned to them or 
placed in an armory as might be determined. From 
subsequent proceedings it appeared that the British 
army authorities, who thus found themselves respon 
sible for the government of the newly acquired 
colony, were anxious to acquaint themselves with 
the personnel and spirit of the militia for the 
purpose of enlisting their assistance in the civil 
administration of the country. The administration 
of justice and of public and communal affairs 
generally, including such public works as roads, 
bridges, etc. had under the old regime been in the hands 
of the militia oHicor.s. and as these matters had to 
be attended to by somebody, it was thought that, to 
some extent, the old officials might safely be entrusted 
with these duties, if they evinced any willingness to 
act. On this point the British army officers appear 
to have been perfectly satisfied, for when General 
Amherst established his military governments in the 
colony he made provision for several courts of justice 
composed of militia officers, who decided cases brought 
before them in a summary way, with an appeal to a 
court composed chiefly of officers of His Majesty s 
Army. 

The military government established by Amhorst 
divided the country into three districts Quebec. 
Montreal and Three Rivers. Over the firs) was placed 
General James Murray, who was also to act as Com 
mander in Chief. General Thomas Gage was the first 
military governor of .Montreal, and Colonel Ralph 
Burton of Three Rivers. 

10 



The three governors seem to have been left pretty 
much to their own discretion in carrying out the details 
of their systems of administrations, but the various 
governments were all of a military pattern, and to 
some extent the services of the officers of the old 
French militia were called into requisition to assist 
in their accustomed capacities as the local admin 
istrators of the laws of the country, which, of course 
remained in force pending the final disposition of 
Canada by treaty. 

In the government of Montreal the militia officers 
found themselves re-instated in practically all their 
former functions, if in fact their authority was not 
increased; but in Quebec, whether on account of that 
district being the seat of the chief administration, or 
that the population was not so well disposed towards 
the new rulers, the militia appears to have been only 
called upon to assist in the regulation of the statuory, 
labour, the repairs of roads and bridges, etc. 

-Mui-ray constituted a military council for his district 
(Quebec) composed of seven army officers, as judges 
of the more important civil and criminal pleas. This 
council held bi-weekly sederunts. Murray reserved 
to himself the jurisdiction, without power of appeal, 
over other cases; or left them to the care of military 
subalterns in the country parts. Two prominent 
French Canadians were appointed public procurators 
and legal commissaries before the military tribunal 
of Quebec City: one being Jacques Belcourt de La- 
fontaine, ex-member of the sovereign council, for the 
country on the right bank of the St. Lawrence; the 
other, Joseph Etienne Cugnet, seigneur of St. Etiemie, 
for that on the left side of the river. 

At Three Rivers, almost the same arrangement was 
made. 

General Gage, in his district, (Montreal) authorized 
the parochial militia captains to settle any differences 
amongst the people according to their own discretion, 
but dissatisfied clients had a power of appeal to the 
nearest British commandant or to himself. 

An ordinance dated at Montreal, October 13, 1761, 
set forth that "His Excellency Thos. Gage, Governor 
of Montreal and its dependencies, etc., etc., taking into 
account the administration of justice of his govern 
ment, and being desirous of rendering it more prompt 
and less expensive to those obliged to resort thereto, 
had seen fit to prepare the present ordinance and release 
for the courts of justice of the government of Montreal." 
The government was divided for the administration 
of justice into 5 districts. In each one there was to 
assemble a court (Un corps d OHiciers de Milice) on the 
first and fifteenth of each month. These courts of 
militia officers, wore to be composed of not more than 
seven, or less than five members, of which one should 



hold the rank of captain, the senior to act as president. 
The officers of militia of each district were summoned 
to meet in their parishes on the 24th October, to make 
arrangements for the whole of these courts, and to 
prepare rosters of officers for duty therein. The town 
of Montreal was set apart as a judicial district of its 
own with a local Board of Officers o administrate the 
laws. From these courts appeal was to be allowed 
to three Boards of Officers of His Majesty s Troops. 
one to meet at Montreal the other at Verennes, and the 
third at St. Sulpice, these Courts of Appeal to sit on 
the 20th of each month. From these courts a further 
appeal to the Governor in person was provided for. 

In the event of capital crimes, officers of militia 
were authorized to arrest the criminals and their 
accomplices, and to conduct them under guard to 
Montreal, the militia officers to furnish with each 
prisoner an account of the crime and a list of witiie--es. 
In civil cases involving small amounts, not exceeding 
20 livres, all the officers of the militia were individually 
granted authority to adjudicate with an appeal to, 
and no further, than the militia courts of the district. 
Provision was made for the payment of the militia officers, 
for all of these duties by a scale of fees, a treasurer to 
be appointed for each court. The officers of militia 
were specially enjoined to maintain peace and order 
within their respective districts. 

October 17, 1761, the "Conseildes Capitaines de 
Milice de Montreal" presented a memorial to the 
(Itivcrnor, in which they expressed their willingness 
to administer justice gratuitously, as they had done 
in the past, but requested, as a favor from His Excel 
lency, that they be exempted from the obligation to 
billet troops in their domiciles. They requested that 
six cords of wood be purchased to heat the chamber 
in which their sittings were held, and that Mr. Panet, 
their clerk, be compensated for his services at the rate 
of 30 "sols" for each sentence. Two militia sergeants 
had been appointed to act as bailiffs and criers of the 
court and a tariff of fees was asked for to provide for 
their pay. These sergeants, it was also explained, 
were not only made use of in the administration of 
justice, but also for the district, for the supervision of 
the statutory labour or "corvee." This memorial, 
which was signed R. Uecouagne, was approved by the 
Governor. 

The placing of the administration of the law to such 
an extent in the hands of the officers of the old French 
militia was clearly an honest attempt to place the 
administration of the French laws, the temporary 
continuance of which had been promised to the Cana 
dian people at the capitulation of Montreal, in the 
hands of those considered to be the best versed in 
them. The commissions in the militia were generally 



held by the seigneurs and the other notabilities of the ir 
respective districts, and these persons were not merely 
the best educated but, often the most highly estc< med 
men in the country, and the} had shown themselves to 
be good soldiers. The victorious officers, with that strong 
professional regard which engenders a species of deep- 
seated comradeship even between members of hostile 
armies, naturally felt inclined to rely upon the honour 
of brother soldiers, though late enemies, rather than 
upon that of civilians. 

And it is gratifying to relate that this reliance upon 
the honor of the officers of the Canadian militia at 
this trying period of the national history was not 
misplaced, although from this period doubtless dates 
back the intimacy between the old noblesse and the 
British officials which resulted in the former class 
exerting a preponderating, and not always just and 
enlightened, influence upon the early years of British 
civil government in Canada. 

It is satisfactory to note that on retiring from the 
governorship of Montreal, Gage forwarded a letter 
to " Messieurs, les Capitaines de la Chambie de Milice de 
Montreal." dated Montreal, October 1763, in which he 
wrote " 1 cannot help expressing the satisfaction that 
I have always derived from your conduct, during the 
time I have had the honour to be your chief; and it 
becomes my duty before leaving your country to tes 
tify as to my lively recognition of the services which 
you have rendered to your king and country. Con 
tinue to do your duty in advancing the public welfare, 
and not only increase the good reputation you have 
already acquired among your fellow countrymen, 
but earn what you will certainly not fail to receive, 
the gratitude and protection of the king." 

The Treaty of Versailles ceding Canada to Britain 
was signed in February, 1763, but not proclaimed in 
Canada until the following May. October 7, the 
same year, a Royal Proclamation was issued providing 
for the government of the new colony somewhat along 
the lines of the prevailing system, but only so far as it 
did not conflict with the laws of Great Britain. 

Three ve.y different opinions were entertained as 
to the effect of the Royal Proclamation of October 7, 
1763. There were those who argued that the proc 
lamation repealed all the existing laws and established 
English laws in their places; others were of the opinion 
that the Canadian laws remained unrepealed. They 
argued that according to the spirit of English law, 
upon the conquest of a civilized country, the laws 
remain in force till the conquerors shall have expressly 
ordained to the contrary. Others again thought that 
the effect of the proclamation and the resultant Acts 
was to introduce the criminal laws of England and to 
confirm the Civil Law of Canada. 



17 



Brigadier General Burton, removed from Three 
Rivers to replace General Gage as Governor at Montreal, 
upon assuming his new government, issued a proc 
lamation announcing that all the orders for the regu 
lation, good order and police service in the government 
would be maintained exactly as they had been institut 
ed under the administration of Major General Gage. 
Special mention was made of the fact that " civil justice 
would be administered by the militia and military 
courts," with the appeal as heretofore to the Governor. 
When British civil government was proclaimed in 
Canada, notice was given of the cancellation of the 
existing French laws. For the time being, however, 
failing the proclamation of new laws, many of the old 
French ones were continued in force in accordance 
with the maxim already referred to. 

So, many of the features of the military administration 
continued for some time subsequently to the pro 
clamation of civil government. New laws to meet 
all the existing local conditions could hardly be ex 
pected to be produced at once. The old population 
of the colony, but more particularly the seigneurs 
and gentry, who were in closest touch with the British 
colonial officials, rather favored a continuation of the 
military rule. Being a brave and military people, 
immured to war and military discipline, they hail 
taken kindly to military rule as administered in 
Canada by the British, but the gradually growing 
British civilian population did not like it, and one 
of the objects of the proclamation of 1763 was to 
encourage a larger British immigration into the 
province. 

The proclamation may be said, broadly, to have es 
tablished in Canada the English criminal law, but to have 
recognized the "ancient customs" and civil laws of 
New France. For the interpretation of these the 
administration continued to avail themselves of the 
services of some of the tribunals composed of militia 
officers. At this time there was considerable un 
certainty as to the limitations of the two systems of 
judicature, and there was much overlapping of systems 
and many disputes as to procedure, etc. Friction 
arose, and more or less local ill-feelling was gradually 
consolidated into a wave of national discontent. The 
authorities found themselves too much occupied other 
wise to find time to draft a new militia law. 

Not only were the militia officers and non-com 
missioned officers used for mere court duties at this 
time, as some have assumed. The captains of militia 
were looked to as responsible for the statute labour, 
bridges, roads, etc., as in the days of the old regime. 
This is clearly proved by many existing placards of 
the time, one, for instance, issued by Governor Burton, 
May 9, 1764, drawing attention to the necessity for 

is 



the improvement of the roads and maintenance and 
construction of bridges, etc. The principal clause of 
the proclamation read as follows: 

"We expressly inform all the captains and officers 
of the militia within the boundaries of this government 
to take steps immediately on the posting of the present 
placard, to see that the roads and bridges are repaired 
and that the ditches are cleared out. Each officer of 
militia in his district or parish will attend to this in the 
customary manner, under penalty of arbitrary measures 
being taken against the captains or other officers of 
the parish militia who neglect to have the roads and 
bridges in their district placed in a satisfactory order 
by the time the inspection will be made, one month 
after the issue of the present proclamation." 

To strengthen the hands of the militia officers a 
certain number of arms were issued them for free 
public distribution, on loan, during good behaviour, 
in order that the recipients might hunt and "keep 
their hands in," in case of emergency. It was doubt 
less felt that this would help to maintain the au 
thority of the militia officers who had been friendly 
enough to the new authorities to take the Oath of 
Allegiance. In one case the recipients of these arms 
refused, insolently, to perform public service in con 
nection with the military transport service, and an 
order from the new governor of Three Rivers, Colonel 
Fred. Haldimand, was issued to the militia captain 
concerned to call in the arms. 

The governors were not slow to avail themselves 
of the advice of the militia officers. March 26th, 1764, 
the captains of the Montreal militia drew the governor s 
attention to an interference which had been made with 
customary practice, in a formal document. 

Burton promptly accepted the explanation, and 
ordered the obstacle complained of removed. 

And now Britain was about to call upon her new 
subjects in Canada for actual military service. The 
mighty uprising of the western Indians, known as 
Pontiac s conspiracy, had broken out, and armaments 
were preparing to suppress the uprising and relieve 
the few English posts that still held out. 

The British authorities recalled the splendid service 
the Canadians had rendered the French armies as 
bush fighters and voyageurs, and determined to avail 
themselves of the service of a Canadian detachment. 

March 5, General James Murray, Governor of Quebec 
and Commander-in-Chief, wrote to Lord Halifax that 
he had made a requisition for 300 Canadians to serve 
in the approaching campaign. He was strongly of 
opinion that the whole number should and could be 
raised by voluntarily enlistment, and hoped to be 
able to prevent his neighbors, the Lieut. -Governors of 
Montreal and Three Rivers, from putting the draft 



into force. He had prepared proclamations setting 
forth the terms of service, and he wished that all the 
men should be raised according to them. One of 
these proclamations as issued by Governor Haldimand 
at Three Rivers, and addressed to "All the Captains 
of Militia," read as follows: 
"Sir: 

"Although 1 have already verbally informed you 
of the desire with which His Majesty is possessed of 
ensuring the happiness of his subjects, and of the firm 
resolution which he has taken to bring back to reason 
some of the Indian Nations, whose evil spirit has 
revealed itself through treason and violence, and to 
compel them to ensure the return of a paying trade 
and peace so necessary to his peoples, I have deemed 
it advisable to inform you that for this purpose the 
Government has resolved upon adding five companies 
of Canadians to the troops to be engaged in this service. 
These companies will comprise 60 men each. Two 
will be raised in the Government of Quebec, two in 
that of Montreal and one in that of Three Rivers and 
will be under the command of Canadian officers. Only 
those who, of their own free will, are determined to 
become subject of His Majesty will be enrolled in 
these companies. In recognition of, and as a reward 
for the good will of those who enroll themselves, there 
will be given twelve dollars in money to each volunteer, 
there will be distributed to them one coat, two pairs of 
Indian mocassins and a pair of mitts; they will be 
furnished with arms, munitions and supplies during 
the whole time of the campaign. The pay for each 
man will be six English pence per day, and they will be 
accompanied by a priest to discharge the duties of his 
ministry. The service of these volunteers will end 
with the campaign, and after that each of them will 
be at liberty to return home. Such a step indicates 
in the Government confidence in the subjects of His 
Majesty. We are in the right in expecting that they 
will not only enroll readily, but will show great faith 
fulness to fulfill their engagements wherever they 
may be placed by circumstances and for the good of 
the service. They should act as much through honour 
and duty as through gratitude and through zeal in 
their own interest. Pending the time when you may 
be at liberty to publish this ordinance at the church 
door next Sunday, you will do all you can to render 
it public, more especially among the young men, so 
that they may be informed of all the conditions which 
are offered them." 



"Made and delivered at Three Rivers, under the 
seal of our arms, on the 12th of March, 1764. 

(Signed) " FRED. HALDIMAND." 

April 18, 1764, Haldimand wrote that he had raised 
the sixty men required as the quota from his govern 
ment for the Canadian corps. He met with a difficulty 
in regard to volunteering, as the Canadians, accustomed 
to be ordered out or drafted, feared that by volun 
teering and accepting the bounty, they would be 
enlisted for life. They were at last convinced, and 
all the men required, volunteered. 

In a letter from General Murray to Lord Halifax, April 
24, 1764, the Governor reported with apparent gratifica 
tion that the Canadian Corps had been raised and equip 
ped in fourteen days, and left Montreal for Oswego on the 
sixth of that month. 

This pioneer militia corps of the British regime 
in Canada was placed under the command of one 
of the most capable officers of the old French 
service, Jean Baptiste Marie des Bergeres de Rigau- 
ville, who was temporarily commissioned as Major. 
This gentleman was born at Berthier-en-bas, Octo 
ber 28, 1726, and for distinguished service in the 
Militia was rewarded with a commission in the 
Troupes de la Marine. As one of the senior officers 
of that hard fighting body of men, he participated 
with marked distinction in the battle of Ste. Foyc, 
often spoken of as the second battle of the Plains of 
Abraham, in the spring of 1760. He was especially 
thanked for his services in connection with the sup 
pression of the Pontiac uprising, and was called to the 
Legislative Council in 1775. The same year he formed 
part of the heroic garrison of St. Johns, being wounded 
and taken prisoner of war. While in prison at Bristol, 
Penn., he succumbed to his wounds and exposure, 
October 30, 1776, and was buried at Philadelphia. 

The other officers of this corps were all men 
who had distinguished themselves in the militia of the 
French regime, such men as Antoine Jucherean Du- 
chesnay, Saint Ange de Bellerive, Godefroy Baby 
and many others whose names are familiar to the 
readers of Canadian history. The service they per 
formed in connection with the expedition against 
Pontiac and his Indians was of the most useful and 
gallant kind, gaining the unstinted praise of the 
commanding officers, and winning the confidence and 
esteem of their British comrades. 



19 





CHAPTER III 



SIR GUY CARLETON S MILITIA AND VOLUNTEERS 



THE year 1766 saw a change in the administration 
of the old province of Quebec, General Murray, 
the first Governor General, retiring in June and 
being replaced by General Sir Guy Carleton, another 
of Wolfe s officers, in September the same year. The 
name of Carleton (later Lord Dorchester) is intimately 
bound up with the history of the Canadian militia. 

When the new governor arrived he found affairs in 
a decidedly critical state. The uncertainty as to the 
exact application of the Royal Proclamation of 1764 
and the subsequent ordinances had caused much 
confusion in the administration of justice, and bitter 
disputes between the English and French speaking 
people. Local agitations and ill-feeling were prevalent : 
trouble between Great Britain and her older American 
colonies was rapidly developing into revolution, and 
while the agitators in New England were anxious to 
induce the French Canadians to participate in their 
movement, emissaries of the French government were 
also attempting to turn the Canadian people from 
their newly sealed allegiance to Britain. 

At this juncture the fair and honourable treatment 
of the Canadian people by the British during the first 
few months of the new regime was repaid and with 
interest, although a few months later it looked for a 
time as though the generosity of the British had been 
forgotten. It is interesting at this point to recall that 
immediately after the conquest the distress to which 
the French Canadian inhabitants had been reduced 
was such as to render relief necessary, and in 1761 the 
sum of 600 pounds sterling was raised by subscription 
among the merchants and others, and each soldier 
in the regular army gave one day s provisions monthly 



to relieve the immediate distress. Supplies were also 
sent out from England for free distribution. Much of 
the distress had arisen from the non-payment of the 
obligations incurred by the French Government, 
settled for in paper money, of which large amounts 
were outstanding at the cession, and which remained 
unpaid for several years. The British authorities not 
only made efforts to obtain payment for the new 
subjects from the Court of France 1 , but also took steps 
to warn the Canadians from disposing of their paper 
money at a sacrifice to jobbers and speculators. 

The honourable attitude of the first military authori 
ties towards the Canadians is well illustrated in a letter 
written to General Amherst by General Gage from 
Montreal, in 1762, in which the writer explained: 
" 1 feel the highest satisfaction that I am able to inform 
you that during my command in this government 1 
have made it my constant care and attention that the 
Canadians should be treated agreeable to His Majesty s 
kind and humane intentions. No invasion on their 
properties or insult to their persons has gone unpun 
ished. All reproaches on their subjection by the fate 
of arms, revilings on their customs or country, and 
all reflections on their religion have been discounten 
anced and forbid. No distinction has been made be 
tween the Briton and Canadian, but they have been 
equally regarded as subjects of the same Prince. 
The soldiers live peaceably with the inhabitants, and 
they reciprocally acquire an affection for each other. 
I have, notwithstanding, made known His Majesty s 
pleasure on these particulars to the several commanders 
of corps, that every individual may be acquainted 
therewith, which will, no doubt, add the greatest 



weight to the orders and directions which have been 
already given. And you may be assured that the troops, 
who have ever shown the most ardent desire to advance 
the interests of their Sovereign, and paid the most 
exact obedience to his commands, will vie with each 
other in brotherly love and affection to the Canadians 
over whom His Majesty has extended his royal favor 
and protection." (Report on Canadian Archives for 
1790, p. xi.) 

The correspondence of all the governors at this time, 
no less than their actions, indicated the honest desire 
to deal justly by the French Canadians. And so 
much was this appreciated that some Canadians 
of good-family who had gone to France after the cession 
returned to Canada, preferring to submit to the 
British rule as administered in Canada than to remain 
content with the unfulfilled promises of the French 
Government. 

There is no doubt that there were those in authority 
in France who from the beginning looked forward to 
the future reconquest of Canada, and the Canadian 
military officers who returned to France were continued 
on the pay-rolls at increased rates of pay for some years, 
the only apparent object being to retain their services 
for use in future operations in Canada. 

Being a thorough soldier, one of the first things that 
impressed Carleton after his arrival was the defenceless 
and dangerous condition of the colony, and before he 
had been many months in Canada he addressed a 
communication to Lord Shelburne, of the British 
Government, dated Quebec, 25th Nov., 1767 
(Dominion Archives Series Q, vol. 5 1, p. 260), in 
which he clearly and in complete detail set forth the 
actual position. After showing the poor state of 
repair of the defences of Montreal and Quebec, Sir 
(iuy proceeded to detail the force available for the 
colony s defence, writing as follows: "The King s 
forces in this Province, supposing them complete to 
the allowance, and all in perfect health, rank and file, 
would amount to sixteen hundred and twenty-seven 
men, the king s old subjects (of British or British 
Colonial birth), supposing them all willing, might fur 
nish about five hundred men able to carry arms, 
exclusive of his troops, that is supposing all the king s 
troops and old subjects collected in Quebec, with two 
months hard labor, they might put the works in a 
tolerable state of repair, and would amount to about 
one-third of the forces necessary for i(s defence. 

"The new subjects could send into the field about 
eighteen thousand men, well able to carry arms; of 
which number, above one-half have already served, 
with as much valour, with more zeal, and more military 
knowledge for America than the regular troops of 
France, that were joined with them. 



" As the common people are greatly to be influenced 
by their Seigneurs, I annex a return of the Noblesse of 
Canada, showing with tolerable exactness, their age, 
rank, and present place of abode, together with such 
natives of France, as served in the colony troops so 
early in life as to give them a knowledge of the country, 
an acquaintance and influence over the people, equal 
to natives of the same rank; from whence it appears 
that there are in France, and in the French service, 
about one hundred officers, all ready to be sent back, 
in case of a war, to a country they are intimately 
acquainted with, and with the assistance of some 
troops, to stir up a people accustomed to pay them 
implicit obedience. It further shows there remain 
in Canada not many more than seventy of those, who 
ever had been in the French service, not one of them 
in the King s service nor one who, from any motive 
whatever, is induced to support his Government and 
Dominion, gentlemen, who have lost their employ 
ments, at least, by becoming his subjects, and as they 
are not bound by any offices of trust or profit, we 
should only deceive ourselves by supposing, they would 
be active in the defence of a people, that has deprived 
them of their honours, privileges, profits and laws, 
and in their stead, have introduced much expense, 
ehicannery, and confusion, with a deluge of new laws 
unknown and unpublished. Therefore all circum 
stances considered, while matters continue in their 
present state, the most we may hope for from the 
gentlemen who remain in the province, is a passive 
neutrality on all occasions, with a respectful sub 
mission to Government, and deference for the King s 
Commission in whatever hand it may be lodged; this 
they almost to a man have persevered in, since my 
arrival, notwithstanding much pains have been taken, 
to engage them in parties, by a few, whose duty, and 
whose office should have taught them better. This 
disposition the French minister seems to have foreseen, 
as appears by orders calculated to draw them from 
Canada into France, well knowing that such as re 
mained, were bound by duty and honour to do nothing 
against their allegiance to the king, under whose 
Government they live, whereas those who go to France, 
are to all intents and purposes officers in the French 
service, and liable to be sent on any service. 

"For these reasons, I imagine, an edict was pub 
lished in 1762 declaring, that notwithstanding the low 
state of the king s finances, the salary of the captains of 
the colony troops of Canada should be raised from four 
hundred and fifty livres, the establishment at which 
their pay was fixed at first, to six hundred livres a 
year, to be paid quarterly, upon the footing of officers 
in full pay. by the treasurer of the colonies, at the 
quarters assigned them by his majesty in Touraine, 



21 



and that such of them, as did not repair thither, 
should be struck off, the king s intention being, that 
the said officers should remain in that province, until 
further orders, and not depart from thence without a 
written leave from the Secretary of State for the 
Marine Department. 

" A few of these officers have been sent to the other 
colonies, but the greater part still remain in Tourainc, 
and the arrears due to those who have remained any 
time in this country, are punctually discharged, upon 
their emigration from hence, and obedience to the 
above mentioned injunction. 

" By the Secretary of State s letter, a certain quantity 
of wine, duty free, is admitted to enter the towns, 
where these Canadian officers quarter, for their use, 
according to their several ranks." 

The summaries of the lists sent with this letter are 
as follows: 

"Names of the roots of noble families in Canada 
the titles of which are unquestionable, and whose 
children and descendants have remained in the pro 
vince since the conquest, viz.: 

" Families whose titles of nobility are enregistered : 
Baron de Longueuil, title granted in 1700; Hertel. 
Boucher, Louis Couillard De Beaumont, Aubert De La 
Chesnay, Juchereau Duchesnay, ennobled in Canada. 

" Families whose ancestors received the title of 
esquire, in their commissions as officers: Xavier De 
Lanaudiere, De Langy, De Normanville, Duverger, 
Denoyelle, Sabre vois De Bleury, Denys De la Ronde, 
De Richarville, De Montigny, came out in the regi 
ment of Carignan, the first that arrived in Canada, 
about the year 1652 or 1653. 

" Officers who were all necessarily gentlemen by 
birth: Daillebout, De La Come, De Beaujeu, St.Our.s 
De Dechallion, De Varennes, Chabert de Jonquieres, 
Desbergers De Rigauville, De La Valtrie, De Ganne, 
Picote De Belestre, officers in the colonial corps. 

Chaussegros De Lery, engineer in the colonial corps ; 
De Bonne, officer in the colonial service; De Vassal 
officer in the Queen s regiment; De Salaberry, captain 
in the Royal Navy. 

"Families whose ancestors were councillors in the 
superior council established in 1663, by act of the 
Parliament of Paris, the provisions of which are en- 
registered: Damour Duchaufour, in 1663, first coun 
cillor; Villeray, Lepinay, La Durantaye, in 1670; 
Chartier De Lotbiniere, 1680, first councillor; Hazeur 
Delorme, 1700; Guillemin, 1715; De la Fontaine, 1730; 
Taschereau, 1732. 

"Godefroi De Tonnancour held the title of esquire, 
by the king s commission of lieutenant-general of the 
district of Three Rivers." 



" French Noblesse in the Province of Quebec, Novem 
ber, 1767: Captains having the Order of St. Louis, 9; 
captain named in the Order but not invested, 1; 
captains who have not the Order, 4; lieuts. having the 
Order, 1; lieuts., 16; Ens., 20; officiers de reserve, 2; 
cadets, 23; have never been in the service, 44; in the 
upper country who have never been in the service, 6; 
total, 126. 

"French Canadian Noblesse in France, 1767: 
Grand Croix, 1 ; governors, lieut.-governors, majors, 
aide majors, captains and lieut. of ships of war having 
the Order of St. Louis, 26; aide major and captains 
not having the Order, 6; lieutenants, 12; ensigns, 19; 
Canadian officers in actual service whose parents have 
remained in Canada, 15; total, 79. 

" Natives of France, who came over to Canada as 
cadets, served and were preferred in the colony troops, 
and are treated in France as Canadian officers: 
Captains not having the Croix of St. Louis, 7; had the 
rank of captain in 1760, raised to that of lieut .-colonel 
in France K. of St. Louis, 1; lieutenants, 7; was captain 
in the colony troops at Mississippi, came to Canada in 
1760, and is raised to the rank of colonel in the Spanish 
service at Mississippi Kt. of St. Louis, 1; having had 
civil employments, 5; officers of the port, 2. 

(Canadian Archives, Series Q, Vol. 5-1, p. 269.) 

It appears that Carleton had already advised that 
some steps be taken to give military employment to 
the French Canadian gentry, as a measure of relief, 
as a means of securing their interest in the new regime, 
and for the purpose of securing a valuable addition to 
the forces of the crown. The raising of a regiment 
officered by French Canadians had been proposed, 
and it had been also suggested that commissions in 
the army might be given. But Carleton was met 
with the reply that under the old laws upholding 
Roman Catholic disability, the French Canadians, 
being Roman Catholics, could not hold commissions 
in the army. 

However, Carleton persevered in his idea, and we 
find in a letter to Lord Hillsborough, preserved in the 
Dominion Archives, (Series Q, Vol. 5-2, p. 890), which 
he wrote November 21st, 1768, in reply to some queries 
regarding some treasonable correspondence supposed 
to have been received in Canada, the following obser 
vations on this same subject: 

" My Lord, Since my arrival in this province, I 
have not been able to make any discovery that induces 
me to give credit to the paper of intelligence inclosed 
in your Lordship s letter of the 14th of May last; nor 
do I think it probable the chiefs of their own free 
notion in time of peace, dare assemble in numbers, 
consult, and resolve on a revolt; or that an assembly 
of military men should be so ignorant, as to fancy 



22 



they could defend themselves by a few fireships only, 
against any future attack from Great Britain, after 
their experience in fifty nine. 

"Notwithstanding this, and their decent and respect 
ful obedience to the king s government hitherto, I 
have not the least doubt of their secret attachments 
to France, and think this will continue as long as they 
are excluded from all employments under the British 
government, and are certain of being reinstated, at 
least in their former commissions, under that of France, 
by which chiefly they supported themselves and families. 

"When I reflect that France naturally has the affec 
tions of all the people; that, to make no mention of 
fees of office and the vexations of the law, we have 
done nothing to gain one man in the province by 
making it his private interest to remain the king s 
subject ; and that the interests of many would be greatly 
promoted by a revolution, I own my not having 
discovered a treasonable correspondence. Never was 
proof sufficient to convince me it did not exist in some 
degree, but I am inclined to think, if such a message 
has been sent, very few were entrusted with the secret. 
Perhaps the Court of France, informed a year past by 
Mons. de Chatelet, that the king proposed raising a 
regiment of his new subjects, caused this piece of 
intelligence to be communicated, to create a jealousy 
of the Canadians, and prevent a measure that might 
fix their attachments to the British Government, and 
probably, of those savages who have always acted 
with them. However that be, on receiving this news 
from France last spring, most of the Gentlemen in the 
province applied to me, and begged to be admitted into 
the king s service, assuring me they would take every 
opportunity to testify their zeal and gratitude for 
so great a mark of favour and tenderness, extended, 
not only to them, but to their posterity. 

" When I consider further, that the king s dominion 
here is maintained but by a few troops, necessarily 
dispersed, without a place of security for their maga 
zines, for their arms or for themselves; amidst a numer 
ous military people, (the Gentlemen, all officers of exper 
ience, poor, without hopes, that they or their descen 
dants will be admitted into the service of their present 
sovereign),! can have no doubt that France, as soon 
as determined to begin a war will attempt to regain 
Canada, should it be intended only to make a diversion, 
while it may reasonably be undertaken with little 
hazard, should it fail, and where so much may be 
gained should it succeed. But should France begin 
a war in hopes the British Colonies will push matters 
to extremities, and she adopts the project of supporting 
them in their independent notions, Canada probably 
will then become the principal scene, where the fate 
of America may be determined. Affairs in this 



situation, Canada in the hands of France would no 
longer present itself as an enemy to the British colonies, 
but as an ally, a friend and a protector of their indepen- 
dencv. 



Your lordship must immediately perceive the many 
disadvantages Great Britain would labour under in a 
war of this nature; and on the other hand, how greatly 
Canada might forever support the British interests 
on this continent for it is not united in any common 
principle, interest or wish with the other provinces 
in opposition to the supreme seat of government was 
the king s dominion over it only strengthened by a 
citadel, which a few national troops might secure, 
and the natives attached, by making it their interest, 
to remain His subjects. 

" My letters to the Earl of Shelburne, Xos. 20, 23. 24, 
25 and 26 contain more fully my humble opinion of 
the measures necessary to obtain this desirable end, 
convinced, that the affections of the Canadians, or 
a great force, is necessary to secure this province in 
time of war, or, at least till the marine of France is 
thoroughly subdued. To those letters I refer your Lord 
ship for further particulars, and am, with great regard 
and esteem, 

"Your Lordship s 

" most obedient 
" and most humble servant, 

"GUY CARLETON. 
To the Earl of Hillsborough. " 

The reply to this communication is interesting as 
expressing the views held at court on the subject under 
discussion: 

WHITEHALL, Jan. 4, 1769. 

"Sir: I have received and laid before the king your 
secret despatch of the 21st of November. 

"The remarks you make upon the state and temper 
of His Majesty s new subjects will be of great utility 
in the consideration of the measures now under deliber 
ation, and do evince both the propriety and 
necessity of extending to that brave and faithful people 
a reasonable participation in those establishments 
which are to form the basis of the future government 
of the colony of Quebec, but I fear that from the spirit 
of the laws of this kingdom, as well as from the general 
prejudices of mankind, and the dispositions that appear 
in all parties and factions to make every measure, 
however well-considered and intended, the foundation 
of clamour and opposition, it will hardly be practicable 
to extend such participation to the military line, 
although, for my part, I clearly see and agree in opinion 
with you that great advanatges might be deduced 



23 



both to the colony and to the Mother Country, from 

an establishment of that sort, under proper regulations. 
#*##*# 

"I am, &c., 

"HILLSBOROUGH." 

Curlotnii was anxious to properly organize the 
sedentary militia, but found the law on this, as on 
other subjects, confusing. 

In December, 1767, some progress had been made in 
preparing a summary of the laws of Canada as they 
existed under the French regime and previous to the 
establishment of civil government in Canada, and 
Carleton wrote to the colonial authorities in London 
calling attention to the confusion which existed in 
administering the laws since the Ordinance of 1764, 
and recommending the re peal of that ordinance, leaving 
the old Canadian laws almost entire. (Dom. Archives 
Report for 1890, p. xiii). 

January 20, 1768, Carleton wrote to Lord Shel- 
burne urging various means for impressing the new 
subjects with attachment and zeal for the king s 
government, suggesting among other things that a 
Canadian corps be raised and that offices in the king s 
service be bestowed upon them. 

September 4, 1774, Governor Gage of Massachu 
setts, from Boston, forwarded to Quebec, for Carleton, 
a suggestion that two regiments of Canadians be 
raised for service in Massachusetts in view of the 
unruly disposition of the people there. Carleton of 
course could not comply. 

February 4, 1775, Carleton, at Quebec, wrote to 
General Gage at Boston stating that the French 
Canadians generally seemed pleased at the passage 
of the Quebec Act. The gentry were well disposed to 
serve in regular corps but did "not relish commanding 
a bare militia." The sudden dismissal of the Canadian 
regiment raised in 1764, at the time of Pontiac s con 
spiracy, without gratuity or recompense to officers, 
was still uppermost in their thoughts. As for the 
peasantry, government had retained so little power, 
that it would require time and discreet management 
to recall them to habits of obedience. To embody 
them suddenly as militia and march them off to war, 
" would give color to the language of the sons of sedition . 
that it was the intention to rule over them with the 
former despotism. " He recommended raising a batta 
lion or two of Canadians, which would find employment 
for awl attach the gentry, giving them an influence 
over the lower classes and securing the Indians. 

Meantime some of the newly arrived English settlers, 
most of them from the older American colonies, and 
some of the civil officials, a number of whom were 
French Protestants or "Swiss," and naturally not 



favourably regarded by the inhabitants, were acting 
in such an arbitrary or a greedy way as to cause dis 
affection among the high-spirited French population. 
And the refractory and democratic spirit, which from 
the date of the landing of the first settlers had existed 
and been fostered by gross misgovern men t, was 
rapidly drifting on towards rebellion in New England 
and the southern colonies. The whole patchwork 
fabric of British Colonies in North America, with the 
exception of Nova Scotia and the Hudson Bay terri 
tory, appeared about ready to fall to pieces. All sorts 
of tardy conciliatory measures, most o r them most 
absurdly devised, were taken by the home authorities. 

In the hope of conciliating the French Canadians the 
British Parliament in 1774 passed "the Quebec Act" 
which extended the boundaries of the Province of 
Quebec from Labrador to the Mississippi, and from the 
Ohio to the watershed of Hudson Bay, abolished 
Roman Catholic disability, confirmed the tithes to the 
Catholic clergy, but exempted Protestants from pay 
ment, re-established the French civil code and the 
seignorial tenure, confirmed the English criminal code, 
and vested authority in a governor and an appointed 
. council. This act, while received with gratification by 
the French Canadian seigneurs and clergy, greatly dis 
pleased the mass of the French-Canadian people, the 
English-speaking colonists in Canada, and the people 
of the older English colonies. This act made no re 
ference to the militia. 

The measure 1 was founded on petitions and repre 
sentations of the French noblesse; every clause of it 
showed that the wishes of the British colonists in 
Canada especially had been unjustly and contemp 
tuously rejected. Nor did the Bill recognise the 
wishes of the mass of the French Canadian people. 

The French noblesse, of whom many, under the 
Quebec Act, w r ere received into the Council or ap 
pointed to executive offices and the Roman Catholic 
clergy, who were restored to the possession of their 
estates and their tithes, acquiesced in the new form of 
government, but by a large part of the British residents 
it was detested, as at war with English liberties, and 
subjecting them to arbitrary power. 

The Act was unquestionably an honest attempt to 
satisfy the French Canadians, but the mistake was 
made of accepting altogether the representations of 
the seigneurs and clergy, more particularly those of 
the seigneurs. The hitter class, by reason of their 
superior social positions, not always an indication of 
sound judgment, of unselfish patriotism, of familiarity 
with popular views or of knowledge of national require 
ments, were naturally thrown into closer contact withthe 
first British colonial officials than their fellow country 
men of less pretentious social status, hut who were 



better able to give expression to sound popular views 
on public questions. The seigneurs appeared to have 
succeeded in keeping from the ears of the British 
administrators the truth as to the ill-feeling which had 
b. en produced throughout the mass of the French 
Canadians by the arbitrary, greedy, and often corrupt 
conduct of many of the old seigneurs during the 
French regime, for if the peasant of New France had 
owed compulsory military service to the king, he also 
had owed to the seignior crushing feudal obligation, 
and this obligation was but too often most cruelly 
exacted. Even Carleton, whose advice hud been 
sought in framing the Quebec Act. sagacious though 
he was, and public spirited, failed to receive with due 
discrimination the representations of the self-seeking 
seigneurs, and in a letter written by Chief Justice Hay 
to the Lord Chancellor in 1775, he pointed out that 
Carleton had acted very injudiciously in depending 
so much upon the seigneurs, whose elation at the 
supposed restoration of their old privileges had given 
offence to their own people and to the English mer 
chants. 

On the 1st of June, 1775, Congress passed a resolu 
tion setting forth "That, as this Congress has nothing 
more in view than the defence of these colonies, no 
expedition or incursion ought to be undertaken or 
made by any colony, or body of colonists, against or 
into Canada. 

The resolution was translated into French, and 
distributed throughout Canada. In the light of the 
subsequent action of Congress, this resolution must 
be regarded as an attempt to cheat either the Govern 
ment or people of Canada into a sense of security, the 
better to overrun and overwhelm them. For. on the 
27th of June, Congress passed another resolution, in 
structing General Schuyler to proceed without delay 
to Ticonderoga. and. if he found it practicable, "im 
mediately to take possession of St. John s and Mont 
real, and pursue any other measure in Canada which 
might have a tendency to promote the peace and 
security of these colonies." 

These things did not escape the notice of Governor 
Carleton one of the most praiseworthy military men 
that ever governed a British dependency; the man who 
preserved Canada to the Empire. Carleton. on the 
9th June, 1775, proclaimed that he had put the pro 
vince under martial law: at the same time he called 
out its militia, depending chiefly upon the seigneurs 
for the enrollment. 

The malign influence of the Quebec Act. now that 
the fate of Canada was about to be placed in the balance 
of war. was everywhere felt in disastrous disappoint 
ment . 

The peasants believed that the Quebec Act revived 



those powers of Crown and noble which had been their 
scourge and their horror in the French period. An 
opinion prevailed in the province , that the .seigneurs. 
by the tenure of their lands, owed military service to 
the King of England. Further, that it was part of the 
same tenure, that they should engage for the personal 
service of all their vassals. It was also believed that, 
as the Quebec Act revived the laws and customs of 
Canada, the seigneurs had a legal right, whenever the 
king or his representative called on them, to command 
the personal service of all their tenants. 

The seigneur of Tern-bonne, M. La Corne. was de 
puted by General Carleton to enrol his tenants. La 
Corne took high ground with the peasants. He told 
them that, by the tenure of their lands, he had a right 
to command their military services. Their answer 
was the most pregnant commentary on the conquest : 
"They were now become subjects of England, and did 
not look on themselves as Frenchmen in any respect 
whatever." Then followed uproar. 

M. la Corne struck some of those who spoke loudest; 
this maddened the people. He was forced to fly to 
Montreal, threatening to bring back two hundred 
soldiers. The people armed themselves for resistance. 
determined to die rather than submit to the seigneur. 
But the prudence of Carleton soothed them. He 
would not give La Corne soldiers: but sent with him an 
English officer, a ( apt. Hamilton. In reply to Hamil 
ton the people said: It Gen. Carleton requires our 
services, let him give us English officers to command us : 
or if not, common soldiers, rather than those people" 
(the seigneurs). The peasants only dispersed when 
Hamilton promised that La Corne should come no 
more among them. 

A Mr. Deschambaud, son of a seigneur, went to his 
father s estate on the River Richelieu, to raise the 
tenants. He harangued them in an arbitrary strain. 
They replied defiantly. He then drew his sword; 
whereupon the people surrounded him, and beat him 
severely. The result of this incident might have been 
fraught with the very worst consequences, had it not 
been for the admirable tact of Carleton. 

The peasants, fearing that it might go ill with them. 
assembled to the number of three thousand at Fort 
Chambly, and began to march to Fort St. John s 
to face two regiments of regulars there, whom they 
suspected the governor would use against them. 
Carleton promised to forgive them if they dispersed; 
they did so. and he kept his word. 

Mr.Chithbert,a former officer in the British regular army, 
seisrneur of Berthier. madea peremptory demand on the 
military service 1 of his tenants. They told him not a man of 
them would follow him: and made an oath on the public 
cross, at the place- of meeting, that they would never 

25 



take up arms against the Americans; that if any one 
of them offered to join the government, they would 
burn his house and barn, and destroy his cattle; and 
that, if Carleton attempted to compel them into the 
service, they would repel force by force. M. Lanaudiere, 
seigneur of St. Anne s went to Berthier to make the 
attempt in which Cuthbert failed. The people seized 
him, with seventeen of his companions, and held 
warm debases as to whether they should send him to 
the American camp at St. John s. Finally, on his pro 
mise to obtain for them the governor s pardon, and 
never again to come amongst them on a like errand, 
he and his friends were set at liberty. 

The main reason why the peasants when aroused, 
a determined and warlike race refused to do military 
service was, not that they disliked their new rulers, 
but that they detested the new Bill. The men of 
Berthier declared that if Governor Carleton would 
promise, and affix the promise to the church door, 
that he would do his best for the repeal of the Quebec 
Bill, they were ready to defend the Province. They 
said "that on a sudden, without any provocation on 
their part, they had been reduced to their former state 
of slavery. They were told to regard the invaders 
as enemies. But then the invaders said that they 
were not enemies but their best friends. The invaders 
were now in arms for the defence of the peasants 
from their oppressors; and made the repeal of the 
Quebec Bill one of the conditions for laying clown 
their arms. (Maseres papers). 

The conduct of the peasants drew out hints from 
the government, that their refusal to obey the seigneurs 
had justified the forfeiture of their lands, and that 
suits at law would be taken to dispossess them. The 
peasants admitted that they had incurred forfeiture, 
but were determined to hold possession of their lands 
by force. Happily for Canada and Great Britain, the 
soldier-statesman who governed the Province did not 
allow any actions for forfeiture to be taken. 

But it was not the peasants only to whom the 
Quebec Act was a menace and a grievance. The men 
of the towns held the measure in detestation. In 
Montreal, the captain of the French Canadian militia 
declared to Carleton "that his compatriots would not 
take arms as a militia unless His Excellency would 
assure them, on his honour, that he would use his 
utmost endeavours to get the Quebec Bill repealed." 
The governor thereupon gave the promise. 

The government of Canada felt that it had, in all 
justice and generosity, an irresistible claim on the 
Roman Catholic Church in the Province. It invoked 
the aid of the church to influence the peasants. But 
the children closed their ears against the advice of 



their mother, and steeled their hearts against her 
entreaties. (Maseres). 

After the conquest, the grand vicar and clergy of 
Quebec, the see being vacant by the death of its former 
occupant, Mgr. Pontbriant, applied to the Captain 
General, Murray, asking that their right to elect should 
be recognized. The governor transmitted the matter 
to the home authorities, and recommended the granting 
of the demand. In 1763 the law officers of the Crown 
decided that the Penal Laws against the Roman 
Catholics in the British Islands did not extend to the 
colonies. Accordingly, the Chapter of Quebec elected 
as their bishop, M. de Montgolfier, Superior of the 
Seminary of St. Sulpice, Montreal, a native of France 
who had held himself aloof from the British. The 
governor took exception to the nomination, and 
M. Briand, a Breton by birth, one of the canons and 
Grand Vicar of Quebec, was designated for the vacant 
Episcopate. M. Briand was chosen. In the same 
year, 1764, he visited London, and received, with the 
consent of the King, his bulls on investiture from 
Pope Clement XIII; and then repairing to Paris, was 
there consecrated. To the Province of Quebec, which 
had been without a bishop from 1760 to 1766, Mgr. 
Briand returned in the latter year, a stipendiary of 
the King of England to the extent of 200 sterling 
annually. His acceptance of the yearly pension, and 
his subsequent administration, contributed to his 
unpopularity and lessened his influence. It seemed, 
on his return to Canada, that he would exercise only 
the milder and more beneficent duties of his high 
office. In his reply to those who welcomed his arrival 
he deprecated pomp and ceremony. He told them that 
"he did not come into the province to be a bishop on 
the same high footing as his predecessors in the time 
of the French Government; that he was un simple 
faiseur de pretres a mere ordainer of priests." 

Mgr. Briand, in 1775, at the instance of the Govern 
ment issued an encyclical letter to the French Canadian 
people. In this epistle the bishop exhorted them to 
take up arms for the Crown against the American 
invaders. To those who obeyed, he promised indul 
gences. Over the heads of those who should refuse, 
he suspended the thunders of excommunication. The 
reception accorded to the letter was another instance 
of a phenomenon sometimes witnessed in history 
that when the political passions of men begin to boil, 
the elements of religious kinship and obligation begin 
to evaporate. The very quarrel then in progress 
between Great Britain and her colonies was proof to 
the point. 

The people not only turned deaf ears to the in unctions 
of the bishop, but expressed the opinion that his 



26 



action in the dispute was quite unsuitable to the 
character of a Christian prelate, who ought to have 
no concern in anything that involved the shedding 
of blood. They even went further than this. They 
assumed that Bishop Briand s conduct had been 
influenced by the pension of 200 a year he received 
from the King of England, and by the expectation 
he had formed of a larger gratuity. The French 
Canadians not only disobeyed their bishop, but went so 
far as to lampoon him in more than thirty songs, which 
were circulated during the summer of 1775. (Maseres). 

The situation Carleton had to face was certainly a 
perilous one. The army of occupation in Canada, 
owing to the exactions of the wars in Europe, had been 
reduced to an insignificant force. And according to 
Allison (History of Europe, chap, xci), the whole 1 military 
force of the empire did not amount to 20,000 men. 
The whole population of Canada consisted of 90,000 
souls, of whom perhaps 1,000 were English speaking. 
The population of the English colonies in revolt was 
3,000,000. 

The governor, realizing that it would be absolutely- 
impossible to raise a force under the old militia laws, 
or under any sort of compulsion, decided to do the 
best he could with the few men principally of the 
seigneur class and retired British soldiers who offered 
their services as volunteers. 

Here, perhaps, it might be explained, that although 
the French Canadian peasants refused in so many 
notable cases to serve in the militia, they showed 
less practical sympathy with the Continentals than 
did their neighbors of English speech, the larger pro 
portion of whom had drifted into Canada from the 
older English colonies. 

In an official list Carleton forwarded to England 
of "the principal persons settled in the province who 
very zealously served the rebels in the winter of 1775 
and 1776, and fled upon their leaving it" there does 
not appear one French Canadian name. The list in 
cluded 29 of Scottish, 21 of American, five of English 
and one of French (old France) birth. 

Blood was shed at Lexington and Concord in April, 
1775, and a few days afterwards. Colonel Warner, 
with a view, even at that early stage of affairs, of 
preparing for an expedition into Canada, obtained the 
mastery of Lake Champlain without any loss of men. 
The first invasion of Canada after its passing under 
British rule speedily followed. A detachment of 
revolutionary troops under Benedict Arnold was 
despatched down that old route of invasion the 
Richelieu River, and St. Johns, garrisoned by a ser 
geant and ten men, fell an easy prize about the end of 
May. 

A few days afterwards, June 10. this important 



fortress was retaken by M. de Belestre at the head of 
eighty Canadian volunteer militiamen raised in Mon 
treal and vicinity. The victory is one of great his 
torical interest as the first recorded feat of arms of a 
force of Canadian militia fighting alone under the flag 
of England. 

De Belestre s detachment included a goodly repre 
sentation of the blue-blood of New France, and several 
old officers of the former French militia, as attested 
by such names as the Chevalier de Belestre, de Lon- 
gueuil, de Lotbiniere, de Rouville, de Boucherville, 
de la Corne, de Labruiere, de St. Ours, Perthuis, Her- 
vieux, Gamelin, de Montigny, d Eschambault and 
others. 

For this service, General Carleton publicly thanked 
them. In September of the same year, this party, 
with the assistance of a number of Quebec and Three 
Rivers volunteers, viz : Messrs, de Montesson, Duches- 
nay. de Rigouvill, de Salaberry, de Tonancour, 
Beaubien, Demusseau, Moquin, Lamarque, Faucher 
and others, started for St. Johns to relieve a detach 
ment of the 7th and 26th regiments, then in charge of 
the fort, and who expected a siege, but after being 
beleaguered, the fort surrendered on the 2nd of Novem 
ber to General Montgomery. The Canadians and 
soldiers were carried away prisoners of war, Congress 
refusing to exchange the Canadians, "they being too 
much attached to the English government and too 
influential in their own country." Two, Messrs. 
de Montesson and de Rigouville, died prisoners of 
war; de la Corne, Perthuis and Beaubien had been 
killed during the siege; de Lotbiniere had an arm shot 
off; de Salaberry was twice wounded. The garrison 
under Preston made a gallant defense, successfully 
withstanding a fierce assault delivered during a severe 
storm. 

June 26, Carleton wrote to Lord Dartmouth from 
Montreal that with his best efforts he had only been 
able to assemble 500 men at Chambly and St. Johns, 
artillery included. 

July 1st, Lord Dartmouth wrote from Whitehall, 
authorizing Carleton to raise 3,000 men, either to act 
separately, or in conjunction with the regular troops, 
as should be deemed most expedient. The arms and 
clothing had been ordered, and the same pay would 
be given to officers and men as to the British regular 
troops. July 24th, in consequence of despatches 
received from Gage, Dartmouth again wrote ordering 
Carleton to raise 6,000, instead of 3,000 men. 

Carleton did everything he could to raise men, but 
apart from the corps organized in the leading centres 
of population, the number of militia recruits offering 
was very small. The governor offered tempting 
conditions. For men who would volunteer for the war 



27 



for each unmarried private he offered grants of 200 
acres of land, married ones 250 acres, besides 50 more 
for each of the children; the land to be held free of all 
imposts for 20 years. Yet these offers attracted few 
recruits. 

Carletou desired to succor St. Johns by means of the 
armed rural populations of the .Montreal and Three 
Hirers districts, but nearly the whole militia of the 
district of Three Rivers refused to march at the com 
mand of the governor. Some few hundreds of rural 
royalists, responding to the call to arms, assembled at 
.Montreal; but. perceiving that Carletou was dubious 
of their fidelity, most of them returned to their homes. 
The Chambly people joined a Continental detachment, 
and actually assisted in the capture of the fort at that 
place, but Carleton did not abandon hope of relieving 
the besieged garrison of St. Johns. The fort there 
was only a poor affair, planking being the only shelter 
afforded from the beseiger s fire, although the fort was 
the key of the frontier line of defence. Colonel Mac 
lean the commandant at Quebec led 300 of his 
militiamen as far as St. Denis, where he expected to 
be joined by Carleton with the Montreal militia, but 
thegovenror got no further than Longueuil, fearing 
to disembark, as he learned that some of his men 
contemplated joining the enemy. Maclean returned 
to Sorel, where nearly all of his men, being gained over 
by emissaries from the Chambly sympathisers, deserted 
to the enemy. This desertion, coupled with the 
inability of Carleton to rely upon his corps of 800 
militia raised in the Montreal district, left .Maclean 
with no alternative but to retreat to Quebec, and after 
a siege of 45 days, Fort St. Johns, with its garrison of 
500 men, surrendered. 

September 25, an attempt was made to take Montreal 
by surprise by Colonel Kthan Allen and Major Brown. 
Allen with 110 men crossed to the Island of Montreal, 
and was assured of assistance from sympathisers in 
the city, but was encountered and captured near 
Liingue Pointe by a force of 60 regulars and 300 of 
the town militia commanded by Major Garden, who 
was mortally wounded in the fight which took place 
before the invaders surrendered. 

At this time Montreal was a small place of 7,000 or 
S.OOO population and defended by a feeble and decided 
ly dilapidated wall. At one place a pile of rubbish 
was lying against the outside of the wall and reached 
almost to the top of it. In another place some of 
the citizens, in a delightful spirit of independence. 
had broken down a section of the wall to make a con 
venient entrance for the teams drawing wood into the 
city, thus saving a considerable detour to the nearest 
gate. Military defences had not been allowed to stand 
in the way of business convenience. There were rustv 



guns mounted in the little citadel, but their carriages 
were rotting away, and there were but few gunners to 
man them. The governor had barely enough regular 
soldiers for the guard, and only a portion of the militia 
could be depended upon. The English-speaking mer 
chants were generally dissatisfied, especially some of 
the leading ones, who had come from the older English 
colonies, and the people of the suburbs were practically 
friendly to the Continentals. This had been shown by 
the refusal of the suburbanites to deliver up their 
ladders to the garrison, the governor having deemed it a 
wise precaution, in view of the possibility of an attempt 
by escalade, to have all ladders placed in the citadel. 

November 12, 1775, when Montgomery s army 
crossed the St. Lawrence to the Island of Montreal, 
the energetic Carleton, made his escape by night in a 
boat from the lower part of the town. Montgomery 
simply had to march his men into the city to take 
possession. The Continental general explained to the 
inhabitants that being defenceless they could not 
stipulate terms, but he promised to respect their 
personal rights on condition that the keys of the public 
stores were turned over to him. 

The possession of the public stores was no insig 
nificant matter, for Montgomery found himself badly 
supplied with clothing, food and ammunition. As 
he advanced further from his base the wants of his 
army naturally became more acute. The campaigning 
about Lake Champlain and the Richelieu had been 
very rough and trying on equipment, and the Con 
tinental soldiers had been very glad to appropriate 
and don the reserve uniforms of British troops they had 
found in the military stores of St. Johns and Chambly. 
And so it happened that when Montgomery and his 
army entered Montreal by the Recollet Gate on 
November 13th, quite a number of the Continentals 
wore scarlet coats. 

The story of the siege of Quebec by the Continentals 
under Arnold and Montgomery belongs rather to the 
panes of national history than to this volume. 
On December the 22nd, Carleton ordered all who 
would not join in the defence of the city to leave it 
within four days. After their departure he found 
himself supported by 300 regulars, 330 Anglo-Canadian 
militia, 543 French Canadians, 485 seamen and ma 
rines, and 120 artificers capable of bearing arms. In 
all 1,778 men. 

A very important part was played in the repulse 
of the combined assault on Quebec by the Canadian 
militia. It was Captain Chabot, a militia officer, 
who gave the command to fire which swept the head 
of Montgomery s assaulting column away and laid 
the general himself low. A handful of Canadians 
opposed Arnold s column, holding their "round foot 



28 



by foot with groat obstinacy. When the Continentals 
planted their scaling ladders against the inner bar 
ricade on St. James Street, a town militiaman named 
dial-land, an intrepid and robust man, advanced 
amidst a shower o. balls, seized the ladders and drew 
them inside the barricade. This post was held by 
Captain Dumas militia company, and its relief was 
finally effected by Captain Marcoux s company rein 
forced by a few regulars. The elder Papineau (Joseph), 
served as a volunteer in Captain Marcoux s company. 

About the middle of .May. part of Arnold s army. 
which had retreated from before Quebec on the 6th, 
arrived in Montreal. Reinforcements were coming 
to the Continentals via the Richelieu, but so were 
British reinforcements, via the Atlantic. In June, 
Arnold and the remnant of his and Montgomery s 
armies reached Montreal, Arnold establishing his 
headquarters at the Chateau de Ramezay. He found , 
that but few Canadian sympathizers remained, for the 
failures of the Continentals and the energy of the 
British had a depressing effect upon the disloyal, and 
encouraged the French Canadian clergy and gentry to 
make redoubled efforts to wean the mass of the people 
from their temporary lapse of indifference. 

The merchants of Montreal, and the Canadian 
" habitants" as well, soon ceased to be indifferent. 
They found the ill-provided, half-starved, and generally 
mutinous Continentals very different from the well- 
found and thoroughly disciplined troops of the British. 
The Continentals, for want of money, seized goods 
on promises to pay, and the promises were never 
redeemed. The British paid for all the goods the 
merchants could spare, and for all the produce the far 
mers could supply, in good yellow gold. The Con 
tinental soldiers performed all kinds of arbitrary 
and illegal acts, and their officers would not or dare 
not bring them to book; while British soldiers charged 
with offences against even the local French colonial 
ordinances, the habitants remembered, had been 
promptly arrested, and even handed over to courts 
of which French Canadian militia officers officiated 
as judges, for trial. 

French Canadians, in several districts, took the 
field against the Continentals. 

Ogdensburg was still a British post, and fairly 
strongly held, and Arnold feared that the commander 
of the place might try a sudden dash upon Montreal 
via the St. Lawrence. To guard against such a con 
tingency he posted a considerable force at the Cedar 
Rapids, where any force descending the St. Lawrence 
would have to make a portage. Considerable con 
sternation and alarm was caused in the Montreal 
garrison when it became known that this party had 
been attacked and captured by a party of French 



Canadian militia, for the French Canadians all through 
the country were becoming more and more unfriendly 
and aggressively hostile. 

A retirement of the Continental garrison of Montreal 
was ordered without delay, and by June 16th the last 
Continental soldier had crossed the river. The ad 
vance guard of a British force from Quebec marched 
into the little citadel, the Union Jack was once more 
raised over Montreal, and there it has remained ever 
since. 

Once the Continental troops evacuated Canada 
there was 110 grave danger again during the war, 
owing to the arrival of strong reinforcements from 
England. 

Between 1776 and 17S:5. Governor Carleton main 
tained three companies of Canadian militia, raised In 
voluntary enlistment, on a war footing, and he de 
tailed a certain number of non-commissioned officers 
from these companies as well as from the regular 
regiments, to act as instructors of the sedentary 
militia, who had been enrolled after the old French 
method. 

As soon as the invaders had been expelled. Carleton 
set himself to work to endeavor to place the militia 
on a sound footing, but his time for some months was 
largely taken up providing for the large force of re 
gular and Hessian troops sent to Canada to operate 
against the revolting colonies by way of Lake Cham- 
plain and Lake George. He realized that the first 
thing to do was to prepare and have passed a militia 
ordinance clearly defining the authority of the govern 
ment and the duties to bo imposed upon the people. 

For various reasons he was led to favour the old 
French laws and customs as the basis of the new 
ordinance rather than the English militia law. Militia 
laws framed after the English model had been for 
years in existence in most of the Now England and 
southern colonies and had proved most defective, 
the generals commanding in the old French wars 
being never able to depend upon obtaining the levies 
ordered from the various colonies. Moreover, such 
levies as did reach the camps of mobilization wore 
often insubordinate and mutinous, and seldom amen 
able to ordinary discipline. 

On the other hand, the French militia laws and 
usages had put practically the whole male population 
in the field upon emergency, and kept them on service 
in a useful state. 

Carleton would naturally suppose, too. that the 
Canadians would prefer an ordinance similar to those 
to which they had boon accustomed, and of course the 
aeignorial influence about him would encourage him in 
that view. 

So it came to pass that at the historical session of 



29 



the Legislative Council held at Quebec in 1777, among 
the sixteen ordinances passed was one providing for 
the regulation of the militia, based largely upon the 
laws and practices which prevailed, or were supposed 
to have prevailed, during the French regime. Critics 
of the measure declared that the council was misled 
by the over-zealous seigneurs who had seats at their 
board, and charged that the new militia ordinance 
established for a common rule, obligations which were 
in New France never imposed on the militiamen, ex 
cepting under extraordinary circumstances, as when 
public spirit and popular readiness with regard to 
the defence of the colony exceeded the demands of 
the government. As a matter of fact the new ordin 
ance subjected the inhabitants to rigorous military 
service, such as to bear arms beyond Canada for an 
indefinite time, to do vicariously, agricultural labour 
for absentees serving in the army, etc.; all to be 
gratuitously performed, under heavy penalties for 
refusal or neglect. Provision was made for calling out 
the militia for corvee or statute labour, a very im 
portant duty, particularly with the need of making 
and keeping in repair the roads from Montreal to the 
scene of active operations on Lakes Champlain and 
George and the Upper Hudson. 

In a letter of Sir Guy Carleton to Lord George 
Germaine, dated Quebec, 2()th .May, 1777, he wrote - 
"Three hundred Canadian militia are also to make 
the campaign (Burgoyne s via Lake George and the 
Hudson), to be disposed of by Lieut. -General Bur- 
goyne, the same I had ordered while I flattered myself 
I should have the conduct of the war on the frontiers 
of this province, which Canadians, with those necessary 
for scouring the woods towards the New England 
provinces, and a great number which must be em 
ployed for the forwarding all things for those two 
expeditions, is, I think, in the first dawning of good 
order and obedience, as much as ought, in prudence, 
to be demanded from this unfortunate province." 

July 10, Carleton wrote Lord Germaine that the 
number of militia called out being insufficient, en 
couragement was given to volunteers. St. Luc La 
Come, Lanaudiere and others assembled about 170 
and joined the Western Indians under Campbell ; 
those from the interior of the province were led by 
Fraser. A corvee of 500 men for Burgoyne had gone off 
with a better grace than was expected. So soon as 
the transport was finished the number should be in 
creased. He would do everything possible to assist 
Burgoyne. These services were a burden on the people ; 
and there were difficulties in the way of restoring the 
old usages, especially as he had been deprived of sup 
port by the appointment of an inferior officer (Bur 
goyne) to the command of this army. There had been 



desertions among the armed militia force, but two men 
for each deserter had been ordered from the respective 
parishes. He enclosed the opinion of the new Attorney 
General as to the legal proceedings in such cases. In 
1775, he asked for no lawyer s opinion, but, having 
full confidence in the judgment of the ministers then, 
he took the steps that were necessary without waiting 
for orders. 

After the war the Canadian people appear to have 
devoted some attention to the question of defence. 
Considerable agitation arose against the militia laws 
on account of the provisions imposing statute labour 
upon the people, English and French being associated 
in the agitation. 

In the celebrated "Appeal" of Pierre du Calvet, 
whose name figures so prominently in the history of 
Montreal and the province of that time, published in 
1784, was a suggestion that a permanent regiment 
of two battalions be established in the province, with 
the ultimate object of expanding this force to provide 
for small detachments in each parish, to serve as an 
example and point d appui for the sedentary militia. 
Du Calvet suggested that the chief officers should be 
British, and discouraged the idea of recruiting from 
the militia, as the Canadians were required for the 
cultivation of the soil. Apparently his idea was that 
the subalterns and non-commissioned officers should 
be Canadians, the- superior officers and privates, 
British, the latter, probably, discharged men from the 
army. 

June 13th, 1787, Lord Dorchester (formerly Guy 
Carleton) wrote to Lord Sydney announcing the pass 
ing by the Council of "An Act to Regulate the Militia." 
The ordinance provided for detachments being em 
bodied for two years; Dorchester would have preferred 
three. He expressed the hope that the ordinance 
"would have the effect of curing the dangerous 
supineness produced by the disuse of all militia service 
to train up youth in discipline and obedience, and to 
teach the people that the defence of the country is 
their own immediate concern; and would provide for 
many natives and residents of distinction." 

The governor proceeded to explain that the corps 
to be raised under this ordinance may be increased 
as exigencies require, and always preserved complete. 
He asked leave to embody three battalions, two of 
Canadians and one of British or loyalists, on the 
same plan as those existing in England, except that 
the colonel should have neither pay nor emolument. 
The governor, in concluding his communication to 
the minister, wrote: "If this measure cannot be 
carried out in peace there is little hope of drawing 
out the strength of the country in case o" invasion." 

September 14th, the same year, Lord Sydney wrote 



30 



Dorchester that the proposal for the establishment 
of a Canadian militia was approved of, and that cloth 
ing for the proposed battalions would be sent out 
early in the spring. 

Sir Guy Carleton later added two battalions raised in 
Canada to the 60th Royal Americans, now the 60th 
Royal Rifles. The two new battalions, according to 
Mr. Suite, were placed under the command of Colonel 
Louis Joseph Fleury d Eschambault, an officer in 
H. M. 109th Regiment, whose father had been the 
richest and one of the most patriotic men in Xew 
France before the change of flags. The two bat 
talions so raised served not only in Canada, but in 
the Antilles, Jersey, Guernsey and elsewhere, but 
being annoyed at being considered, for purposes of 
promotion, etc., without the pale of the regular army, 
the officers asked for disbandment, which was ac 
corded. 

Early in 1788, Dorchester issued circulars to the 
lieut. -governors, the object being to show the people 
the necessity for standing forward in their own de 
fence. On the 9th of January he wrote Lord Sydney, 
drawing attention to the want of small arms, and 
recommending that 30,000 be sent, namely, 20,000 for 
Quebec (old province, which practically included the 
present province of Ontario), and 5,000 each for Nova 
Scotia and New Brunswick. He also urged the 
despatch to Canada of strong reinforcements of re 
gulars. 

September 25th, 1790, Lord Dorcheste wrote from 
Quebec to Mr. Grenvi le that the prospect of a war 
with Spain seemed a proper occasion to call on each 
of the Provinces for its own defence, so that the 
troops might be united for general defence. General 
orders respecting the militia had been ordered for 
this province, and copies sent to Nova Scotia and 
Xew Brunswick for consideration. The governor 
pointed out that corps formed from the militia were 
the only reinforcements that could be had on a sudden 
emergency. If a certain number of militia were 
kept always embodied, one-half or one-third to be 
discharged annually and replaced from the mass, it 
would be the means of restoring habits of mi itary 
service, and revive a spirit of national defence. It 
was the wisest course to rely on the people for their 
own defence. 

In 1791, the Constitutional Act was passed dividing 
the old colony of Quebec into two provinces, Upper 
and Lower Canada; from which time, until the pass 
age of the Act of Union in 1842. the militias of Upper 
and Lower Canada were distinct forces under separate 
staffs and separate laws. 

While the Constitutional Act was under discussion, 
Lord Dorchester, the governor, urged upon the British 



government the importance of establishing "a res 
pectable militia." He wrote: "To effect this in 
Canada a law was passed in 1787, enabling the governor 
to embody draughts to serve for two years in rotation, 
under a permanent corps of officers. This measure 
has not yet been carried into execution. It should 
be extended to all the king s colonies. Without it 
the dominion of Great Britain on the continent of 
America will always be precarious. A quantity of 
small arms should also be deposited in the king s 
colonies for use of the militia in general in case of 
emergency." 

To this Lord Grenville replied: "It is conceived 
that Lord Dorchester might be instructed to propose 
a new law to the Legislature for embodying twoor 
three battalions of militia, stating the time of service 
to be for two or three years, and then to have fresh 
ballots, and so to proceed as often as the militia is 
called out at the end of every two or three years. This 
would be an Act for a regular permanent militia. But 
Query? Whether it would be necessary to keep the 
same embodied more than a month or six weeks, in 
every year, during which time only the men arid officers 
are to be paid. 

"The expense otherwise would be considerable. 

"The other particulars mentioned by Lord Dor 
chester seem proper. 

" It appears by the 5th suggestion that no steps 
were taken to carry into execution the Militia Act 
passed in Canada in 1787, and I am of opinion that 
it might now be a proper measure to propose a per 
manent Militia Act, which as far as local circum 
stances will admit of, should be in the general out 
lines of its formation in a great measure similar to our 
own. 

"The time of service I apprehend should not be 
less than three nor more than five years, and then 
each corps to be renewed by fresh ballots. But 
neither the men nor officers should receive any pay 
except during the time they remain embodied, such 
time not to be less than - - in every year and only 
one-half of the militia to be called out. At the same 
time there should be a provision to enable the governor, 
at his discretion, to call the whole out at any time, 
but not to keep them embodied longer than - - weeks 
without the consent of the Legislature of the pro 
vince . 

" I will only add that the Act for so important a 
measure as the constituting of a permanent militia 
should either be transmitted home for His Majesty s 
usseii; or rather a copy of the Bill before its passage 
thro the Provincial Legislature. 

" It will be certainly necessary to deposit a pro 
portionable quantity of small arms within the pro- 



31 



vince, and it will lie equally so that some coercive 
mode should be adopted for their preservation, and 
their regular and frequent production." 

The arrival of H. R. H. the Duke of Kent, father 
of her late .Majesty Queen Victoria, at Quebec in 1791, 
as Colonel of the 7th Royal Fusiliers, (City of London 
Regiment), is an even! of some interest to the Canadian 
militia. During his sojourn in Quebec the Duke made 
himself very agreeable with leading French Canadian 
families, and was instrumental in securing commis 



sions in the regular army for some dozen young French 
Canadians, several of whom have left their mark 
on the militia force and on national history. Among 
these proteges of the Duke were four of the de Sala- 
berry family, two of that of Juchereau-Duchesnay. 
and two of that of Des Rivieres. 

Meantime France had been passing through the 
revolutionary period, and the long-threatened war 
between the two mother countries of the Canadian 
people had broken out. 




An example of 1 opulai Interest in the South African Contingents. 
Crowds at Quebec watching the Departure til the Sardinian," October 30th, 1S!! .I. 



3-2 





CHAPTER IV 



THE UPPER CANADA MILITIA 



THE ORIGINAL ORGANIZATION- U.VIMCH GOVERNOR SIMCOK. THE BRITISH MODEL OF THE Xi:\v FORCE. 

Tin; AVAR OF 1812 AND THE REBELLION OF 1837-38. 



BY the Constitutional Act two provinces, " Lower 
Canada" and "Upper Canada," wore created 
out of what was left of the original Province 
of Quebec after the treaty of peace with the Tinted States. 
To each province was left the regulation of its militia. 

At the time of the cession the territory comprised 
within the Province of Upper Canada was virtually a 
wilderness. There were trading posts at a few places 
and a respectable frontier military post or rather 
its ruins at Frontenac. now Kingston. Practically 
there was no settlement and no militia. 

Immediately succeeding the conquest there was a 
small influx of immigration into the Upper Canadian 
wilderness but it remained for the great upheaval 
of the American Revolution to furnish the province 
with her first settlement of any great account. The 
story of the United Empire Loyalists, of their pathetic 
and noble loyalty, of their sacrifices, their hardships, 
and their settlement in what is now the Province of 
Ontario, in the Eastern Townships of Quebec, and in New 
Brunswick, isapartofthe national history of this country 
and a part which will never be forgotten by the people 
of Canada. 

By 1791, thanks largely to the scttlemeir of the 
United Empire Loyalists, the population of Upper 
Canada had attained such dimensions as to give weight 
to the expressed wish of the inhabitants, to whom the 
French laws and usages of the old the Province of Quebec 



were irksome, that they be accorded a separate govern 
ment, hence the Constitutional Act. In the light 
of present development, the population of Upper 
Canada at that time does not seem very considerable, 
being only about twenty-five thousand, but it was a 
population strongly imbued with pure patriotic prin 
ciples and high military spirit. 

We are able to form some idea of the feelings of the 
men of Upper Canada of that time from the knowledge 
that the first business of the second session of the first 
parliament of Upper Canada, March 31st, 1793. was 
the passage of a Militia Act (33 George III. Chap. 1). 

Up to this time, according to section xxxiii of the 
Constitutional Act (31st George III. Chap, xxxi) all 
laws, statutes and ordinances which had been in force 
in the original Province of Quebec continued to be 
of the same force, authority and effect in the province 
as if the Act in question had not been passed. 

The original Upper Canada Militia Act was drafted 
by Governor Simcoe himself and provided for the 
organization of the provincial militia on a system 
very closely indeed approximating to that then existing 
in England. This English militia system had been the 
development of many centuries of experience and 
legislation, and a brief review of that development 
is essential to a clear appreciation of the principles 
which guided the original organizer of the provincial 
militia of Upper Canada in his work. 



33 



The actual origin of the English militia is lost in 
antiquity. The Roman invasion was stoutly resisted 
by armed tribes resembling a militia and possessing 
both organization and military ability. 

Under the Anglo-Saxon kings of England, when the 
question of defcmv against the Scots, the Welsh, and 
particularly the Danes and other over-sea raiders, 
was a very live one in England, all men were required 
to bear arms as a sort of body-rent for the land they 
held, but there was no special organization until 
King Alfred s reign. That wise sovereign about the 
year 880, organized the militia or fyrd, making land 
the basis of numbers, but the family system that of 
discipline. So many families were a tything, ten 
tythings a hundred, and hundreds were united into 
county powers, each under its heretoga, leader, dux 
or duke. Each section of the community had not 
only to furnish its quota in time of war, but also to 
provide arms, keep them in repair, and train its men 
or "general levy" for so many days every year. 

Britain was not by any means, as often stated, the 

home of the militia system. The most ancient national 

military organization of which we have any authentic 

record is the great military caste of Egypt, really a 

national militia. The defensive force of Egypt at the 

command of the Pharoahs of the Old Testament, 

eighteen centuries before the Christian era, consisted 

of the soldier-farmer caste, the men of which were 

agriculturists in peace time; soldiers in time of war. 

The occupancy and tillage o" the soil imposed upon 

them the obligation to military service, and each man 

provided himself with his own arms and had to be in 

readiness to serve when called upon. The old Egyptian 

armies chiefly depended upon the number and skill 

of their archers, who fought either on foot or in chariots. 

Scarcely any representations of Egyp ian cavalry are 

found on the monuments, but frequent mention is 

made in Holy writ of the horsemen of Egypt, as 

accompanying Joseph, as pursuing the Israelites, and 

as being thrown in the Red Sea. 

But to return to the militia force in Britain. After 
the Norman conquest, A.D. 1066, the baronial troops 
introduced with the continental feudal system, rendered 
the militia largely unnecessary, but it never ceased 
wholly to exist, and when the period of contention 
between the Crown and the barons began, the kings 
found their most powerful instrument in the Saxon 
militia. 

It is after the Norman conquest that we first hear of 
the "feudal levy" in addition to the "general levy" 
of Saxon days, the distinction between these forces 
being that while obligation to serve in the latter rested 
upon being a male, within certain limits of age, service in 
the " feudal levy " depended upon tenure of land under 

34 



the king, as feudal lord. The general levy probably 
constituted the larger part of the infantry, while the 
feudal levy consisted of knights, who. with their re 
tainers, mounted and a-med, were bound to attend 
the king at their own expense. 

Henry II established in 1181 "an assize of arms," 
at which every holder of land was bound to produce 
one or more men fully equipped and capable of fighting 
in the national defence. An Act passed in the reign 
o: Edward I. (13 Edward I., cap. 16) decreed that 
every freedman between the age of fifteen and sixty 
was to be available to preserve peace within his county 
or shire, and liable to serve elsewhere "upon the 
coming of strange enemies into the realm." During 
the reigns of Mary and Elizabeth, the statutes bearing 
upon the military obligations of subjects were con 
solidated, and the Lieutenants of Counties were con 
stituted as the agents of the Crown for the purpose 
of effecting levies for the internal defence of the 
country. 

In 1604, four years before Champlain founded 
Quebec, James I. abolished the old Saxon "fyrd," 
and substituted "trained bands," a force being estab 
lished numbering 160,000 men, partaking of the nature 
both of volunteers and militia, but deficient in dis 
cipline and drill. 

During the reign of Charles I. (1625 to 1648), fre 
quent disputes arose between the King and the Parlia 
ment as to the command of the "trained bands," 
and during a Parliamentary debate on this subject the 
name militia appears to have been first given to the 
trained bands. A Parliamentarian of the day, White- 
locke, piously expressed his regret "that this great 
word, this new word, the militia/ this harsh word," 
had ever been introduced in the House. 

One of the first acts after the restoration, was one 
to establish the militia on a constitutional basis, 
owners of property, by the Act of 1662, being obliged 
to furnish horses, horsemen, foot soldiers, and arms 
in proportion to their property. The similarity of 
this system and that of feudal days, when the nobility 
were called upon to supply their quota of retainers, 
must strike any one. In 1757, the English militia, 
having been several times called out in the meantime 
on active service, a re-organization took place, and 
the obligation to supply the men, horses, etc., was 
transferred from the owners of property to the counties 
and parishes, which had to provide fixed quotas. 
Obligatory service by ballot was also introduced. 
The period of service was for three years, the age 
limits being 18 to 50, with certain exemptions. An 
Act passed in 1758 was the first to officially recognize 
volunteers as counting toward the quota. 

It was in 1794, a year later than the passage of 



Governor Simcoe s Militia Act, that Mr. Pitt passed 
his bill "for the encouragement and discipline of 
the British volunteers, and made his historical appeal 
to the "gentlemen and yeomanry" in each county, 
and as a result of which the Fencible or Militia Cavalry 
began to be called "Volunteer Yeomanry Cavalry." 

Ireland and Scotland did not furnish any regular 
militia until 1715 and 1797 respectively, although in 
Scotland, militia existed long before 1797, namely, in 
Perthshire, in 1684. The Irish militia when first 
raised, in 1715, was restricted to Protestants between 
the ages of 16 and 60. 

In accordance with his wish to follow, as far as 
possible, the English militia system, Simcoe intro 
duced by his first Militia Act into Upper Canada the 
office of Lieutenants of Counties, an office held in 
England by gentlemen or noblemen of loyalty and 
distinction, as military deputies for the king, for the 
government of the militia in their respective counties. 
On the division of the counties or ridings, Simcoe 
appointed a lieutenant in each whose duty was 1 he 
delimitation of the militia districts, with a general 
oversight and power or recommendation of officers 
to the command of the militia force. Simcoe s views 
on this subject are found in a letter he wrote to Col. 
Alex. McKee on his appointment to the office of 
Lieutenant of Essex County, as follows: 

" It may not be improper to observe that this high 
office, under the constitution of Britain, is generally 
conferred upon the persons who seem most respectable 
to His Majesty s Government, for their property, loyalty, 
abilities, and discretion in their several counties, and 
from a combination of such possessions and qualities, 
acquire that weight, respect, and public confidence 
which render them the natural support of constitutional 
authority. If on the one hand this office has been at 
all times bestowed by the Sovereign with the circum 
spection and caution due to the important trusts which 
it involves, on the other it has been a principal object 
of honourable ambition, which the British Constitution 
approves, in the first men of the state, making a due 
provision of power for that local aristocracy which 
the experience of ages has approved necessary to the 
balance and permanency of her inestimable form of 
government." 

The office of Lieutenant of Counties does not seem to 
have suited the conditions of the new country, and it 
did not last long. The granting of commissions in 
the militia was preferred to be vested directly in the 
Crown, without the intermediation of the Lieutenants 
of Counties. In this only did Simcoe s plan fail of 
success. 

The governing principle of this first militia law, 
and the principle has been retained ever since, was 



practically universal liability to service. With certain 
very natural limitations, the whole male population 
bet ween the ages of 16 and 50, composed the militia. 
Every lad on attaining the age of sixteen was obliged 
to enroll himself with the militia officer in charge of 
the district under penalty, for neglect, of a fine of four 
dollars. This first militia of Upper Canada was some 
thing more than a sedentary militia; though not much 
more perhaps. The force was divided into regiments 
and companies, and every company had to be paraded 
and inspected by its captain at least twice a year, a 
serious enough obligation in those days, with the 
difficult means of communication taken into considera 
tion. Though there was no provision for pay for these 
parades, the officer who absented himself was liable 
to a fine of eight dollars, and the private to one of 
two dollars for each offence. 

There was no provision in this Act for the training 
of the officers and non-commissioned officers, a most 
obvious shortcoming for any practical militia enact 
ment, but it must be remembered that a goodly pro 
portion of the most influential settlers of Upper Canada, 
from whom officers and non-commissioned officers 
would naturally be drawn, were men who had served 
their king and country long and faithfully in the ranks of 
regular or colonial regiments. The country at this 
particular time had in fact all the trained officers it 
was likely to require, and it must not be forgotten that 
many of the more ordinary pioneer settlers of those 
days, the men who would compose the rank and 
file of the infant militia force, were also men who had 
seen military service. In fact the whole male popula 
tion ofthose days, whetherof anyprevious military exper 
ience or not, werewell qualified bytheverynatureof their 
pioneer existence to play the part of soldiers, upon 
emergency, well and usefully. So the brave old Sim 
coe s militia Act was well devised for the particular 
occasion upon which it was required, although under 
existing conditions it would have been absolutely 
worthless. In fact it was not long before the rapidly 
changing conditions of the country, and the equally 
rapid changes in the character of the population, made 
radical amendments absolutely necessary. 

The first enrollment under this Act produced a force 
of 4,213. The result appears to have fallen short of 
expectations, and in the following year (1794) the 
Militia Act of Upper Canada was amended so as to 
make men up to sixty years of age eligible for the militia, 
and the scope of the force was at the same time ex 
tended, the militiamen becoming liable for service 
on the war vessels on the lakes. 

This was a stirring time for Europe, and also for 
Canada. The French revolution, with its excesses 
and upheavals, affected the whole world. Continental 

35 



Europe stood aghast; England girded up her loins 
for the inevitable conflict. 

In 1793, Genest, the Ambassador of the French 
Directory in the United States, began to fit out private 
ers against British commerce. The anti-federalists 
(or Democrats) encouraged him, and when France 
declared war upon Britain they urged that the United 
States should enter into alliance with the new French 
republic in return for the assistance France had given 
during the Revolutionary War. George Washington, at 
this time in his second term as President of t lie United 
States, requested the French Government to recall 
Genest, and the request was complied with. The war 
fever he was fostering subsided considerably upon the 
recall of the French agitator, but while it lasted it 
caused considerable excitement in Canada, particularly 
in the infant Province of Upper Canada, which con 
sidered itself, as it were, between two fires the zealous 
hatred of the tyrannical democracy of the United States 
on the one hand, and the, to thorn, questionable fidelity 
of the French-Canadians of Lower Canada on the other. 
And there remained after the recall of Genest other 
causes for threatening agitations and war talk in the 
United States. The western Indians were firm in 
their demands that the United States withdraw from 
the country north of the Ohio, and, of course, the 
United States would do nothing of the kind. It was 
claimed that the obstinacy of the Indians was due to 
British interference, based upon a desire to keep the 
Indian country under the British flag. The retention 
of Detroit and the western posts was pointed to as 
proof of Britain s determination to keep the United 
States hemmed in to the westward. .Britain had no 
such designs, for she repeatedly called upon the 
government of the United States to do its part towards 
fulfilling the articles of the treaty of peace of 1783 
with respect to the confiscated property of the expelled 
loyalists and the debts due them, promising that as 
soon as that was done the British troops would be 
withdrawn from the western posts. The out-and-out 
democrats agitated, "talked war" and urged the 
conquest of Canada. Probably only the great- 
personal influence of George Washington preserved 
peace at this juncture. Jefferson, Madison, and the 
whole of their party were wholly in sympathy with 
the French revolution, and adopted even the extra 
vagant dress and symbols of the Sans-Culottes of Paris. 
The anxiety naturally created in the minds of the 
Upper Canadians by this agitation for war in the 
United States was increased by a scheme for the 
invasion of Canada from Louisiana by French, 
Spanish and Indian forces via the Mississippi and 
Michigan. The project never materialized, as President 
Washington, much to the indignation of Jefferson, 

36 



Madison and the Democrats, refused to allow a Franco- 
Spanish army to traverse United States territory to 
attack the colony of a friendly power. 

It was under these circumstances that the Militia 
Act of 1794 was passed with a view to making the 
Upper Canada militia more efficient. Heretofore the 
militiamen had been expected to provide their own 
arms. 

During this year there was a considerable distribu 
tion of arms throughout the province at the public- 
expense. A general Indian war had been in progress 
in the western part of the United States, and General 
Wayne, after defeating the Shawnees with great 
slaughter, declared his intention to attack Detroit 
and the other British posts in the west. It was as 
much as Washington and his government could do 
to persuade the general from carrying out his threat. 
Governor Simcoe, while this invasion was threaten 
ing, acting on instructions from Lord Dorchester, the 
Governor-General, quietly called out 600 of the new 
Upper Canadian militia for active service. Two 
hundred of these men were placed in garrison at 
Detroit, still held by Britain, the remaining four hun 
dred being disposed along the Niagara frontier. 

This force remained on duty until the signing of the 
treaty concluded by John Jay, Washington s special 
ambassador, and Lord Grenville, in 1794. 

This same year of anxiety and threatened invasions 
(1794) also saw the organization of the Royal Canadian 
Volunteer Regiment, the first battalion of which was 
recruited exclusively in Lower Canada; the second 
battalion of nine companies drawing some of its officers 
and recruits from Lower Canada, ami the rest from 
the Upper Province, chiefly from among the United 
Empire Loyalists of Glengarry. This regiment proved 
the training school for many of the best militia officers 
of 1812. 

After the American Revolution, the district which 
now forms the Counties of Stormont, Dundas and 
Glengarry, was set aside as one of the places of settle 
ment for the United Empire Loyalists, expelled from 
their homes in the United States. A large majority 
of the United limpire Loyalists who went to the 
district were Scottish Highlanders, descendants of 
men who, after Culloden had been transported to the 
southern plantations in the Carolinas and Georgias. 
During the brief peace of 1802, among other veteran 
regiments which had fought against the F ench, 
disbanded, was (lie Glengarry Regiment" of Roman 
Catholic Highlanders, raised by the Rev. Father 
Alexander McDonnell, of Glen Urquhart, who, as the 
regiment s chaplain, accompanied it on its campaigns. 
On its disbandment he obtained aid from the British 
Government to transport the men to Canada., and he 



accompanied them, joining the Highlander loyalists 
from the Southern States in the Glengarry District. 
The brave chaplain to the Glengarry Regiment rose 
to the Episcopate and died, universally beloved, 
Bishop of Kingston. 

Under Governor Simcoe s militia laws, each county 
has its own militia regiment looking formidable enough 
on paper by reason of the lists of full complements of 
officers, but the ranks cannot have been very full, 
for there were not at this time more than 12,000 white 
people, men, women and children, in the whole of 
Upper Canada. 

In 1801 the Militia Act was amended to a trifling 
extent, but the change was not productive of much 
good. 

By 1805. with Britain, fighting on in her old grim way 
in Europe, almost isolated, with Canada practically 
denuded of regular troops, and with the spirit of 
hostility developing apace in the United States, the 
question of national defence had again assumed serious 
importance. The militia were especially warned to 
hold themselves in readiness, and some 4,000 stands 
of arms were distributed among them. A return of 
the militia showed that there were 652 officers and 
7,947 non-commissioned officers and men enrolled, 
but also revealed the disquieting fact that of the whole 
number only 200 had received any training for several 
years. 

During 1807 one fifth of the whole militia of the 
sister Province of Lower Canada was called out em 
bodied, and trained. November 26, the same year, 
Governor Gore of Upper Canada issued a circular to 
Lieutenants of Counties directing them to ca l out the 
militia, and by volunteers or by ballot, to form de 
tachments of one-quarter of the whole, which after 
being inspected and dismissed, were to be held in 
readiness to assemble at an hour s notice. 

In 1808, at the fourth session of the fourth Parlia 
ment of Upper Canada, all of the existing Acts, relative 
to the militia were repealed their provisions, with some 
vitally important amendments, being consolidated into 
one comprehensive Act (Chap. 48, George III), which 
received the assent of Lieutenant-Governor Gore, 
March 16th. 1808. 

The new Act provided for much more organization 
within the militia, and enabled the Governor to march 
the militia out of the province to the assistance of 
Lower Canada when invaded or in a state of insurrec 
tion, or in pursuit of an enemy "who may have invaded 
this Province, and also for the destruction of any vessels 
built or building, or any depot or magazine formed 
or forming, or for the attack of an enemy who may be 
embodying or marching for the purpose of invading 
this province, or for the attack of any fortification now 



erected or which may be hereafter erected to cover 
the invasion thereof." 

Among the provisions of this important Act were the 
following: Officers in the regular army were given 
precedence over militia officers. Each district was to 
have its regiment, and each company its own limits. 
The limits of age were fixed at 16 to 60. those between 
50 and 60 being exempted, except in case of emergency. 
There was an annual muster day, a mere formal, per 
sonal enrollment, and the man absenting himself was 
liable to a penalty of a fine of two dollars. The Act 
still adhered to the original Saxon militia rule as to 
armament, providing as follows: Each militiaman, 
after enrollment, shall within six months after such 
enrollment provide himself with a good and efficient 
musket, fusil, rifle or gun. with at least such six rounds 
of powder and ball." For failure to comply with 
this law he was liable to a fine of five shillings in 
peace time, and a larger one in war time, unless excused 
by his commanding officer. 

Training was aimed at, but in a very modest and 
imperfect manner. The law obliged captains to call 
out their companies not less than twice nor oftener 
than four times each year for arm inspection and 
training. 

One clause of the Act, the 31st, authorized the 
formation of troops of cavalry in the various regimen 
tal districts, and it was under this clause that fourteen 
years later the original troop of the present Governor- 
General s Body Guard, Toronto, was first raised. 

On the whole, this Act imposed serious obligations 
upon the male population of Upper Canada, and in 
view of the readiness with which they submitted to 
so many exacting terms of service it is difficult to 
understand how the United States politicians succeeded 
in inducing themselves to believe that they had but to 
"send a flag and a proclamation" to Canada to capture 
the country. They found their mistake in due course 
of time. 

At the session of 1811 a bill was passed providing for 
the raising and training of the Upper Canada militia, 
and on the 30th of September of the same year Lieu 
tenant-Go vernor Francis Gore resigned the government 
of Upper Canada into the hands of Major General 
Isaac Brock, formerly commandant of the garrison of 
Quebec, and of the British troops in Canada. 

The parliament of Upper Canada in 1812 voted 
o.OOO pounds sterling for the training of the provincial 
militia. The population of the province was small 
compared with the older province, and its revenue 
comparatively insignificant. At the close of the war 
the whole population of Upper Canada did not quite 
number 84,000 souls. This makes the successful 
defence o 1 the country, considering the small number 

37 



of regular troops in the province, all the more remark 
able. 

On the breaking out of hostilities with the United 
States in 1812 the regular force in Upper Canada 
amounted to barely 1,500 men, including seamen, as 
under: 41st Regiment, 900; 10th Veterans, 250; 
Newfoundland Regiment, 250; Royal Artillery, 50; 
Provincial Seamen, 50; total, 1,500. 

This force had to occupy the forts St. Joseph, Am- 
herstburg, and Chippawa, Fort Erie and Fort George, 
and York and Kingston to maintain the superiority 
on the lakes; to preserve the communication and 
escort convoys between Coteau du Lac and Kingston; 
and to defend an assailable frontier of nearly 800 miles, 
reckoning from the confines of Lower Canada to 
Amherstburg. 

At this critical juncture in its history, Upper Canada 
had a tower of strength in its active and clever governor, 
General Isaac Brock. While in command for several 
years of the garrison in Quebec Brock had evinced an 
intelligent interest in the defence of the L T pper Province. 

As commander of the troops in Canada at the time, 
on October 6 1807, Colonel Brock was written to at 
Quebec by Lieutenant Governor Sir Francis Gore 
as follows: 

" I must again beg leave to direct your attention to 
the present situation of our militia, being almost 
without arms, and I consider it to be my duty to call 
upon you for a further supply, and that this supply 
may be forwarded to Upper Canada in the most 
expeditious manner. If the militia were properly 
armed, I then might be enabled to assist the Lower 
Province." 

A marginal note in pencil showed that Brock had 4,000 
stand of arms forwarded at once to York. 

February 12th, 1807, Colonel Brock wrote from 
Quebec to the Right Hon. W. Windham of the British 
government, as follows: 

QUEBEC, February 12, 1807. 

I have the honour to transmit for your consideration 
a proposal of Lieut.-Colonel John M Doiiald, late of 
the Royal Canadian Volunteers, for raising a corps 
among the Scotch settlers in the county of Glengarry, 
Upper Canada. 

When it is considered that both the Canadas furnish 
only two hundred militia who are trained to arms, the 
advantages to be derived from such an establishment 
must appear very evident. 

The military force in this country is very small, and 
were it possible to collect it in time to oppose any 
serious attempt upon Quebec, the only tenable post, 
the number would of itself be insufficient to ensure a 
vigorous defence. 

This corps, being stationed on the confines of the 



Lower Province, would be always immediately and 
essentially useful in checking any seditious disposition 
which the wavering sentiments of a large population 
in the Montreal district might at any time manifest. 
In the event of invasion, or other emergency, this 
force could be easily and expeclitiously transported by 
water to Quebec. 

The extent of the country which these settlers occupy 
would make the permanent establishment of the staff 
and one sergeant in each company very advisable. 
I shall not presume to say how far the claims of the 
field officers to the same indulgence are reasonable 
and expedient. 

In regard to the Rev. Alexander M Donald, * I beg 
leave to observe, that the men being all Catholics, it 
may be deemed a prudent measure to appoint him 
chaplain. His zeal and attachment to government 
were strongly evinced whilst filling the office of chap 
lain to the Glengarry Fencibles, during the rebellion 
in Ireland, and were graciously acknowledged by His 
Royal Highness the commander-in-chief. 

His influence over the men is deservedly great, and 
I have every reason to believe that the corps, by his 
exertions, would be soon completed, and hereafter 
become a nursery, from which the army might draw a 
number of hardy recruits. 

The original proposal was not entertained, but 
November 21, 1811, Colonel Baynes writing to Major 
General Brock at York, from Quebec, stated: "Gover 
nor Gore has revived the formation of the Glengarry 
Fencibles, and I have shown Sir George Prevost what 
passed on a former occasion. I hope the latter will 
be able to provide for his school-fellow, Major General 
Sheaffe, and he expresses himself very anxious to do so. 

December 12, the same year Colonel Baynes wrote to 
Major-General Brock, from Quebec, as follows: 
(Official) 

" I am directed to transmit herewith a copy of 
proposals for raising a corps of Glengarry Fencibles. 
The commander of the forces has selected an officer 
of the king s regiment, a Captain George M Donnell, 
an avowed Catholic, and a relation of the Glengarry 
priest of that name, to attempt the formation of a 
small battalion, to be in the first instance under his 
command with the rank of major; and in case a more 
respectable body can be collected, a lieutenant colone.l 
commandant will be appointed. Captain M Donnell 
will leave this in a few days, and he will be directed to 
take an early opportunity of communicating with you 
as soon as he has felt his ground a little in Glengarry, 
and is able to form a correct idea of the prospect and 
extent of success that is likely to attend his exertions. 

* Afterwards R.C. Bishop of Regiopolis, in Upper Canada. 



" I shall have the honor of sending you by the next 
post a regulation for the payment of clergymen per 
forming religious duties for the troops at the different 
stations in Canada. The officiating clergyman at York 
will receive the garrison allowance of a captain, together 
with a salary of 70 pounds army sterling per annum. 
(Private) 

" Sir George will fill up the new Glengarry corps with 
as many officers as he can from the line, with permanent 
rank, and I have availed myself of the opportunity to 
propose one, in whose advancement I know you feel 
an interest. He has allowed me to note Lieutenant 
Shaw, of the 49th, for a company ; and you are at liberty 
to inform his father, the general, of Sir George s 
favourable intentions towards his son." 

Brock wrote from York, U.C., January 2, 1812, as 
follows : 
Sir, 

I have the honor to acknowledge Your Excellency s 
letter (duplicate) of the 13th ulto., stating that Cap 
tain Macdonnell of the King s Regiment has been 
directed to proceed to Glengarry for the purpose of 
ascertaining the disposition of those people to form 
a Fencible corps. The favourable terms which Your 
Excellency has authorized Captain Macdonnell to 
offer cannot fail of success, and I beg leave to assure 
Your Excellency that I shall gladly lend my best efforts 
in aid of so desirable an object. 

I have the honor to be, Sir, 

Your Excellency s most obedient 
and very humble servant, 

ISAAC BROCK, M.-Gen l. 
To His Excellency, Lt.-Gen l Sir Geo. Prevost, &c., &c., 

It will be observed that Brock s original plan had 
been considerably altered, the new plan providing for 
a regularly embodied corps. 

Brock, from York, Feb. 6, 1812, wrote Sir George 
Provost, as follows: 

"I am happy to inform Your Excellency that the 
House of Assembly which met last Monday appears 
disposed to meet my wishes in every particular. The 
Militia Act is to undergo a revision much for the better, 
and I am not without the hope of being able to get 
the House to consent to allow the field officers of the 
line to command all denominations in the militia." 

The gallant general was doomed to disappointment, 
and February 25th he wrote Sir George Prevost as 
follows : 

" I had every reason to expect the almost unanimous 
support of the two branches of the legislature to every 
means government thought necessary to recommend, 
but after a short trial found myself egregiouslv mistaken 
in my calculation. 

"The many doubtful characters in the militia made 



me very anxious to introduce the oath of abjuration 
into the bill. There were twenty members in the 
House when this highly important measure was lost 
by the casting vote of the Chairman. The great 
influence which the vast number of settlers from the 
United States possess over the decisions of the Lower 
House is truly alarming, and ought by every practical 
means to be diminished. To give encouragement to 
real subjects to settle in this province can alone re 
move the evil. The consideration of the fees ought 
not to stand in the way of such a politic arrangement, 
and should your Excellency ultimately determine 
to promise some of the vast lands of the Crown to such 
Scotch emigrants as enlist in the Glengarry Regiment, 
I have no hesitation in recommending in the strongest 
manner the raising of a Canadian corps upon similar 
terms, to be hereafter disbanded and distributed 
among their countrymen in the vicinity of Amherstburg. 

At the session of the legislature of 1812, at Brock s 
request, militia laws were passed which enabled him 
to organize the flank companies of the militia, unac 
companied, however, by the desired oath of abjuration 
so as to exclude settlers from the United States and 
persons of doubtful loyalty. 

Brock, on April 22, wrote Sir Geo. Prevost that In- 
had by partial and gentle means, already commenced 
to give the new law operation, and he had not the least 
doubt that a sufficient number would be found ready 
to volunteer to complete the flank companies. He 
added: "I here beg leave to call Your Excellency s 
attention to the clause which authorizes the training 
of the flank companies six times in each month; but 
as no provision is made for remunerating the men, I 
presume to submit for Your Excellency s indulgent 
consideration, that the commissaries be instructed 
to issue rations for the number actually present at 
exercise. These companies, I expect, will be composed 
of the best description of inhabitants, who in most 
cases will have to go a great distance to attend parade; 
and, unless this liberal provision be allowed, will be 
liable to heavy expense, or be subject to considerable 
privations. According to my present arrangements 
the number embodied will not exceed 700, and when the 
companies are completed throughout the province, 
they must be calculated at 1,800; and, as during harvest 
and the winter months few or no parades will take place, 
the total expense attending the measure can be of no 
material consequence in a pecuniary point of view, 
and may in a political light be productive, at this 
juncture, of considerable benefit." 

These flank companies were the back bone of the 
Upper Canada militia during the war. 

The battalion of incorporated militia, which is spoken 
of so frequently in histories of the war, and which 



so heavily at Lundy s Lane, was a Canadian 
regular regiment recruited in 1813, almost exclusively 
from among the men of these flank companies. The 
flank companies were really regarded as the active 
part or first line of the militia; the bulk of each regi 
ment, formed when an emergency called for its em 
bodiment into companies, called the service companies, 
being considered as a reserve, only called out when 
absolutely necessary. 

Brock thus practically divided the militia into two 
distinct classes, first, a voluntarily enrolled, organized, 
trained, available body an active force ; and, secondly, 
the rest of the militia liable by law for service, but not 



the "local militia" being organized into regiments. 
the men, from 18 to 30, serving for four years. 

Brock s system of extracting from the Canadian 
general militia a select or active force by the organ 
ization of flank or service companies, was early justified 
by the excellent work of the militia at the capture of 
Detroit and the battle of Queenston Heights. The 
flank companies which took part in the capture of 
Detroit were probably the first Canadian militia to be 
fully uniformed, Brock, at the suggestion of Major Evans 
of the 8th Regiment, having clothed them in the 
reserve clothing (red coats) of the 41st Regiment. 

In 1814 a general order was issued prescribing the 




The Chateau de Ramezay, Montreal, Official Residence of the Governor during the French 
Regime. Occupied by the Continentals in 1775, now occupied : a Museum. 



embodied or trained. The creation of this distinction, 
which continues, theoretically, to the present, was in 
line with the development of the parent service in 
the Mother Country. 

In 1806 a "Training Act" was passed in England, 
which provided for the raising by ballot of a force 
of 200,000 men to be trained for a whole year every 
third year. Any man balloted had the option of serving 
as an efficient in a volunteer corps. In 1808 a force of 
"local militia" was established in England and Scot 
land by Lord Castlereagh in addition to the "general 
militia" which became a sort of sedentary militia, 



uniform of the Canadian Militia to be similar to those 
of H.M. Army, scarlet with blue facings. 

July 12, 1812, Major-General Brock wrote to Sir 
George Prevost, from Fort George, as follows: 

"The militia which assembled here immediately 
on the account being received of war being declared 
by the United States, have been improving daily in 
discipline; but the men evince a degree of impatience 
under their present restraint that is far from inspiring 
confidence. So great was the clamour to return and 
attend to their farms, that I found myself in some 
measure compelled to sanction the departure of a 



41) 



large proportion; and I am not without my apprehen 
sions that the remainder will, in defiance of the law, 
which can only impose a fine of 20, leave the service 
the moment the harvest commences. There can be 
no doubt that a large portion of the population in this 
neighbourhood are sincere in their professions to defend 
the country; but it appears likewise evident to me that 
the greater part are either indifferent to what is 
passing, or so completely American as to rejoice in 
the prospect of a change of government. Many, who 
now consider our means inadequate, would readily 
take an active part were the regular troops increased. 
These cool calculators are numerous in all societies." 

Although the "service companies" of militia did 
good service whenever urgently required, the efforts 
of the army officers during the war, as regards the 
militia, were largely devoted to perfect the incorporated 
militia of permanently embodied corps, and the various 
"provincial corps". 

The positions of lieutenant-governor and military 
commander being combined in one man the militia 
during the war, as regards organization and main 
tenance, were brought directly under the army author 
ities. All departmental duties were performed by 
the regular army. Rations, supplies, arms and equip 
ment were provided from the army stores, and nearly all 
staff duties in the field were performed by regular officers. 

Bounties were given by the army authorities for 
recruits for the embodied militia. Major-General 
R. H. Sheaffe, the Major-General commanding in 
Upper Canada in 1813, on March 15, wrote to Sir 
George Prevost as follows: 

"The importance of having without delay an 
efficient force from the militia, and of giving effect, 
at its first publication, to the new plan adopted for 
that purpose, struck me so forcibly that I determined 
to offer in the instructions I had prepared an additional 
ten dollars to each volunteer for the incorporated militia. 
I hope the critical situation in which this province is 
placed will justify me for having adopted the mea 
sure without waiting for Your Excellency s answer 
to my application on the subject." The suggestion 
was approved of. 

The Incorporated Militia, while permanently em 
bodied and paid by the army authorities, was raised 
under and subject to the militia laws of the province, 
but several Canadian corps on service during the war, 
as for instance the Provincial Light Dragoons, the 
Artillery Drivers, the Canadian Light Dragoons, etc., 
were regularly enlisted and attested, and were under 
Martial Law, subject to the rules and regulations of 
the army and to serve under any officer in His Majes 
ty s service. These were known as " Provincial 
Corps," in contradistinction to militia. 



The Treaty of Ghent, which closed the war, was 
signed December 24, 1814, and soon after, steps were 
taken for reducing the Incorporated Militia. 

At the session of the legislature of 1815 an act 
(55 George III. Chap, xiii) was passed "granting to 
His Majesty a certain sum of money for the uses of 
the Incorporated Militia of this province and other 
purposes therein mentioned. 5,883 6s. 8d. to be 
applied as follows: 

To the officers, non-commissioned officers and privates 
of the Incorporated Militia, six months pay 4,594 
15s. 2d. To the officers and non-commissioned 
officers of the line attached to the Incorporated Militia, 
the net pay of their respective ranks in the said corps 
1,000. To the officers and non-commissioned officers 
and privates of the Incorporated Militia Artillery, six 
months pay 288 1 Is. 6d. To the Speaker of the House 
of Assembly to purchase a sword to be presented to Col. 
Robinson, late of the Incorporated Militia, 100 guineas." 

During the peace which succeeded the battle of 
Waterloo (1815), the whole English speaking popu 
lation of the world seemed to be carried away with 
the idea that the millennium had arrived and that the 
time had at last come for turning the swords into 
ploughshares, and the spears into priming-hooks. 
At any rate, in the Mother Country, the armed forces 
of the empire were allowed to fall into neglect, and it 
is not surprising that in Canada, where there were so 
many calls upon public attention and national energy, 
in the development of the young country s virgin 
resources, that little or no attention was for many years 
given to the question of the maintenance of the militia. 

In 1816 an act (56 George III, Chap, vii) was passed 
granting 165 pounds additional salary to the Adjutant- 
General of Upper Canada militia. 

At the same session of the assembly an act (56 
George III, Chap, xxxi) was passed, entitled " An Act 
to amend 48 Geo. Ill, entitled "An Act to explain, 
amend, and reduce to one Act of Parliament the several 
laws now in being for the raising and training of 
the militia of this province." 

Section 1 of this Bill provided that only British 
subjects were compelled to enroll in the militia. Section 
2 authorized the Governor, Lieutenant-Governor or 
person administering the government of this province 
to issue two warrants in favour of the Adjutant-General 
of militia of this province, and cause him to be paid all 
such expenses as he shall incur for the postage of letters, 
stationary and other contingent expenses of his office." 

At the session of 1819 an act (59 George III., Chap. 
xii) was passed, amending 48 George III. This act 
contained the following provisions: 

"Whereas there is now no provision by law for 
assembling a Court Martial unless when the militia 



41 



of this province shall be called out on actual service, 
by reason whereof it may happen that persons against 
whom charges may have been preferred before a Court 
of Enquiry, may have no opportunity of making their 
defence against such charges, before a Court competent 
to receive such evidence upon oath, in their behalf, 
for remedy whereof be it enacted by the King s Most 
Excellent Majesty, by and with the advice and consent 
of the Legislative Council and Assembly of the Province 
of Upper Canada, constituted and assembled by virtue 
of and under the authority of an act passed in the 
Parliament of Great Britain, entitled "An act etc., 
etc.," and by authority of the same that the 25th clause 
of an act passed in the 48th year ***** shall be 
and the same is hereby repealed. 

" In all cases where a General Court Martial shall be 
prayed for by any officer against whom any charges 
have been made or may be preferred when any part 
of the militia may be called out on actual service, 
the governor or person administering government 
may direct a General Court Martial to be held, to be 
assembled in same manner and under same provisions 
as provided by law in time of actual service. Provided 
that such General Court Martial in peace time in the 
event of convictions may inflict such penalty propor 
tioned to the offence as the Court shall judge proper, 
either by censure or suspension, or depriving him of 
his commission, and degrading him from his rank, 
and no other." 

In 1829 an important step was taken providing for 
the division of the militia in peace time into active 
and reserve forces. The method of accomplishing 
this is set forth in the following interesting order: 
Militia General Order, 
YORK, Upper Canada, 16th May, 1829, 

No. 1. His Excellency the Lieutenant-Governor has 
been pleased to direct that in future the several regi 
ments of Militia in this province shall consist of two 
battalions each, the first battalion to be composed of 
men not exceeding forty years of age; the second or 
reserve battalion of such men as may be within the 
limits of the Corps, from that age to the period establish 
ed by law. 

No. 2. The attendance of the reserve battalion 
may be dispensed with on next day of assembling. 

No. 3. The establishment of the first battalion 
will be eight companies of light infantry (when they 
can be formed of thirty men each). These will be 
divided into a right and left wing. 

No. 4. One company in each wing will be armed 
with rifles. 

No. 5. Young men under the age of eighteen en 
rolled for the militia will not be assembled with the 
battalion, but commanding officers will make arrange 



ments for their being instructed in small divisions in 
their own homes.. 

No. 6. It is recommended that the militia fines, 
which are placed at the disposal of colonels of regiments 
for the incidental expenses of the corps may be ex 
pended in remunerating one sergeant in each company 
to be employed in drilling the young men who are not 
called out with the battalion. 

No. 7. Colonels will be responsible that the fines 
are demanded from every individual who may be absent 
on the days appointed by law for the assembling of 
the militia. 

Colonel James Fitz Gibbon, whose name had become 
so conspicuous during the war of 1812, who was 
gazetted Colonel of the West York Regiment in 1826, 
and who at this period held a position in the Adjutant- 
General s office, subsequently becoming Deputy Ad 
jutant-General, under the auspices of Sir John Colborne, 
formed a drill corps during the year 1835, for such young 
men of Toronto as desired military instruction. A hand 
ful of well-connected young men availed themselves 
of the opportunity. In 1836 Colonel Fitz Gibbon 
devoted himself with redoubled ardor to preparations 
for the insurrection which he declared would break 
forth before the next winter. He got together a 
rifle corps to the number of seventy, and drilled them 
twice a week with tireless enthusiasm, declaring that 
when the hour of trial should come he and "his boys" 
would be found in their places, however the rest of the 
community might see fit to demean themselves. 
("Dent s Story of the Upper Canada Rebellion.") 

As the time of the actual outbreak approached, 
the government continued to rest in undisturbed 
confidence. All through the autumn the Governor 
and his advisers received regular intelligence of secret 
drillings, of the manufacture of pikes, and of other 
seditious proceedings, but all to no purpose. It 
appeared as though they persisted in regarding all 
the preparations as being merely for effect and to 
intimidate the government. The Governor sent all 
the regular troops to the Lower Province, not even 
as much as a company being kept as a garrison in Tor 
onto, which was the seat of the provincial government. 
The last detachment to be sent out of the province to 
Lower Canada consisted of a subaltern and thirty men, 
withdrawn from Penetanguishene in November. 
When this little party was on its way to Toronto, 
Colonel Fitz Gibbon urged the Lieutenant-Governor 
to keep them in the city, in order that their presence 
might have an effect upon the local militia. "No, 
not a man," answered His Excellency, "The doing so 
would destroy the whole morale of my policy. If the 
militia cannot defend the province, the sooner it is lost 
the better." "Then, sir," entreated the hero of Beaver 



42 



Dams and many another hard fight, "let us be armed, 
and ready to defend ourselves." "No," responded 
Sir Francis, " I do not apprehend a rebellion in Upper 
Canada." (Dent.) 

The only preparation the Governor had consented 
to make was to permit of 4,000 stands of arms being 
brought from Montreal, but even then, he had neglected 
to have them properly guarded. As a matter of fact, 
they were handed over to the municipal authorities, 
who placed them in the old City Hall, with a couple of 
constables to keep watch over them at night. Fitz 
Gibbon, who appears to have been the only military 
official on the alert, was afraid that the rebels would 
some night overpower the two constables and gain 
possession of the arms. To guard against such a 
contingency, he induced his rifle corps, whom he 
continued to drill with vigilant regularity, to volunteer 
a nightly guard of fifteen to twenty men to watch 
the City Hall, and to furnish two sentries to guard the 
approaches to Government House. The Governor 
refused, however, to have this arrangement carried 
out, remarking: " But that I do not like to undo what 
I have already done, I would have those arms brought 
from the City Hall and placed here in the Government 
House, under the care and keeping of my domestics." 

This was only a day or two before the Governor 
and the City of Toronto received that rude midnight 
awakening to learn that the rebels had fired the first 
shots of the rebellion at Montgomery s Tavern. 

In his despatch, No. 132, dated Toronto, Dec. 19, 
1837, Sir F. B. Head wrote: "I might also have most 
advantageously availed myself in the field of the 
military services of Colonel Foster, the commander of 
the forces in Upper Canada, of Captain Baddeley of 
the corps of Royal Engineers, and of a detachment 
of eight artillerymen, who form the only regular force 
in this province; but having deliberately determined 
that the important contest in which I was about to 



be engaged should be decided solely by the Upper 
Canada militia, or in other words, by the free inhabi 
tants of this noble province, etc." 

The Governor reported that bands of militiamen 
from all directions poured in upon him. According 
to the best reports he could collect, from 10,000 to 
12,000 men simultaneously marched towards the 
capital to support him in maintaining for the people 
of Upper Canada, the British Constitution. (Despat 
ches in S. F. B. Head s " Narrative.") 

After the first alarm the established militia organ 
izations were used to raise an effective force, no less 
than five battalions of incorporated militia, organized 
and uniformed like troops of the line, being raised, 
some of which were not finally disbanded until 1843. 
Besides there were twelve battalions of provincial 
militia on duty for various periods, and thirty-one 
corps of artillery, cavalry and rifles. 

According to MacMullin s History, militia lists 
for Upper Canada at the end of the rebellion showed 
an establishment of 106 complete regiments. "There 
were four battalions of incorporated militia, organized 
and clothed like troops of the line; twelve battalions 
of provincial militia on duty for a stated period; thirty 
one corps of artillery, cavalry and riflemen, while 
most of the militia corps (infantry regiments?) had 
a troop of cavalry attached to them." 

While the excitement produced by the rebellion 
was still maintained, in 1839, an important Militia 
Act (2nd Victoria Chapter ix) was passed, which 
provided for the establishment of mounted corps, 
artillery, light infantry, rifle and marine corps as 
separate units, quite distinct from the territorial 
militia regiments. 

The Act of Union passed by the British Parliament 
in 1840 came into effect by royal proclamation February 
10, 1841, and since that date the militia of Upper Canada 
has formed part of a Canadian national force. 




43 





CHAPTER V 



THE MILITIA OF LOWER CANADA 



THE PRINCIPLES OF THE FRENCH MILITIA SYSTEM RETAINED. THE ROYAL CANADIAN VOLUNTEERS 
LOWER CANADIAN MILITIA AND VOLUNTEER CORPS OF 1812-14 AND 1837. THE MILITIA A BUTT OF 
POLITICAL DISCORD. 



ACCORDING to the Constitutional Act (31 George 
III, Chap, xxxi) section 31, all laws, statutes and 
ordinances which were in force on the day fixed 
for the commencement of the act within the new provin 
ces, or either of them, or in any part thereof, respectively 
remained and continued to be of the same force, 
authority and effect in each of the said provinces, as, 
if the Act in question had not been made, and as if 
the said Province of Quebec had not been divided, 
except in so far as the same were expressly repealed or 
varied by the Act. 

In the preceding chapter it has been explained how 
the first assembly of Upper Canada at its second 
session passed a Militia Act based upon the English 
system, completely replacing the old act, based upon 
the French system, which had existed in the old Pro 
vince of Quebec But in Lower Canada the old militia 
system, with a few amendments, was continued, as best 
suited to the habits of the population and the needs 
of the province. At the time the Constitutional Act 
was passed there was much uncertainty as to some 
of the details of the militia system. There were 
various overlapping acts and ordinances, some of 
which had really lapsed naturally, having been merely 
temporary, but which continued in practice. Again, 
new acts and ordinances had been enacted regulating 
certain points, without the legislation they were in 
tended to replace, being specifically repealed. Most 



details of militia administration were regulated by 
orders. But the main principles of militia organiza 
tion were understood. Every male of age was a 
militiaman, and liable, not alone for military duty, 
as in Upper Canada, but for the "corvee," or statute 
labour. Various civil duties, generally cherished as 
perquisites, fell to the lot of the militia officers. 

During the first sitting of the new assembly of the 
Province of Lower Canada, April 25, 1793, a message 
was received from the governor informing the house 
that "the persons exercising the supreme authority in 
France had declared war against His Majesty." In 
answering this message the assembly stated that they 
would immediately proceed to a revision of the militia 
laws. The subject was taken up and discussed, but 
as no alterations were made in the militia ordinance 
then in force, it is to be inferred that such were deemed 
unnecessary by the assembly. 

In his speech dismissing the house at the close of the 
session, the governor, however, asked the members 
during recess to reflect upon "such further regulations 
as may appear necessary for the better organizing 
and more effectually calling forth the militia." 

November 26, 1793, the Governor-General, Lord 
Dorchester, issued a proclamation drawing attention 
to the fact that alien enemies from France and else 
where were in the province busying themselves in 
propagating revolutionary principles, and requiring 



44 



"all magistrates, captains of militia, peace officers, 
and others of His Majesty s good subjects, to be 
vigilant," etc. 

Two acts affecting the militia were passed at the 
session of the assembly this year. The first, a sort of 
consolidation of the main militia laws, but intro 
ducing no material change, (34 George III, Chap, iv), 
was entitled : " An act to provide for the greater 
security of this province by the better regulation of 
the militia thereof, and for repealing certain acts or 
ordinances relating to the same." This act was to 
be in force until July 1, 1796, "or until the end of the 
war." 

The other act (34 George III, Chap, vi) conferred 
the power to act as coroners upon militia officers. 
The full title of this act was : An act for the division 
of the Province of Lower Canada, for amending the 
judications thereof, and for repealing certain laws 
therein mentioned," and section 36 read as follows: 
"And whereas the great extent of this province may 
render it often impracticable for the coroner of the 
district to give his attendance at the different places 
where it might be necessary; be it further enacted 
by the authority aforesaid, that the captains or senior 
officers of militia shall be, and hereby are empowered, 
in their respective parishes, when any marks of violence 
appear on any dead body, to summon together six 
reputable householders of his parish to inspect the 
same, and he shall, according to their opinion, report 
the manner and cause of such death, in writing, to the 
nearest justice of the peace, that a further examination 
may be made therein, if necessary." 

In 1796, another act (36 George III, Chap, ix) was 
passed affecting the special civil functions of militia 
officers. The act was entitled: An- act for making, 
repairing and altering the highways and bridges 
within this province, and for other purposes," and 
sections 26, 28, 29 and 78 read: "XXVI And be it 
enacted by the authority aforesaid that the grand 
voyer or his deputy shall and may divide every parish, 
seigniory or township of his district into such number 
of divisions, being not more than nine, as he shall 
judge proper and necessary, and to each of which 
divisions there shall be allotted by him an overseer 
of the highways and bridges, who shall be chosen in 
manner following, that is to say: the grand voyer or 
his deputy shall in the month of August next, and in 
the month of August every second year thereafter 
issue an order to the eldest captain or senior officer 
of militia in each parish, seigniory or township, for 
the purpose of electing overseers of the highways and 
bridges, who is hereby required upon receipt of such 
order, to fix and publish or cause to be fixed and pub 
lished at the church door or place of divine worship 



of the parish, seigniory or township after morning 
service, .... a day on which the householders 
thereof shall meet for the purpose of such election, 
which day shall be a Sunday or a holy day between 
the first day of September and the fifteenth day of 
October, .... at which meeting the said eldest 
captain or senior officer of militia shall preside, and 
the same shall be held in the public room of the parson 
age house of the parish, seigniory or township, or 
where there shall be no such public room, then at 
such other place as shall be appointed by the said 
captain or senior officer of militia; and then and there 
the said householders, or the majority of them so 
assembled, shall choose a fit and proper person from 
among the householders of the parish, seigniory or 
township for each of the said divisions thereof ... to 
serve the office of overseer of highways and bridges; 
.... and each of which overseers shall enter upon 
the execution of his office on the first day of January 
following, and shall serve for two years ; and any person 
so chosen and nominated to serve, who shall refuse or 
neglect to signify to the said captain or senior officer 
of militia his consent to enter upon such service, for 
the space of eight days after such nomination, shall 
forfeit and pay the sum of five pounds current money 
of this province for such refusal or neglect, or who 
consenting to accept such office shall refuse or neglect 
to obey the lawful orders of the grand voyer or his 
deputy, or to oversee and perform any of the duties 
required of him by this Act, shall for every such refusal 
or neglect, forfeit and pay the sum of twenty shillings; 
and it shall be the duty of every officer of militia who 
shall have presided as aforesaid at any such meeting, 
openly to declare to the persons so assembled, the 
names of the parties then and there chosen as over 
seers, and to make a return of such nomination and 
choice to the grand voyer or his deputy within ten 
days after such meeting; and every such officer of 
militia who shall refuse or neglect to call such meeting 
or to preside therein, or to make such return, shall 
forfeit and pay the sum of five pounds for every such 
refusal or neglect." 

XXVIII. Provided also, and be it further enacted, 
that clergymen, captains of militia, licensed school 
masters, and one miller to each mill, and persons 
upward of sixty years of age, shall be exempted from 
being chosen or appointed surveyors or overseers of 
highways and bridges," 

" XXIX. And be it further enacted that the officers 
of militia shall continue to do the duty of overseers 
until the first day of January next, provided that no 
officer of militia, who shall have so served as overseer, 
shall be liable to be rechosen to serve eiter as sur 
veyor or overseer under this act within eight years 



45 



from the first day of January next, unless he shall con 
sent thereto." 

"LXXVIII. And be it further enacted by the authority 
aforesaid, that the deputy of each grand voyer, the 
surveyors and the overseers of the highways for the 
time being shall and hereby are exempted from trans 
porting effects belonging to Government, and from 
being called out to serve in the militia, excepting 
in the case of invasion of the province, or of insur 
rection in the county where they are respectively 
serving the said officers." 

The same year an act (36 George III. Chapter xi) 
was passed continuing 34 George III. Chap, iv.) 

In the summer of 1796, Cafleton returned to England 
after completing arrangements for the carrying out 
of his long cherished scheme of founding a permanently 
embodied establishment of Canadian troops. The 
result was the raising of " The Royal Canadian Volun 
teer Regiment." 

At this time Napoleon was just attaining the zenith 
of his power, the interest of the world in 1796 being 
concentrated upon his brilliant campaign in Italy 
and the Tyrol. For years, emissaries of the French 
government had been busy in Canada attempting to 
stir up the French Canadians against Great Britain, 
and others at Washington were trying to embroil the 
United States government with Britain. The Cana 
dians, however, were not to be so easily won 
from their British allegiance, and gave but a deaf 
ear to their hindred from across the sea. The 
clergy, particularly, and the gentry, threw the 
great weight of their influence in the balance against 
the foreign agitators, holding up to the Canadian people 
the horrors of the French Revolution and the failure 
of the invasion of the province by the American Re 
publicans in 1775-1776 as arguments against any 
suggestion to unite Canada politically once more with 
old France. 

The Royal Canadian Volunteers consisted of two 
battalions, the first composed of French Canadians, 
raised and equipped in Quebec, the second battalion 
composed largely of English speaking men, and raised 
and equipped in Montreal. Each battalion consisted 
of eight companies, including a grenadier and a light 
infantry company. The strength of each com 
pany was seventy men, and there appears to have 
been no difficulty in securing officers or recruiting the 
men. The regiment was raised, equipped and admin 
istered as a regular regiment, the officers and men being 
obtained in Canada and their terms of enlisting calling 
upon them for military service anywhere in the colony. 
The uniform was of the regular infantry cut, with 
scarlet coat and blue facings. The men wore grey 
cloth breeches, the officers white, with long black 



gaiters buttoned to above the knee. The head dress 
was a three-cornered hat with black cockade (tassels 
for the officers) except the grenadier company, the men 
of which wore the usual tall, conical cap. The men 
were armed with the old flint lock and bayonet. The 
regimental motto, duly emblazoned on the colours, was 
"Try Us." During 1796, 1797 and part of 1798 the 
1st battalion was stationed at Quebec, the 2nd battalion 
at Montreal. The 1st battalion went under canvas 
for some months during the summer of 1797, and 
while the headquarters of the 2nd battalion were at 
Montreal, detachments or perhaps the whole bat 
talion was stationed for periods at Laprairie, St. Johns 
and Sorel. In the spring of 1798 the battalions ex 
changed garrisons. In 1799 pressure was brought 
upon the officers to consent to be placed on the same 
footing as other fencibles for service abroad, but the 
proposal did not meet with favour. 

However, the signing of the Treaty of Amiens, 
October 1st, 1801, restored peace, and steps were taken, 
in time, to disband the various colonial corps. The 
Royal Canadian Volunteers were disbanded in August 
and September, 1802. At the time the battalions were 
read out of the service, the First Battalion had five 
companies and headquarters in Montreal with detach 
ments therefrom at Three Rivers, Sorel, and St. Johns, 
and three companies at Quebec. The second battalion 
upon disbandment had only one company in Lower 
Canada, the others being distributed throughout Upper 
Canada as follows: Yo,rk, 2 companies; Fort George, 
(Niagara) 3 companies; Kingston, one company; Fort 
Erie, a half company; Chippewa, a half company. 
(Surgeon-Major Neilson, R. C. A., in V. R. I. Magazine). 

In the Quebec almanac for 1797, the officers of the 
Royal Canadian Volunteers appear as follows: 

First battalion Royal Canadian Volunteers. 

Lieut. -Col. J. DeLongueuil; Major Louis De Salaberry. 

Captains, Francis Dambourges, Desaulnier, Beaubien, 
Francis Piedmont, Pierre Marcoux, C. S. De Bleury, 
Louvigny de Montigny, Francois Vassal, J. Bte. Des- 
timeauville. 

Lieutenants, Daniel Dupre, Peter Duchoquet, A. J. 
Duchosnay, Joseph de Beaujeu, C. S. Lanaudiere, 
Hipolite Hertelle, Pierre Bazin, Henry Hay, Joseph 
Bouchette, Benjamin Jobert. 

Ensigns, J. B. J. Duchesnay, Ant. Petrimoulx, Louis 
Montizambert, Honore Bailie, Antoine Lanaudiere, 
Stephen La Morandiere, Richard Hay, Francois 
Boucher, Robert Anderson, Francois Duval. 

Chaplain, Salter Mountain; Adjutant, Robert Ander 
son; Quarter-Master, Louis Feromenteau; Surgeon, 
James Davidson; Mate, J. B. L. Menard. 

2nd Battalion Royal Canadian Volunteers. 

Lieut. -Col. John M Donnell, Major Hazelton Spencer. 



40 



Captains Peter Drummond, Hector McLean, Hugh 
McDonnell, Niel M Lean, Miles M Donell, Richard 
Willkinson, Alexander McMillan. 

Lieutenants Richard Ferguson, Wm. Fraser, Wra. 
Crawford, Chichester M Donell, Thomas Fraser, 
Donald M Donell, Wm. Johnson, Angus M Donell, 
Taschereau, Pierre Ignace Major. 

Ensigns Pierre Boucherville, Wm. Deace, Peter 
Grant, George Ermatinger, Charles Lanniere, Joseph 
Boardwine, Robert Wolsey. 

Chaplain Father Duval; Adjutant John Cromp- 
ton; Quarter-Master Andrew Cameron; Surgeon- 
James Davidson; Mate Cyrus Anderson. 

It will be remarked that while there are but three 
names which are not distinctively French Canadian, 
among those of the officers of the 1st Battallion, that 
there were five French Canadian officers in the second 
battalion. While the 1st Battalion had 34 officers, 
the second, of the same nominal establishment, had 31. 
Evidently, the military spirit was, at least, as strong 
among the French Canadians as among their neighbors 
of British origin. 

The peace of Amiens did not last very long, and few 
expected it would, apparently. The great Napoleon 
had not attained the summit of his ambition in 1801, 
and until he had, there was to be no lasting peace, at 
least so long as he held the supreme power in 
France. 

Within a few months of the signing of the treaty, 
the British government and Napoleon were embroiled 
in dispute as to the execution of the terms of the treaty, 
England refusing to evacuate Malta, the Cape of Good 
Hope and Alexandria so long as Napoleon failed to 
restore his continental conquests to the powers con 
cerned and continued to increase his armaments at 
strategical points threatening Great Britain. Napo 
leon was then. Vice Consul, and French royalists who 
had taken refuge in the Channel Islands and London, 
in the public press and pamphlets, were engaged in 
sarcastic and bitter attacks on him and his government. 
The French papers retorted and attacked England, and 
the English papers retaliated. Napoleon demanded 
that the British government muzzle the press and 
banish the French royalists refugees to Canada. The 
British government, of course, explained that it could 
not interfere with those very British institutions, the 
liberty of the press and the right of refuge. After 
menaces had been made on both sides, the British 
government in March, 1803, ordered 10,000 additional 
men enrolled for the navy, and the British Militia was 
called out. Napoleon ordered large additions of troops 
to the camps which had been forming at the ports 
along the English Channel. Finally, April 29, 1803, 
England declared war on Napoleon. 



Both Britain and France entered into the contest 
with zest, each nation being aroused to the highest 
pitch of enthusiasm, the English people being spurred 
to make great exertions by Napoleon s taunt that 
England would not and could not stand alone against 
France. As to the progress of the several campaigns 
which followed, of Napoleon s triumphal campaigns of 
Jena, Auerbad, Eylau, Spain, etc., and of the British 
victories at sea first and afterwards in the Peninsula, 
the Pyrenees and the South of France, it is necessary 
to refer here; but the student of Canadian history 
has to have some knowledge of the war in Europe 
to appreciate the events preceding and during the 
war of 1812-14. 

The authorities of Lower Canada were at this im 
portant juncture anxious to do more to bring the 
national defensive force into line with military require 
ments and more in touch with the population. 

Lieut .-Govern or Robert Shore Milnes in a letter to 
the Minister on the real situation in Canada, Nov 
ember 1st, 1800, speaking of the social conditions pre 
vailing, remarked "The counties are divided into 
parishes, the principal person in each of which is the 
priest, and the next the Captain of Militia." He 
went on to show that the influence of the government 
might be extended by the co-operation of the clergy, 
and next through the militia. The bishop and priests, 
he pointed out, could be depended upon to use their 
influence "to encourage a spirit of loyalty in opposition 
to the spirit of democracy, which has fortunately not 
made much progress in Canada." The Governor 
proceeded: "The population is computed to be about 
160.000, nine-tenths of whom reside in the parishes, 
the militia 37,904, with 292 captains and 16 of a staff, 
the latter chiefly seigneurs. The powers of the Cap 
tains under the French rule were great, the feeling of 
which remains, though the power is withdrawn. But 
they are still employed in performing services for the 
Government , for which the only remuneration is the 
sense of the honour of being so employed, but this is by 
no means equivalent to the expenditure of the time 
and trouble." The Governor proceeded to suggest 
that by some honorary and pecuniary reward, or by 
some other plan, the militia officers might be brought 
to consider themselves as, and to be actually made, 
officers of the Crown. In this way a spirit of loyalty 
would be diffused through the whole province, "a 
spirit which is natural to the Canadians." His Honor 
was pleased to add "I would like to call attention 
to the relative expenditure for civil and military pur 
poses, the latter out of proportion to the latter, whilst, 
by a proper system, not only would the military ex 
penses be greatly lessened, and the country secured 
from internal commotion, but the co-operation of the 



47 



inhabitants could be secured for the defence of the 
country." (Dom. Archives.) 

During 1802, as a result of the warlike outlook in 
Europe, there was a mild outbreak of military excite 
ment in Montreal, and the local militia voluntarily 
assembled for drill, muskets being lent them for the 
purpose from the regular army stores. Governor 
Milnes, on November 29th, 1802, made a requisition 
upon Lieut .-General Hunter, the commander-in-chief, 
in the following terms: "The officers of the British 
and Canadian militia at Montreal having represented 
to me that at the time Your Excellency was so good 
as to order muskets to be delivered to them for the 
purpose of enabling the militia of Montreal to practise 
the use of firearms, they omitted to ask also for belts 
and pouches which are essentially necessary to their 
attaining any degree of perfection in their exercise; 
I shall be much obliged to Your Excellency to give 
directions for belts and pouches being delivered to 
them in proportion to the number of muskets, as I 
have the satisfaction to find they mean to continue 
practicing during the ensuing winter, and their ex 
ample may be of considerable service in the province." 

At the first session of the parliament of Lower 
Canada in the year 1803, the militia laws were re 
newed, on the advice of the governor, by a new act (43 
George III, Chap. i). The second session took place 
in August on the resumption of hostilities between 
Great Britain and France. The Alien Act, and that 
for the preservation of His Majesty s government 
had been allowed to expire at the time of the peace, 
but the return of war rendered their revival necessary, 
and they were revived. Upon the recurrence of war, 
there was a strong manifestation of loyal feeling uni 
versally throughout the province. The lieutenant- 
governor sent down, late in the session, a message to 
the assembly stating that he had "the satisfaction to 
acquaint them that a considerable number of His 
Majesty s subjects in this province, actuated by a 
spirit of loyalty and zeal for the interests and honour 
of his crown, had offered to form themselves into 
volunteer companies for the defence of the province 
at the present moment, and to serve under such 
officers as His Majesty s representative should appoint 
to command them." He recommended the subject 
accordingly to the consideration of the House. 

A bill was introduced, passed, and sent up to the 
Legislative Council relative to it, but too late, the 
prorogation taking place the next day. No incon 
venience, however, was felt from the circumstance, 
the Militia Act of the earlier session being in force, 
and sufficient for every practical purpose at the time . 

The act in question authorized the governor to 
spend 2,500 pounds sterling annually, as he should 



judge expedient, towards the formation of an efficient 
militia. He was authorized to embody annually, for 
28 days annual drill, a force of 1,200 men. The act 
was limited to four years duration. It provided for 
pensions for disabled militiamen. 

Governor Milnes lost no time proceeding to put the 
new Militia Act into effect, and the requisition he made 
on Lieut. -General Hunter for arms and equipment 
gives us at once an idea of the scope of the bill and 
of the absolute dependance of the militia of those 
days on the regular army for equipment. In this 
document, which is dated Quebec, 28th April, 1803, 
the governor wrote : 

" In consequence of new regulations which have 
passed the legislature respecting the militia in this 
province, a power is vested in the Executive Govern 
ment to embody for twenty-eight days annually 
twelve hundred men. I have, therefore, to request 
Your Excellency will give the necessary orders to for 
ward a measure so important to His Majesty s service, 
that six hundred stand of arms may be delivered 
upon my requisition, which, whenever this measure 
shall be adopted, will, with the six hundred you have 
already had the goodness to order to be at my dis 
posal at Montreal, complete the complement. 

" It is probably known to you, that Lord Dorchester, 
in the year 1796, received from England clothing and 
accoutrements for the number of men now fixed by the 
legislature to be called out. I have the honour to in 
close a statement of the articles intended for the use of 
the militia, and which, being in the military store, I 
shall further request Your Excellency to give directions 
that these, or any part of them, may be delivered to 
me when required." 

The return mentioned in the preceding included, 
among other details, the following: 

Privates. Cloth, brown, 4,179^ yards; mixt, 1,910J; 
yellow, 152J. Hats and cockades, 1,100. 

Sergeants. Cloth, brown, 104f yards; mixt, 57 
yards; yellow, 18^ yards. Hats and cockades, 80. 

Drummers. Cloth, yellow, 40J yards. Hats, 16. 

Besides, there were buttons by hundreds of gross, 
braids, looping, sixty pounds of thread, two thousand 
needles, a hundred and twenty tailors thimbles, forty 
epaulets, linen, linings, etc., etc. 

The following extract from a letter by Governor 
Robt. S. Milnes to His Excellency Lieut. -General 
Hunter, Quebec, Nov. 11, 1803, is interesting in the 
same connection: 

" 1 have the honor to enclose Your Excellency an 
extract of a dispatch which I have this day received 
from Lord Hobart, authorizing me to receive from 
His Majesty s magazines at Quebec such arms as 
may be necessary for the use of the militia, and I 



48 



shall be obliged to Your Excellency to receive the 
amount of 1,200 stand of arms with proportionate 
accoutrements, at such times and in such proportions 
as may be requisite for this branch of His Majesty s 
service." 

This letter received a reply from Lt. -General Hunter, 
dated York, December 9, 1803, reading in part as 
follows : 

" I have the honour to acknowledge the receipt of 
Your Excellency s letter of the llth November, with 
an extract from Lord Hobart s letter to you of the 
9th September, authorizing you to receive from His 
Majesty s magazine at Quebec such arms as may be 



March 29th, 1804, Major-General Mann, in command 
at Quebec, wrote Lieut.-Col. Green, military secretary, 
as follows: 

" Lieut.-Governor Milnes has acquainted me with his 
intention of giving a proportion of arms to the militia 
of the City of Quebec only, to the amount of two 
hundred stand for the Canadian and one hundred 
stand for the British Militia, who have been training 
as far as they could do without arms all the winter. 
The arms are to be deposited at the Chateau, and 
delivered out only at such times as they may be 
wanted for exercise. I shall accordingly, when re 
quired by Sir Robert Milnes, order the issue of the 




His Majesty, King Edward VII, presenting His Colours to the Strathcoua Horse on their return to London 

after the South African Campaign. 



necessary for the use of the militia, and requesting to 
the amount of twelve hundred stand of arms, with 
proportionate accoutrements, at such times, and in 
such proportions as may be requisite for this branch 
of His Majesty s service. 

" I have by this opportunity given Colonel Mann 
the necessary directions to order the ordinance store 
keepers to issue to such persons as Your Excellency 
may authorize to receive them to the amount of six 
hundred stand of arms, which, with the six hundred 
stand of arms formerly issued to you for this service, 
make up the number required." 



above quantity of arms, conformably to Lieut.-General 
Hunter s orders signified in your letter to me of the 
8th December last," 

Some trouble appears to have arisen as to the further 
issue and also the care of these arms, and July 25, 1805, 
we find Lieut.-Governor Sir Robert Shore Milnes 
writing to the commander-iii-chief as follows: 

" I have had the honor of receiving Your Excellency s 
letter of the 24th inst., respecting the arms issued from 
the ordinance stores by Your Excellency s order in 
consequence of Lord Hobart s despatch to me, dated 
9th of September, 1803, by which I was authorized to 



49 



receive from His Majesty s magazines at Quebec such 
arms as may be necessary for the use of the militia 
of this province. 

" I shall take the earliest occasion to lay before His 
Majesty s Secretary of State the subject matter of your 
letter, in the expectation that His Lordship will send 
out to the person administering the government during 
my absence such further instructions with respect to 
the arms in question as he may judge proper, till when 
I shall consider myself as responsible for the safety 
of those arms to His Majesty s minister only. 

" In consequence of the information Your Excellency 
has honored me with, respecting a musket with the 
Tower mark, which was exposed for sale at McCary s, 
the auctioneer, on the 20th of this month, I shall take 
every possible step to ascertain whether or not it 
belongs to the present militia; but I am inclined to 
think it may possibly be one of those muskets that were 
placed in the hands of the militia by Lord Dorchester 
in the year 1787, and were never afterwards withdrawn, 
and which from the lapse of time, it is not improbable, 
may, in this instance, have been erroneously considered 
as private property." (Dominion Archives.) 

May 22, 1806, we find the following request addressed 
by the Hon. Thomas Dunn to Colonel Barnes, command 
ing His Majesty s forces: 

" I have to request you will be so good as give direc 
tions that forty-six carbines, complete, may be delivered 
from the ordinance stores to the order of Colonel 
Hale for the use of his battalion of militia, for which 
an equal number of muskets complete will be given 
up in exchange." 

The 27th of the same month the following requisition 
was made : 

" I have to request that you will give directions 
that two field pieces (six pounders) complete may be 
delivered to the order of Lieut.-Colonel Panel for the 
use of the battalion of Quebec militia under his com 
mand." 

During the year 1807, Mr. James Cuthbert, Seigneur 
of Berthier, son of the first Seigneur of the name, 
who was a retired army officer, organized the 
pioneer volunteer corps in the country districts. The 
following letter from Colonel Brock, then in command 
at Quebec, to Mr. Cuthbert shows the importance 
attached by the authorities to the organization of 
the Berthier company: 

"Quebec, October 12, 1807. 

" You may well suppose that the principal subject of 
conversation at headquarters is the military state of 
this country. I have been careful, in justice to you, 
to mention to Sir James Craig the public spirit you 
have manifested in forming a company from among 
the inhabitants of your seigneurie without the least 



pecuniary aid, or any other assistance from govern 
ment. 

"His Excellency is exceedingly pleased to find a 
principle in some measure established by your in 
dividual exertions, the basis of which he means to 
pursue in forming an extensive, and, he trusts, an 
efficient system of defence; and he requests you to 
state the nature of the engagements under which the 
men assemble for exercise, and the degree of service 
they are under promise to perform. 

"You must be aware that in any future general 
arrangement it will become an essential object with 
government to secure a more substantial hold on the 
services of the men than their mere promise; and as 
it is intended to give every possible latitude to their 
prejudices, and to study in everything their con 
venience, it is thought no regulation to that effect can 
operate to diminish the number of voluntary offers. 

"As you have been the first to set such a laudable 
example, Sir James thinks it but just that Berthier 
should take the lead in any new project he may adopt, 
and he desires me to ask your opinion in regard to the 
following points: 

" Government will undertake either to provide or 
give an allowance for clothing. 

" Arms and accoutrements must, for obvious reasons, 
be provided as far as practicable by the individuals 
themselves. 

"One shilling will be allowed every time the volun 
teer assembles for exercise, not to exceed thirty days 
during the year. 

"The men to be bound to attend drill whenever 
ordered, and to be in constant readiness to march to 
any part of the province in case of emergency, at the 
discretion of the governor-general. From the time 
they receive the order to march, to be placed pre 
cisely upon the same footing with His Majesty s 
regular troops in regard to pay and allowance. 

"Such are the chief conditions which I understood 
Sir James to say he wished might be adopted. He, 
however, will be always ready to attend to any sug 
gestion that tends to improve, and give spirit to, the 
object in view. 

" A proportionate number of non-commissioned 
olliccrs will unquestionably be allowed. 

" I can say nothing in regard to the officers they, 
of course, will not be forgotten in the arrangement, 
but they cannot expect to be exalted to such a height 
as to interfere with the just pretensions of the regulars. 

"Being in some measure pledged for the success 
of the experiment, I shall be under considerable 
anxiety until I hear your sentiments. 

"Every consideration of policy ought to make the 
proposal to appear to come from yourself; therefore, 



50 



when you consult those around you, it will be un 
necessary to state your having received a communica 
tion on the subject." 

Mr. Cuthbert wrote in reply, and Brock, on Dec. 
13, wrote again, forwarding a copy of a note received 
from Sir James Craig, to whom he had submitted 
Cuthbert s letter. This note was to the effect that 
some legal difficulties had arisen over the carrying 
out of Cuthbert s project, but which he trusted would 
be got over immediately. Arms, such accoutrements 
as were in store, and a supply of ammunition were 
in readiness, and His Excellency promised should be 
forwarded "as soon as the business is brought to a 
conclusion." 

Apparently the legal difficulties proved insur 
mountable, for on July 7, 1808, Brock wrote to Cuth 
bert that the general had very substantial reasons 
for objecting to any issue of arms at that time. He 
added: "Were your corps the sole consideration, 
be satisfied he would not hesitate a moment; but he 
cannot show you such marked preference without 
exciting a degree of jealousy and outcry which might 
occasion unpleasant discussions." 

As the war between Britain and France developed, 
and with it the ambition of the ruling faction in the 
United States to secure possession of Canada, the war 
party in the republic industriously circulated the 
report that the Canadians only awaited the unfurling 
of the stars and stripes in Canada to rise in a body 
against British rule. In refutation of this libel on 
the loyalty of the French Canadians, the acting 
governor (President of the Council), Mr. Dunn, made 
arrangements for a grand military demonstration to 
be made during the summer of 1808. One fifth of 
the militia of the province were called out for training. 
The ballotting for men was carried out with the greatest 
spirit, giving the lie to the doubts which had been cast 
upon the loyalty of the people. At the ballotting, 
young bachelors competed with one another to pro 
cure the service tickets of married men who drew 
them. Some men, who were not drawn, purchased 
tickets from others who were, but not a few married 
men refused to sell out. After the men required had 
been selected by ballot, and everything prepared for 
their mobilization, Sir James Craig, the new governor, 
arrived at Quebec, and he thought it best not to pro 
ceed any further. Consequently an order was issued 
excusing the drafted force from service, but in a 
general order issued November 24. 1808, the governor 
lauded the Canadians for the loyal and heroic spirit 
they had manifested. 

In 1809, Sir James Craig, then governor, and who 
had commanded Carleton s advance guard at the 
expulsion of the Continental troops in 1776, dismissed 



from the Quebec militia five officers, on the ground 
that the step was necessary for His Majesty s service. 
The cause assigned for this action was that the gover 
nor could place no confidence in the services of persons 
whom he had good grounds to consider to be pro 
prietors of a seditious and libellous publication (Le 
Canadien). They were Col. Panet, Capts. Bedard 
and Taschereau, Lieut. Borgia and Surgeon Blanchet. 

In 1808 a new Militia Act (48 George III, Chap, i), 
was passed, entitled: "An act to explain, amend and 
reduce to one act of parliament the several laws now in 
being for the raising and training of the militia of the 
province. " 

The session of parliament of Lower Canada in 1812 
opened on the 21st of February and passed a bill (52 
George III, Chap, ii) authorizing the governor, Sir 
George Prevost, to embody 2000 young unmarried 
men for three months in the year, who, in case of in 
vasion, were to be retained in service for a whole year, 
when half of the embodied would be relieved by fresh 
drafts. In the event of imminent danger, he was em 
powered to embody the entire militia force of the pro 
vince, but no militiaman was to be drafted into the 
regular forces. For drilling, training and other pur 
poses of the militia service, 12,000 was voted, and a 
further sum of 30,000 was placed at the disposal of 
the governor, to be used in the event of a war arising 
between Great Britain and the United States. 

Sir George Prevost, who had shortly before arrived to 
succeed Craig, had reported to the Home Government 
that he proposed to carry out a levy of the militia for 
drill and for the purpose of executing some necessary 
military works: but the suggestion was overruled 
by the British Government who, at this period, still 
persisted in exercising direct control over military 
matters in the colonies. This point is clearly exposed 
in a letter addressed to Sir George Prevost, on this par 
ticular occasion, and preserved in the Dominion Ar 
chives. It reads as follows: 

"HORSE GUARDS, 3()th .May, 1812. 

" Li KUT.-GENEK A I, 

SIR GEORGE PREVOST, BART, 

A:< ., iVc., &c., 

"Sin, Having had the honour to receive and lay be 
fore the Commander-in-Chief your letter of the 4th of 
March. 1 am commanded to acquaint you, that upon 
the receipt of your original dispatch on the same sub 
ject, dated the 4th of December last, a reference was 
made to His Majesty s Government as to the expe 
diency of carrying the levy therein proposed into 
effect, and it is only lately that an answer was received, 
intimating the view which had been taken of the inex 
pediency of this measure, as communicated to you in 
the Secretary of State s dispatch of the 31st of March. 



51 



"I am also to observe, that His Royal Highness is 
of opinion that no arrangements of this kind should 
be put in a course of execution, without a previous 
authority; and that it is usual for the Commander-in- 
Chief to communicate with the Government upon all 
military formations whatever. His Royal Highness is, 
however, fully sensible of the very zealous and proper 
motives by which you were actuated upon this occasion. 
"I have the honor to be, Sir, 

Your obedient, humble servant, 

J. P. TORRENS." 

But this letter fortunately reached Canada too late, 
for May 28, 1812, 21 days before the United States 
Congress passed the bill empowering the President to 
declare war against Great Britain, Sir George Prevost 
raised four battalions of embodied militia in Lower 
Canada; and a regiment of " voltigeurs, " a sort of 
"corps d elite," was raised, the latter being placed under 
the command of Major de Salaberry. 

Companies of "voltigeurs" were first raised in the 
French army during the rule of the Great Napoleon, 
the idea being to secure the services of men of the small 
est stature in the army. The decree of March 3, 1804, 
provided for the raising of a company of voltigeurs 
as a "Compagnie d elite", for each battalion of light 
infantry, and a decree dated Sept. 21, of the same year, 
introduced voltigeurs into the infantry of the line, 
one company for each battalion. These men were in 
tended to be transported about the theatre of opera 
tions, rapidly, being intended to accompany mounted 
forces in swift attacks, etc., the voltigeurs being ex 
ercised at riding on the pommels of the cavalrymen s 
saddles. The maximum standard of height for the 
French voltigeurs was four feet eleven inches, and the 
smaller they were the better. They were armed with 
light guns, and at first with sabres, but a decree of 
October 7th, 1807, provided for the retirement of the 
latter arm. The voltigeurs, unlike other French 
troops at that time, had no drums, their instrument of 
music being a "cornet," a sort of small hunting horn 
which was later replaced by an instrument much 
resembling the modern trumpet. 

The voltigeurs made such an impression by their 
useful services that two regiments of conscripts raised 
as chasseurs to form part of the Young Guard, peti 
tioned in 1810 to be allowed the designation of 
voltigeurs. Under the second empire the voltigeurs 
were accorded the same pay as grenadiers, and shared 
with that branch of the service the charge of the colours. 
The voltigeur companies occupied the left of each 
battalion. Besides the company of voltigeurs, which 
existed in each battalion of infantry of the line, there 
were in the Guard four regiments of voltigeurs. 

The Canadian Voltigeurs, who were light infantry 



or riflemen, were raised without any delay, in fact 
the strength being reported complete in forty-eight 
hours. This historical regiment was composed ex 
clusively of French Canadians. It was to de Salaberry 
and the voltigeurs that the French Canadians owe the 
proudest laurels of the chaplet of glory they so gallantly 
earned during this war. 

The "Canadian Fencible Infantry Regiment" (10 
companies), already serving in the province and carried 
on the establishment of the regular army, was largely 
recruited among the French Canadians, its officers 
being taken almost exclusively from the regular army. 

The complete list of officers of the Canadian Fencible 
Infantry in 1812 was as follows: 

Colonel Major-General Thomas Peter (1); Lieut- 
Col., Major-General David Shank, George Robertson; 
Major Francis Cockburn (1). Captains James 
Eccles (2), William De Haren, Thomas Hay (2), Ed 
ward Cartwright (2), Dugald Campbell, George R. 
Ferguson (2), Ewan McMillan, Alex. McQueen, James 
Pentz. Lieutenants John Reid (2), William Marshall, 
Ronald M Donell, Wm. Radenhurst, Henry Weather- 
ston, John Johnston, Daniel Dupre(2), Archid. K.John 
son, Alexander Grant, R. M. Cochrane, Edward 
Dewar (staff). Ensigns Alex. McMillan, Charles Pin- 
guet, Thomas F. Gunter, Benjamin Delisle, Ulysses 
Fitzmorris. Paymaster Lieut. Wm. Marshall; Ad 
jutant Lieut. R. M. Cochrane; Quartermaster 
Alex. Fraser; Surgeon Michael Mabey; Asst.-Sur- 
geon Alex. Cunningham. 

The list of officers published in 1813 showed a few 
changes. Captain De Haren had been promoted 
major, and Lieut. Patrick Nowlan had been brought 
in to replace Lieutenant Cochrane, detailed to other 
duty, as Adjutant. The company officers in (1813) 
stood as follows : 

Captains Thomas Hay (2), Edward Cartwright 
(2), George R. Ferguson (2), Alex. McQueen, James 
Pentz, John Hall, G. S. Peach, W. H. Hailes, Wm. 
Marshall, Josias Taylor. 

Lieutenant Wm. Radenhurst, Henry Weatherston, 
John Johnston, Alex. Grant, Chas. Pinguet, Noah 
Freer, Benjamin Delisle, Ulysses Fitzmorris, Pierre 
Gamelin. 

Knsigns G. De Hertel, B. Gugy, E. W. Antrobus, 
G. C. Peach, Walter Davidson, Louis Dufresne, Robert 
Tagart, Wm. Taylor. 

During the years immediately preceding the 
war much progress had been made in the organization 
of the militia, and by the year 1812 the militia force of 
Lower Canada had undergone considerable change and 
had developed greatly. At its head was the following 
imposing staff: 

(1) Absent. (2) Temporary Rank 



52 



Adjutant-General Lt.-Col. Francois Vassal de Mon- 
viel. 

Deputy Adj.-General Lt.-Col. Xav. de Lanaudiere. 

Assistant Adj.-General Major Charles Fremont. 

Orderly Clerk to the Adj.-General Charles Simon 
Turcot, Orderly Sergeant. 

Adjutant of Provincial Militia Lt.-Col. A. L. Ju- 
chereau Duchesnay. 

Provincial Aides-de-Camp Lieut.-Col. P. de Bou- 
cherville, Lieut.-Col. M. H. Percival. 

Adjutants for the Town of Quebec Capt. J. Bte. 
Destimauville, Capt. Louis de Montizambert, Lieut. 
Joseph Gary. 

Adjutants for the Town of Montreal Capt. R. 
Griffin, 1st Bat,; Capt. J. G. Delisle, 2nd Bat.; Lieut. 
Ls. Charland, 3rd Bat. 

Adjutant for the four divisions south of the St. 
Lawrence, District of Montreal Capt. L. R. C. Delery. 

Adjutant for the District of Trois Rivieres Capt. 
F. Boucher, for the north, Lieut. M. J. de Tonnancourt, 
for the south. 

Adjutants for the Eastern Townships Captain Jacob 
Glen, Captain Philip Byrne. 

Adjutant for the Chambly Division de Captain 
D. Lukin. 

Adjutant for the Gaspe District Lieut. H. O Hara. 

The district of Quebec comprised 8 regimental divi 
sions, that of Montreal, 13; Three Rivers, 2; Eastern 
Townships, 6; Gaspe, 1. 

As soon as war was declared the regular troops were 
moved to Montreal, and Quebec was garrisoned by 
the militia. At Montreal, the militia also turned out 
for garrison duty. On the 6th of August the whole 
militia were commanded to hold themselves in readi 
ness for embodiment. A military epidemic seized 
young and old ; but there was an exception to the rule 
of martial enthusiasm. In the Parish of Pointe Claire, 
on Lake St. Louis, some young men, who had been 
drafted into the embodied militia, refused to join their 
battalions. Of these, four were apprehended; but 
one was rescued, and it was determined by his neigh 
bours to organize a party to liberate such others of their 
friends as had already joined the depot of the embodied 
militia of the district at Laprairie. Accordingly, on 
the following day, some three or four hundred persons 
assembled at Lachine for this purpose; but it soon 
appeared that the trouble was due to a misunderstand 
ing. The habitants refused to believe the assurances 
of the magistrates that the militia law was simply 
being enforced. They shouted "Vive le Roi" and 
announced their readiness to serve in the field provided 
they were regularly called out by the governor, but 
held that the embodiment had been done without 
authority. As the rioters refused to budge, two pieces 



of artillery and a company of the 49th Regiment, 
which had arrived from Montreal, confronted the 
crowd. The Riot Act, after great provocation, was 
read, and after the troops and rioters had fired several 
volleys over each others heads, the soldiers were 
ordered to shoot into the mob, and one man was killed 
and another dangerously wounded. The mutineers 
then dispersed, leaving some of the most daring among 
them to keep up a straggling fire from the bushes. 
The military made thirteen prisoners, and as night was 
setting in, left for Montreal. Next day, four hundred 
and fifty of the Montreal Militia marched to Pointe 
Claire, and from thence to St. Laurent, where they 
captured twenty-four of the mutineers and took them 
to Montreal. But the Pointe Claire habitants bitterly 
repented the resistance which they had made to the 
militia law, and many of them craved forgiveness, 
which was readily given. 

One of the first measures decided upon by Congress 
was the capture of Montreal. Strategy proper, and 
political strategy alike justified the attempt, and a 
powerful and well equipped army of 10,000 men was 
concentrated around Champlain, N.Y., and placed 
under the command of General Dearborn. De Sala- 
berry was entrusted with the command of a line of 
outposts established along this side of the line. An 
advance base was established at Lacadie. The force 
at this point consisted of the flank companies of the 
8th, 100th, and 103rd Regiments of Foot, the Canadian 
Fencibles, the flank companies of the embodied militia, 
and a six-gun battery of artillery. 

During the night of November 20th, a column of 
some 1,200 Americans made a reconnaissance in force 
into Canadian territory, and came to grief at Lacolle, 
where they found their progress opposed by a picquet 
of some 500 militia and Indians. Through their faulty 
dispositions for the attack, the invaders fired into 
their own men, the result being an immediate retreat. 

The provincial militia organization during the war 
included a recognized establishment of volunteers, 
several companies in Quebec and four in Montreal, 
the latter attached to the First Battalion of Montreal 
militia. The officers of the volunteer companies, 
which were organized "to perform garrison duties 
voluntarily, or to take the field if necessary," were 
regularly gazetted, and the companies in Montreal 
were brigaded, with a commandant and adjutant of 
their own, but they were attached to their territorial 
militia regiments. 

The battalions of embodied militia raised at various 
times in the province during the war were recruited by 
districts, under militia officers, but equipped from I lie 
magazines of the regular army, and subsisted from 
the regular commissariat. Minor details of organization 



53 



were referred to the regular staff in the province . 
These battalions were of considerable strength and 
well equipped. From requisitions, parade states, etc., 
in the Dominion Archives, it appears, for instance, 
that the 3rd battalion of embodied militia, Lieut. - 
Col. James Cuthbert, raised in the Three Rivers 
district, consisted of 880 rank and file. The uniform 
consisted of green jackets, blue trousers, caps (decorated 
with feathers, rosettes and bugle badges), and moc 
casins. The sergeants carried pikes and wore sashes 
like those of regular regiments. 

Occasionally the embodied militia were hard put to 
it for uniform. Lieut. -Colonel Voyer, commanding 
the 4th battalion "Select and Embodied Militia," 
writing from his regimental headquarters at Chateau- 
guay to the military secretary of His Excellency, 
September 26, 1814, complained that upwards of 500 
men of his battalion had not been supplied with any 
clothing or shoes since June, 1813, and a great many 
of the men had no other but linen trousers. 

Several levies of the sedentary militia were made, 
not merely in cases of invasion, but to carry out 
military works at Isle atix Noix and other points 
along the exposed frontier. August 16, 1813, Major- 
General Sheaffe was informed from headquarters that 
no more corvee or levying of the militia for manual 
labour alone was to be required. 

The Lower Canadian militia, and more particularly 
"provincial corps", raised in the Lower Province, took 
a much more important part than they usually get 
credit for in the campaigns in Upper Canada. The 
organized Corps of Voyageurs was not sufficiently 
numerous to do all of the water transportation work 
between Montreal and Kingston, and parties of men 
were drafted from the various battalions of embodied 
militia to do this work. And these parties frequently 
took part in the skirmishing which took place along 
the line of communications between the head of Lake 
St. Francis and Kingston. Detachments of the 
Voltigeurs were present at the battle of Chrysler s 
Farm, and rendered valuable service. 

Two provincial corps were raised in Montreal early in 
1813, " His Majesty s Canadian Light Dragoons," Captain 
Thomas Colemaii commanding, and a provincial field 
artillery corps, Captain John S. Sinclair commanding. 
These corps went through the very thick of the fight 
ing in the Upper Province, but writers generally have 
lost sight of their identity, confusing them with the 
regular and Upper Canadian corps. 

Documents in the Dominion Archives give par 
ticulars of the raising and services of these corps. 

December 22nd, 1812, Captain Noah Freer, military 
secretary to the governor, wrote to General de Rotten- 



burg at Montreal that the officer commanding the 
Royal Artillery desired the formation in the Montreal 
district of a corps of drivers for the artillery, more 
efficient than the existing establishment. 

In those days the drivers of the field guns, with 
their horses, formed a corps distinct from the artillery. 
Now, they form part of the artillery corps as much as 
do the gunners. 

General de Rottenburg, December 26th, 1812, re 
plied to the letter, mentioning that it was his decided 
opinion that the most eligible mode to raise the corps 
"will be to recruit the men amongst the Canadians, for 
the space of eighteen months, or during the war with 
the United States, and to grant them a bounty of five 
pounds currency, which should cover the reward given 
to the bringer, and supply them with certain articles 
of necessaries. 

"About eighty would be wanted, and I should think 
that men of the description required might be readily 
got, from the general predilection that the Canadians 
have to be about horses; and another strong induce 
ment will be the superior rate of pay of the corps. 

" Should, on trial, the recruiting fail, the expedient 
of taking, from the sedentary militia, eligible men and 
such as should prefer to join one of the incorporated 
battalions, may be resorted to. 

"As for procuring volunteers from the embodied 
militia, as stated in your letter to complete the number 
of gunner drivers, appears to me to militate against 
the Law, Vide 52, George 3rd, Section 60, where it is 
said: 

"Every militiaman ordered out or ballotted, who, 
being in actual service, shall enroll himself in a corps 
of troops or embodied militia, shall be confined in 
prison, without bail, during a space of time not exceed 
ing one month, and his enlistment shall be null, &c. " 

Captain Sinclair reported his corps as raised to the 
full strength March 30th, and soon after, it was sent to 
the front. Captain Sinclair, in the correspondence, 
sometimes calls the corps "The Royal Montreal Driv 
ers," and at others "The Troop Provincial R. C. Ar 
tillery Drivers. " Gunners appear to have been 
included in the establishment, for September 13, 1813, 
Sinclair wrote Captain Freer, the military secretary, 
Quebec, as follows: 

"I enclose for the authority of His Excellency a 
request for clothing for 22 additional gunners who are 
entering on their second year of service, 12 of them 
are now at Kingston. May I trouble you to present it." 
Captain Thomas Coleman raised his troop, "H.M. 
Canadian Light Dragoons," in Montreal about the 
same time. April 15, 1813, the strength of the troop 
was 1 captain, (Coleman) ; 1 lieutenant, (Benjamin 
Holmes) ; 1 cornet, (Pierre Lefevre) ; 2 sergeants, 4 



54 



corporals, 2 trumpeters, 43 privates and 51 horses. 
The strength appears to have been increased consider 
ably before being despatched to Upper Canada. Cap 
tain Coleman having asked Sir George Prevost to 
advise a uniform, he recommended the following: 
blue jacket with red cuffs and collar, white buttons; felt 
helmet with bearskin trimming; grey overalls strapped 
with leather; Canadian beef half-boots, to lace in front. 

The troop not merely served on the lines of com 
munication between Montreal and the Niagara frontier, 
but participated in some of the hardest fighting and 
other military operations, including Proctor s move 
ments, the affairs at Forty-Mile Creek, Beaver Dams, 
St. Davids, the Cross Roads, Sandwich, etc. The 
troop baggage upon one occasion was lost, and several 
of the troop were taken by the enemy and held prison 
ers for a considerable time. 

January 22, Lieutenant-General Sir Gordon Drum- 
mond at Kingston recommended the augmentation of 
Captain Coleman s troop by a cornet and ten men, 
adding that from the report of Major-General Vincent 
and other officers at the front he was perfectly satisfied 
of the utility of the corps services. 

Captain Coleman, in an official report of March 27, 
1815, remarked of his men, "They have conducted 
themselves generally in a soldierlike manner, and I have 
never had to use corporal punishment. The troop was 
disbanded at Montreal May, 12, 1815, the officers and 
men receiving pay up to the 24th. 

One of the most important permanent organizations 
of the war carried upon the militia establishment of 
Lower Canada was the Corps of Voyageurs, a corps of 
Canadian boatmen for the transportation of troops 
and supplies up and down the St. Lawrence, particularly 
between Montreal and Kingston. 

The officers of this corps, many of them North- West 
traders, were in 1813 as follows: 

Wm. McGillivray, Lieut .-Col. Commandant; Angus 
Shaw, 1st Major; Archibald N. McLeod, 2nd Major. 

Captains Alexander McKenzie, William McKay, 
John McDonell, Pierre de Rocheblave, James Hughes, 
Kenneth McKenzie. 

Lieutenants James Goddard, Joseph McGillivray, 
Joseph McKenzie, William Hall, Peter Grant. 

Ensigns Pierre Perras, James Maxwell, John Mc 
Gillivray, Andre Baron, Louis Joseph Gauthier, 
Pierre Rototte, fils. Aeneas Cameron, Paymaster; 
Cartwright, Adjutant; James Campbell, Quartermas 
ter, Henry Monro, Surgeon. 

During this campaign, steamboats were used for the 
transportation of troops and military stores between 
Quebec and Montreal, among the vessels so employed 
being the " Accomodation," the pioneer St. Lawrence 
steamer, which was launched at Montreal in 1809, by 



Mr. John Molson. Was this the first occasion on which 
steam power was put to use in military operations? 

There was considerable legislation affecting the 
militia during the war. By the preamble of 52 George 
III, Chap. 2,it appeared that that act was only to apply 
to the then present year. The act, 53 George III, 
Chap. 2, made an appropriation for certain expenses 
of the embodied militia during the war. The act, 55 
George III, Chap. 1 (May 8, 1815), revived and amended 
43 George III, Chap. 1 and 52 George III, Chap. 1, 
and continued them as amended until May 1, 1816, 
and to the end of the war. An act (55 George III, 
Chap. 10, made permanent the 31st section of 43 George 
III, Chap. 1, granting pensions to certain classes of 
wounded Militiamen, and to the widows of those 
killed on service. 

After the conclusion of peace, with the exception of a 
volunteer troop of cavalry or a company of rifles here and 
there, not amounting in both provinces to 300or400men, 
there was no armed force in the country exclusive of 
the regulars. The few isolated cavalry and rifle corps 
were of an independent character, officers and men 
uniforming and maintaining the corps at their own 
expense, and even purchasing the arms privately. Of 
course they received no pay or allowances, and were 
not subjected to any systematic oversight. 

The members of the legislature of Lower Canada 
found something else to interest them besides military 
matters The country and this is equally true of 
both provinces of Canada was about entering upon 
the hardest and most bitter phase of the long struggle 
between the popular representatives and the bureau 
cracy, for responsible government. Issues affecting 
finances, administration, representation and the con 
stitution itself were of paramount importance. The 
militia languished, and practically ceased to exist 
except upon paper. The long lists of the officers of 
the sedentary militia made a brave show, and the form 
of holding the annual muster on June 29th each year 
was kept up. 

The militia law in force at the termination of the 
war of 1812-14 was a temporary one, requiring renewal 
every few years, and lapsed for want of re-enacting in 
1820. At the request of the governor-in-chief, the 
Earl of Dalhousie, who remarked that the constitutional 
provision for the defence of the country had been 
shown by the late war to be peculiarly well suited to 
Lower Canada, the legislature, by passing 59 George 
III, Chap. 3 re-enacted the law for another two years. 
By the acts 1 George IV. Chap. 4 and 22 (1821), 
3rd, George IV, Chap. 28, and 5th George IV, Chap. 21, 
the act was further continued. The period of the last ex 
tension terminated at a most awkward time for the admin 
istration. The struggle betweenthelegislative assembly 



55 



of Lower Canada on one side, and the governor-in- 
chicf on the other, regarding the forms and accounts in 
connection with the votes for the expenses of the 
civil government, reached a climax in 1827, and the 
differences on this one question were so acute that 
they caused the rejection by the legislature of every 
measure which the government presented, including 
the bill to renew the Militia Act. The administration 
claimed that by the expiry of the Militia Act, two old 
militia ordinances of the legislative council of the 
old Province of Quebec of 1787 and 1789, were automatic 
ally revived, they never having been absolutely 
repealed. This of course was disputed by the opposi 
tion, and the militia became a source of discord and 
agitation. The governor promptly ordered the formal 
musters of the militia to be made under the old ordinances. 
and some militia officers, who protested publicly that the 
proceeding was illegal and tried to dissuade the militia 
men from attending muster, had their commissions 
cancelled. This action was held up as a further 
arbitrary abuse of the executive powers. 

The militiamen s duty was exceedingly light, in 
fact only nominal, under either the temporary lapsed 
acts or the old re-instated ordinances. The militiamen 
had to meet after divine service on a Sunday, or other 
holiday, once a year, and answer to the call of their 
names, as an acknowledgment of obedience to the 
law s, and their duty was done. 

While the affairs of the provincial militia were in 
this unsatisfactory condition, Lord Dalhousie under 
took to effect an important reform in the system under 
which the militia in the City of Quebec were divided 
into "British" and "Canadian" battalions, a system 
which tended to keep alive an inexpedient and im 
politic distinction. Consequently a militia general 
order was issued under date April 28, 1828, reading 
as follows: 

"His excellency the governor-general and com- 
mander-in-chief, being desirous to do away with the 
distinction which has always been supposed to exist 
in the militia of Quebec as forming one English and 
two Canadian battalions, has thought proper to 
order that to each battalion be allotted a certain 
portion of the city, in which all householders or lodgers 
shall be enrolled, whether British or Canadian born, 
that no distinction of religion shall be considered 
and that arrangements shall be made gradually, to 
appoint to each battalion those captains and officers 
and non-commissioned officers, who, as householders, 
are resident within the limits of the battalion. The 
governor-in-chief is sensible that this may create at 
first some trouble and inconvenience, but the object 
is too important to admit of any consideration of such 
a difficulty, etc., etc." 



This system was in 1847 reversed, and the old order 
of things restored, by Lord Cathcart. The unwise 
change was attributed to the advice given His Excel 
lency by Lieut. -Col. Tache, then adjutant-general 
of the militia in Lower Canada. (Christie.) 

During the session of 1829, while Sir James Kempt 
was acting as administrator, much time was occupied 
discussing a new militia bill. The assembly passed 
the bill with a clause declaring that the removals 
and appointments of officers that had been made since 
May 1st, 1827, when the militia ordinances of 1787 and 
1789 came into force again in consequence of the lapsing 
of the temporary acts, were illegal and null. The 
legislative council considered that this entrenched 
upon the prerogative of the executive, amended the 
bill accordingly, and sent it back to the assembly for 
concurrence. The assembly refused to accept the 
amendments, and the bill fell through. 

At the following session, the question of the militia 
was again revived, at first apparently with the object 
rather of impeaching the former governor than with 
that of placing militia matters in the province on a 
more satisfactory basis. The result of the first dis 
cussion of militia matters during the session was the 
adoption of a petition to the King by " the Commons 
of Lower Canada, in Provincial Parliament assembled," 
which is interesting as giving a review of the militia 
legislation of the province since the conquest. 

According to the terms of the petition: 

"Certain ordinances for the better regulation of the 
militia of the then Province of Quebec, were made 
and passed by the governor and legislative council 
of the said province in the years of 1787 and 1789, 
which ordinances were inadequate, arbitrary and 
vexatious in their provisions, unnecessarily bother 
some to the subject, subversive of personal freedom 
and the right of property, and subjected all the male 
inhabitants of the said province, between sixteen 
and sixty years of age, to an exercise of martial law 
in time of peace. 

"That by an act passed in the second session of 
the first Provincial Parliament of Lower Canada, 
in the 34th year of the reign of your Majesty s royal 
father of revered memory, (George III), it was declared 
and enacted that from and after the passing of the said 
act, the said ordinances shall be, and they are hereby 
repealed, and certain temporary provisions were 
substituted in lieu thereof. 

"That the said provisions and other temporary 
provisions for regulating the militia were continued or 
enacted by various other acts of the provincial parlia 
ment, and continued from time to time, till the first day 
of May in the year 1816, when they expired in con 
sequence of a premature dissolution of the house of 



56 



assembly, and were revived by another temporary act 
of the provincial parliament, passed on the twenty- 
second day of March in the following year. 

"That during the interval between the first day 
of May in the year 1816 and the said 22nd of March, 
1817, the aforesaid ordinances, nor any other law 
for regulating the militia were enforced or pretended to 
be inforced, or known to be in existence by the body of 
the inhabitants of the said province fit for militia 
duty. 




The Rt. Hon. Lord Strathconu and Mount Royal, ! .( .. G.C.M.G., 

Honorary Colonel, the 3rd Victoria Rifles. Commanded a 

militia company at Winnipeg during the Fenian Raid of 

1871. Raised Strathcona s Horee during the South 

African War at his own expense. 



"That all the provisions for regulating the militia 
of this province revived, continued or enacted by the 
provincial parliament, at or subsequently to the said 
22nd day of March, in the year 1817, expired on the first 
day of May. 1827. after a sudden prorogation of the 



provincial parliament, which was followed by a pre 
mature dissolution of the assembly. 

"That the aforesaid ordinances of the governor and 
legislative council, for regulating the militia of the late 
Province of Quebec, were pretended to be revived, and 
were enforced by the late governor of this province. 
soon after the said prorogation, whereby he assumed a 
legislative authority over your Majesty s subjects in 
this province, and attempted to establish arbitrary 
power over their persons and property, under colour of 
law." 

Among the British names appearing in the divi 
sion list as supporting this petition were those of 
Messrs. Leslie, Brookes, Child, Scott, Peck, Cannon. 
Neilson and Knowlton. 

On receiving the petition, his excellency stated 
that he would not fail to transmit it to the King, 
but added: "I must, however, observe on the 
present occasion that His Majesty s courts of justice 
in this province, having determined that the ord 
inances in question are laws in force, my duty neces 
sarily requires me to be governed by such judicial 
decision until a new act shall be passed by the pro 
vincial parliament for the regulation of the militia, 
a measure which I sincerely hope will be effected 
in the course of the present session. 

It is understood that the Home Government took 
no notice of this petition. 

Later in the session a militia bill (10 and 11 
George IV, Chap. 3) was passed, putting at rest the 
difficulty that had arisen between the executive and 
the assembly, relative to the old ordinances of 1787 
and 1789. This bill enabled the governor to call the 
legislature together in time of war, etc.. exacted a 
property qualification in persons commissioned to 
the militia, and residence within their respective 
territorial divisions. 

Before the departure of Sir James Kempt, 
(October 30, 1830) he made a beginning with the 
reorganization of the militia, reinstating several, if 
not all, of those deprived of their commissions, leav 
ing the consummation of the work of conciliation 
and reform to his successor, Lord Aylmer, who 
arrived at Quebec, to assume the reins of govern 
ment, in H.M.S. Herald, October 13. 1830. Hence 
the earliest association of the Aylmer family with the 
national defensive 1 force of Canada. 

In opening the session of the legislature in 1834, the 
governor in his speech remarked: "Amongst the acts 
which are about to expire, I think it necessary to draw 
your particular attention to the act 10 and 11 George 
IV., Chap. 3, intituled An act to provide for the better 
defence of the province, and to regulate the militia 



57 



thereof, continued by 2nd William IV., Cap. 55. 
Should it be judged expedient further to continue that 
act, I would recommend to you to consider the expe 
diency of embodying in it the provisions of the act 2nd 
William IV., Cap. 42, intituled An act to authorize 
the appointment of courts of enquiry, for investigating 
the qualifications of militia officers in certain cases/ 
which act is also about to expire. " 

In proroguing parliament the governor thanked the 
legislature for having passed the militia bill as recom 
mended. 

At this period there was some small effort within 
the militia of Lower Canada to maintain what may be 
called an active force of drilled volunteers, several 
volunteer companies being organized at Montreal and 
Quebec. At first they appear to have been uniformed 
and equipped at the private expense of the members, 
and there was, ot course, no idea of obtaining pay for 
drill; but for a short time some of these volunteer 
corps connected with militia organizations had the 
distinction of obtaining official recognition and of even 
being armed, and to a very slight extent, equipped, 
at the public expense. 

In the Dominion Archives, at Ottawa, is a return 
dated October 16, 1824, of "Arms, accoutrements, 
ammunition, etc., issued to different regiments of 
militia in the .Montreal District from March Quarter, 
1823 to September Quarter, 1824." 

This return shows that there were issued to the Fifth 
Battalion Township Militia in March Quarter, 1823, 
under authority of an order dated February 21st, 1823, 
sixty swords of scimitar pattern and fourteen belts 
for same, the whole of a value of sixty one pounds, 
eleven shillings and eight pence. 

To the "Montreal Militia" there were issued in the 
June Quarter, under authority dated June 5, 1823, 
fifty muskets complete and 150 musket ball cartridges, 
1 he whole of a value of one hundred pounds, nine 
shillings. 

To the " Royal Montreal Cavalry, " in the December 
Quarter, on authority dated November 29, 1823, there 
were issued 40 saddles and bridles, 60 swords ("Scy- 
mitar") with scabbards, 60 cavalry pistols and 160 
buff leather slings and infantry pouches. 

To the last mentioned corps a further issue was 
made during March Quarter, 1824, on authority dated 
January 24, 1824, of 50 saddles and bridles, 40 swords 
and scabbards, 40 saddle bags and ISO buff slings and 
pouches, the whole issue to the corps being valued at 
573, 3s., 4d. 

To the Montreal Rifle Corps in June Quarter, 1824, 
under authority dated May 28, 1824, there were issued 
.)()() ball cartridges described as "French musquets," 



and fourteen and a half pounds of fine grain powder, 
the whole of a value of 3, Is, Id. 

To the Beauharnois Militia in the June Quarter, on 
authority dated March 10, 1824, there were issued 100 
musquets, 100 sets of accoutrements complete and 1,000 
ball cartridges. 

The value of the whole issue was 993, 15s., Id., as 
certified by F. Sisson, the storekeeper at Montreal. 

The apparent triumph of these enthusiastic volun 
teers was not to be of long duration, thanks to a com 
bination of red-tape and political exigency. 

December 27, 1824, the secretary of the Ordnance 
Department wrote to the Colonial Office in London, 
transmitting a detailed account for these arms and 
accoutrements and asking on behalf of the Board of 
Ordnance that the Earl of Bathurst, the colonial 
secretary, be asked to order payment of the amount of 
993, 14s., Id., to the Treasurer of the Ordnance. 

February 11, 1825, the Colonial Department on be 
half of Lord Bathurst transmitted the correspondence 
from the Board of Ordnance to the Earl of Dalhousie, 
the governor-in-chief, then in England, with the re 
quest that the governor would report "for His Lord 
ship s (Bathurst s) information the fund from which 
the payments referred to can be made. " 

The governor-in-chief replied on the 17th of the 
same month, and his letter was answered by one 
which is very interesting as indicating the attitude of 
the Imperial Government, at that date, towards the 
local forces of the colonies. The colonial secretary s 
letter to the Earl of Dalhousie was as follows : 

Downing Street, 

5th March, 1828. 
My Lord: 

I have the honour to acknowledge the receipt of your 
despatch of the 17th February. 

I approve of the issues which have been made, 
under your directions, of ordinance stores to certain 
corps of militia in the district of Montreal, and I have 
to convey to you my authority for the payment of 
their value, 993 18s. Id from the military chest at 
Quebec to be charged upon the army extraordinaries. 
I must, however, apprize you that although free grants 
of arms are allowed by His Majesty s Government to 
colonial militias on their first establishment, with a 
view to encourage the formation of such corps, yet 
this encouragement is given in the confident anticipa 
tion that the colonies, when the militias are so formed, 
will maintain them properly accoutred and armed, 
without further assistance from His Majesty s Govern 
ment other than the advantage of receiving from time 
to time the necessary supplies from the ordinance 



58 



stores on payment of the price at which they were 
originally contracted for in this country. You will 
therefore consider that the province under your govern 
ment must provide for all future supplies of this nature, 
unless they are for the purpose of facilitating the 
formation of a new corps, or under some special cir 
cumstances, on which you will enable me to take His 
Majesty s pleasure. 

It appears, moreover, by representations which have 
been made by the Master-General and Board of Ordi 
nance that in all cases of supplies furnished to the 
colonial militias, whether gratuitously or otherwise, 
it is necessary that an application should lie previously 
transmitted to me, and after communication with the 
ordinance, having been approved by this office, direc 
tions will be given for such a delivery being made as 
shall be then authorized, and upon notice of their 
having been so delivered, the agents of the respective 
provinces must be duly authorized, by the proper 
authorities, to pay the Ordinance for them at the rate 
at which the Ordinance may have contracted for them. 

I have the honour to be 
my lord, 

Your lordship s obedient 

humble servant, 

BATHURST. 

Further correspondence ensued between the officials 
in Canada, which shows that during 1824 certain arms 
and accoutrements had also been issued to various 
Quebec militia corps, including The Artillery Volunteers" 
" ( irenadier and Light Companies of the 1st Battalion," 
" Light Company, 2nd Battalion," "Quebec Volunteer 
Cavalry," "Quebec Volunteer Rifle Company," "Volun 
teer Militia Companies in the Township of Hull." 

In a letter of October 28, 1825, addressed to Major 
General Darling by Ralph Gore, ordinance storekeeper 
at Quebec and Capt. G. Coffin, commanding the 
Royal Artillery, to whom the matter had been referred, 
the following was stated: "All the arms and accoutre 
ments which were issued were articles which had been 
used and repaired, and the arms in particular, although 
called serviceable, were only fit for the exercise or train 
ing of troops and were not fit for actual service. A 
great proportion of the articles issued to the militia 
in the Montreal district were supplied from the stores 
at Quebec." 

The two officers declined to place any value on the 
articles in question for this reason. 

This was the exact period when the acrimonious 
discussion over the financial system of the government 
was at its very height, the governor-in-chief being 



accused of making use of the public monies illegally, 
without the previous authority of the legislature, 
Particularly had he been censured by Papineau and 
others for certain advances made from the military 
chest to the receiver-general. As the army authorities 
would assume no responsibility, even so far as to place 
the actual value on the arms and accoutrements, 
Lord Dalhousie appears to have ordered all the goods 
issued to be returned into stores, and August 2,1826, 
Lord Bathurst wrote him approving "of the measure 
you have adopted for causing the arms and accoutre 
ments issued to be returned into ordinance stores." 
In the same letter Bathurst expressed the opinion that 
arms might be sold to men of good character who 
formed themselves into military corps, but held sub 
ject to recall. 

During the period immediately preceding the out 
break of the rebellion in 1837 the militia of Lower 
Canada had little encouragement, and the few 
volunteer corps less. If volunteer corps were main 
tained in the cities of Montreal and Quebec at all, 
it was due rather to the military spirit of the 
officers and men and to the popular apprehension that 
the perpetual political agitation would eventually 
result in rebellion, than to any encouragement received 
from the authorities. 

When the rebellion actually broke out in the autumn 
of 1837, Montreal, and in fact the whole of Canada, 
had very little in the way of military protection. The 
position was very critical indeed. There were only four 
or five regiments in Canada, the First Royals, 15th, 
24th, 32nd, and 66th. 

The sedentary militia battalions were in a hopeless 
state of disorganization, and the only volunteer corps 
in the Montreal district which was chiefly affected, 
were a troop of cavalry at Lachine, a troop in Mont 
real, and a rifle company in Montreal. 

When the authorities realized that they had a rebel 
lion on hand they at once authorized the enrollment 
of volunteer corps. The loyal male population of the 
City of Montreal which was not enrolled in volunteer 
corps was formed into Ward Drill Associations" or 
"Home Guards". 

These corps and drill associations were soon up to 
full strength, and the whole British population, and 
many loyal French, went in for soldiering with enthu 
siasm. All the available halls and warehouses in 
Montreal were pressed into service as drill 
halls, and the volunteers drilled night and 
day. Each corps had a sergeant from one 
of the regular regiments attached as drill instructor, 
and a few weeks of such hard work as they put in 
speedily got the various units into very good shape 
indeed. 



5!) 



The Government furnished these corps with flint 
locks and accoutrements. They were not served 
with uniforms the first year, but supplied with military 
overcoats and immense fur caps. 

After the rebellion, there ensued another period of 
depression in military affairs in Lower Canada. It 
was. so far as military matters were concerned, the 
time of the most inactive part of the era of torpor in 
England, which intervened between the battle of Water 
loo and the Crimean war. In 1840 the Royal Cana 
dian Rifle Regiment was organized in Canada. The 
regiment was in no way connected with the militia, 
being an Imperial corps raised for garrison purposes 
in Canada and recruited among veterans who had 
not served less than seven years in line regiments. 
As might be supposed the men were a remarkably 
sturdy and generally fine lot. The Regiment per 



formed garrison duty until 1871, when it was dis 
banded. This corps did its part in keeping up some 
military spirit in Canada previous to 1855 and, 
moreover, in the year last mentioned did good service 
for the newly organized active militia regiments by 
providing them with very efficient instructors. But 
this is anticipating. 

The Act of Union was drafted by Lord Sydeiiham 
and passed by the British parliament in 1840, the 
object being to obviate difficulties which had arisen 
between the sister provinces. Before the drafting of 
this act, the special council of Lower Canada had 
agreed to the union and to the assumption by the 
United Provinces of the large debt of Upper Canada, 
and a month after this agreement had been reached, 
namely, in December, 1839, the legislative of Upper 
Canada had also agreed to the union. 




60 











CHAPTER VI 



THE MILITIA OF UNITED CANADA 



THK MOTHER COUNTRY, WHILE CONCEDING SELF-GOVERNMENT TO CANADA, EXPECTS HER TO Do MORE IN 
HER OWN DEFENCE. THE TRENT AFFAIR AND FENIAN RAIDS. THE MILITIA BECOMES A NATIONAL 
DEFENSIVE FORCE. 



AT the time of the Union, the muster rolls of 
the sedentary militia in Upper Canada, known 
as "Canada West" iii the Union, showed 
248 battalions with 117,000 men, while in Lower 
Canada, ("Canada East") there were 178 battalions 
with 118,000 men. 

It will have been observed by the reading of the 
preceding chapters that, although the systems on 
which the militia of the two provinces of 
"United Canada" were organized were of completely 
different origins, they were both based upon the under 
lying principle of universal liability to military service 
of the adult male populations, with a few natural 
exceptions. Conscription was the theory of both, 
the ballot being available to raise any force for active 
service in case an insufficient number of volunteers 
offered, and there was a provision in both provinces 
for the acceptance of volunteers towards the quota. 
There were some clearly defined points of difference 
in the militia systems of the two provinces somewhat 
to be wondered at, in view of the continual interchange 
of civil and military administrators between the sister 
provinces. 

In Upper Canada the militia was composed of all the 
male inhabitants between the ages of 18 and 60, and 
they had, as a matter of duty, to muster once only each 
year, and merely for enrollment. Colonels, however, 
had the optional right to assemble their commands 



one day in each month for drill and inspection, but 
they seldom, if ever, did it. In Lower Canada the 
service age was from 16 to 60, and there were three 
compulsory muster days each year, namely, in June, 
July and August. The object of these musters was 
not merely enrollment, but "to review arms, to fire 
at marks, and for instruction in the exercise." In 
Lower Canada, moreover, in line with the practices 
of the old French regime, the militia officers and 
even non-commissioned officers continued to exercise 
important functions in connection with the civil 
administration, the maintenance of highways and 
bridges, the enforcement of the statute labour laws, 
the holding of coroner s inquests, etc. 

At the time of the Union the question of Canadian 
defence was under serious consideration in England, 
reports on the subject having been prepared by army 
officers then serving in Canada. The British govern 
ment urged that as Canada was being accorded more 
fully the right to govern herself, and was also being 
given direct control of her national assets and revenues, 
she should assume her own share of responsibility 
in connection with the defence of her frontier. In 
fact, British statesmen began to think that it was 
time for Canada to do something more than supply 
the men for an auxiliary force to the Britisli army 
in the case of war or invasion. One of the most im 
portant communications ever received from England, 



(ii 



upon the subject of Canadian defence, bears date as 
fur back as 1841, and was contained in a despatch 
from Lord John Russell, then colonial secretary, to 
Lord Sydenham, governor-general, which read as 
follows : 

" Downing "Street, 3rd May, 1841. 
" My Lord, 

"The despatches which I have received from you on 
the general state of the Province of Canada, the re 
ports with which you have furnished me on several 
important subjects, and the approaching meeting of 
the council and assembly of the United Province have 
induced me to explain to you, at this time, the views 
which Her Majesty s government entertain on the 
topics most interesting to the welfare of Canada. 

"In any measure that may be adopted, it must be 
laken for granted, that Her Majesty persists in the 
determination to maintain, at all hazards, Her Royal 
authority in Canada. Neither the honour of Her 
Majesty s crown, nor the support due to Her Royal 
subjects in British North America, nor the provident 
care of the interests of the empire at large, would 
permit any deviation from this fixed principle of 
British policy. 

"At the same time, Her Majesty s advisers are not 
insensible to the difficulties imposed upon them in 
carrying into execution the purpose of the crown. 

"A province bordered by an open frontier of more 
than a thousand miles, approached with ease at all 
times by the citizens of a neighboring and powerful 
state, separated from England, not only by the ocean, 
but by the rigours of climate and season, must be 
maintained by a judicious preparation for defence 
in time of peace, and vigourous exertion of the re 
sources of the empire in time of war; or not at all. To 
trifle with the fortunes of men, whose lives and pro 
perties are freely devoted to the service of England, 
or to encourage foreign aggression by neglect or apathy, 
would be far worse than the spontaneous surrender 
of these important possessions of the crown. 

"The Canadians might, in such a case, incur the 
risk; no blood need be shed, and the treasures of no 
empire might be spared. The other course would be 
cruel to a brave people, and unbecoming the character 
of the country. 

"But, as I have already said, we have no alternative. 
We have only to consider the means of binding Canada 
more firmly to this country of developing her re 
sources of strengthening her British population of 
defending her territory, and of supporting and en 
couraging the loyal spirit of the people. 

"In this spirit, then, I shall touch upon the prin 
cipal topics connected with these views. 

" 1 have perused with great interest the enclosures 



in your despatch of 24th December, 1840, containing 
reports from Lieut-General Sir Richard Jackson, and 
Col. Oldfield, the commanding officer of engineers, 
on this subject. 

"The question is one of so much importance, that I 
was not satisfied with referring your despatch to the 
.Master-General and Board of Ordnance, but I also 
asked the opinion of the commander-in -chief, and 
requested him to consult the Duke of Wellington, 
whose high authority on every military subject, is, 
in this instance, of peculiar weight, from the attention 
he has for many years given to this matter, both on 
political and on military grounds." 

" Their opinions are transmitted with this despatch. 

"Her Majesty s Government agree in opinion with 
Lord Hill and Sir Richard Jackson, that no dependence 
iiixin the decided superiority of our troops and arrange 
ments made for defence, connected with them, should 
lead us to neglect the construction, and completion of 
permanent works calculated for the protection of the 
points of most importance to us. 

"They likewise concur in His Lordship s opinion 
that, in the event of the construction of these or any 
other works, a large effective regular force, and a militia, 
registered and enrolled, but not called from their 
districts, except in case of invasion, will be indispen 
sable. 

" But it cannot be reasonably expected that works 
on a large scale should be undertaken without reference 
to the great expense to be incurred. 

" I have therefore to inform you that the Government 
are prepared to state their opinion that beyond the 
ordinary estimates of the year, 100,000 should yearly 
be applied for the defence of Canada. At present this 
sum is nearly absorbed in the maintenance of the militia 
and volunteers, but by a more economical plan this 
expense might be greatly diminished, and a great 
portion of the sum of 100,000 left for the improvement 
of military communications, and the erection and repair 
of fortifications. 

"You will hear further from me on this point when 
I have more fully considered the various plans pro 
posed. 

(Signed) J. RUSSELL." 

According to the Act of Union, the old laws of each 
province were to remain in force therein until replaced 
by legislation enacted by the parliament of Canada. 
Consequently the old militia laws remained in force for 
some time. 

The first act of the parliament of United Canada 
affecting the militia (4 and o Victoria, Chapter II), 
" An act to amend the Militia Law of that part of this 
province formerly constituting the Province of Upper 



Canada") merely provided for the amendment of two 
clauses of the old act, that affecting Quaker* and others 
have conscientious scruples against military service, 
and that relating to the collection of fines, in default 
of militia service, from Aliens. 

With this exception the old laws of the two formerly 
distinct provinces continued to remain in force until 
1864. 

This was the time of the outbreak of anti-British 
feeling and war talk in the United States over the 
Oregon Boundary dispute, when the slogan of the 
agitators was the historic formula "Fifty-four-Forty 
or-Fight." Naturally the unsatisfactory state of the 
militia laws, with one code in force in one part of the 
united province and a different one in the other, was 
realized, and June 9, 1846, assent was given to a com 
prehensive and elaborate Militia Act (9 Victoria, 
Chapter 28). 

This act was supposed to be a consolidation of the 
militia laws of the two former provinces ; but the 
influence of the old Upper Canada laws predominated, 
and a large proportion of the clauses of the new statute 
were adopted in their entirety from the laws in question. 
The militia were relieved of the various civil duties 
which had been a feature of the Lower Canada laws 
and the service age limit was fixed at from 18 to 60, 
divided into two classes, 18 to 40, first class; 40 to 60. 
second. An enrollment period for men of both classes, 
extending from the first to the 20th of June, was pro 
vided for. An active quota, ordinarily not to exceed 
30,000 men, was provided for. Enrollment for this 
quota was to be voluntary, except in case the quota 
was not filled, when the ballot could be resorted to. 
In case of invasion or war the governor could call out 
the whole militia. In the event of actual service, one 
half the men of the active quota, to be determined by 
lot, might be permitted to return home, the other half 
to serve the full term. Militiamen drawn by ballot for 
active service and not wishing to serve were allowed to 
provide substitutes, but the whole of the first class in 
peace time were to assemble "for muster and dis 
cipline " one day each year, namely on June 29. The 
governor was authorized to form volunteer regiments 
of infantry or other corps of militia dragoons, ar 
tillery, rifles or light infantry. 

This bill was brought in during the Draper adminis 
tration, and the opposition of the day, headed by Mr. 
Lafontaine and Sir Etienne Tache, came forward to 
support the government in carrying this measure. 

This Act has been described as the first stepping 
stone between the old purely sedentary militia system, 
and the present one. It was a temporary Act. ter 
minable in three years, but subject to re-enactment, 



like the old English Army and Militia Acts, a reminder 
of the national dread of military domination. 

This act was in due course continued by the Act 
13 and 14 Victoria, Chapter 11. 

In 1846 the Montreal Fire Brigade, then a volunteer 
organization, was formed into a battalion of militia 
under command of the then mayor, the Hon. James 
Ferrier, Mr. John Fletcher, afterwards Lieut .-Col. 
Fletcher, C.M.G., being appointed adjutant. This 
battalion drilled, but without arms, in the market hall, 
during the winter months, for several years, and made 
good progress. The duties of the battalion as a fire 
brigade, and the musters at fires and company parades, 
served to maintain it in its strength as a volunteer 
militia corps long after the excitement of the Oregon 
incident had died away. 

On the breaking out of the Crimean war in LS54 
Captain Fletcher, with authority, offered the services 
of one hundred men of the Montreal Fire Battalion 
to the Imperial government as volunteers, for the war. 
and received the thanks of the Secretary of State for 
War therefor. 

In August, 1854, there was organized in Montreal, 
a volunteer corps under the name of "The Montreal 
Rifle Rangers", which after a continuous existence 
of over half a century, is now Number One Company 
of the First Prince of Wales Fusiliers. The company 
originally numbered sixty-four rank and file. 

\Vhile the excitement aroused by the Crimean war 
was at its height, the Canadian government, after 
considerable correspondence with the Imperial govern 
ment, agreed to enroll and maintain a small active 
force for internal purposes, and to act as auxiliaries 
to the British regular troops in the event of foreign 
war or invasion. This force was to be composed of 
men engaged in the ordinary avocations of civil life, 
but- held equipped, officered, and fairly well drilled in 
the elements of military work, and available for service 
at short notice. By the terms of the agreement between 
the home and colonial governments all the works and 
lands in Canada held by the Imperial government, were 
to be transferred to the government of Canada, except 
at five posts, namely, Quebec. Montreal, Kingston, 
Niagara and Sorel, which were to be retained l>y the 
home government so long as regular troops remained 
in garrison at these points. At this time the Imperial 
authorities announced it to be their intent ion. eventually, 
to remove all the regular troops in Canada, except the 
garrisons of Halifax, and a naval base in British 
Columbia. 

The Canadian government agreed to assume the 
responsibility, and the bargain so far as the Mother 
Country was concerned was in course of time com- 

63 



pleted by the transfer of many millions of dollars worth 
of military property to the Canadian government. 

With British and French troops fighting bravely 
side by side in the Crimea, there was a keen military 
spirit at this period throughout the length and 
breadth of Canada, and several small volunteer 
organizations sprang into existence. Owing to the 
drain upon the military resources of Great Britain, 
Canada was practically denuded of regular troops. 

The Canadian people felt that the time had come to 
assume more direct responsibility than they had 
hitherto done for the defence of the country, and this 
feeling found expression in a very important statute. 

The Militia Act of 1855 (18 Victoria, Chapter 77) 
marks a notable step in the development of the active 
militia of Canada as we have it to-day. The few 
volunteer corps which had sprung up in Canada, 
and very few of which had been maintained 
for any time, had been tolerated rather than encour 
aged by the authorities. The militia systems hitherto 
in force, since the cession, had been good for little else 
than to provide for the occasional mustering of the 
territorial militiamen in peace time and to furnish 
as simple and economical a system as possible for the 
mobilization of the men to form an active force to act as 
auxiliaries to the regular army in case of emergency. 
The act of 1855 recognized the old, territorial, sedentary 
militia system as the back bone of the national defen 
sive force, but, and herein lies its historical importance 
sanctioned the raising and maintenance of a perman 
ently organized active force to act as the nucleus of 
a national Canadian army. 

This Act (18 Victoria, Chapter 77), which was based 
upon the report of a Iloyal Commission, provided 
that the governor should be ex-omcio commaiulcr- 
in-ehief of the provincial militia. 

The whole country was divided into a certain num 
ber of districts for military purposes, and these were 
again divided into regimental districts. Two divisions 
of the militia," sedentary " and " Active," were provided 
for. 

The sedentary militia was to consist of all male 
inhabitants, with a few exceptions, between the ages 
of 18 and GO. In time of peace no actual service or 
drill was required of the sedentary militia. This 
militia was divided into two classes, "service men" 
and "reserve men," the service men class again being 
sub-divided into "1st class service men" and "2nd 
class service men." All the service men (from 18 to 
40 years of age) required to attend one muster a year, 
the Queen s Birthday in Upper Canada; June 29 in 
Lower Canada. The reserve men were exempted 
from attending muster. The 1st class service men 
included unmarried men ami widowers without children, 



the 2nd class service men included married men and 
widowers with children. In the event of the sedentary 
militia being called out for service, volunteers from 
the service men were first to be taken, then the 1st 
class service men drafted, followed, if necessary, by 
the 2nd class service men, and finally, the reserve men. 
Arms for the sedentary militia were to be kept in 
armories in various centres. There was no provision 
for training the sedentary militia. 

The "Active or Volunteer Militia" force was not to 
exceed 16 troops of cavalry, 7 field batteries, 5 foot 
companies of artillery, and 50 companies of riflemen, 
or 5,000 officers and men altogether. The organization 
of engineer and marine companies was also auth 
orized. 

"Arms and accoutrements, such as the commander- 
in-chief may direct" were to be issued at the expense 
of the province. Field batteries were to perform an 
annual training of twenty days, 10 of which were to be 
continuous. Ten days annual training was exacted 
of other volunteer militia units, and a fairly liberal 
scale of pay was provided. 

Section XXXVIII of this Act contained for the first 
time a provision for the volunteer militia being called 
out in aid of the civil power. 

Section XL provided that members of the volunteer 
militia should be exempt from serving as jurors and 
constables, seven years service entitling volunteer 
militiamen to such exemption in perpetuity. 

Under this Act, each of the former provinces of 
Upper and Lower Canada was divided into 9 military 
districts. Colonel do Rottenburg was, on the 9th 
July, 1855, appointed Adjutant-General for Canada. 
Lieutenant-Colonel Melchior Alphonse De Salaberry, 
Deputy Adj.-Gen. for Lower Canada, and Lieut.-Col. 
Donald Macdonald, for Upper Canada. 

The first companies of volunteers enrolled under 
this Act were two rifle companies, one at Quebec, 
the other (the Montreal Rifle Rangers) at Montreal, 
the formation of which was regularly authorized by 
general order, 31st August, 1855. 

Xew organizations were raised in all the chief centres 
of population, and early in 1856 the full number of 
corps authorized had been organized, and in several, 
equipped, at the expense of the officers and men them 
selves. 

Considerable impetus was at the start given to the 
little active force in Canada by the indignation aroused 
in Canada over the atrocities of the Indian mutiny 
and the authorization given by the Imperial Govern 
ment in 1858 to the governor, Sir Edmund Head, to 
accept the offer of a regular regiment made by the 
people of Canada. This was the origin of the 100th 
Leinster Regiment (Royal Canadians). 



In 1856 an amendment (19 Victoria, Chapter 44) 
was made to the Militia Act, which emphasized the 
development of the voluntary idea in the Canadian 
militia. By this Act the muster day of the sedentary 
militia was discontinued. 

In 1S56 the enrollments under the provisions of the 
Act of 1855 amounted to four thousand nine hundred 
and ninety-nine men. That Act marked a consider 
able step in advance in the development of the organiza 
tion of the Canadian militia, but after all, up to the 
time of the Trent excitement in 1861, little more than 
the mere laying of the foundation, on which the present 
organization exists, can have been said to have been 
accomplished. 

In 1859 there was another important development 
of the volunteer system, a new Act (22 Victoria, 
Chapter 18) being passed providing (Section 15) that 
where possible the independent companies should be 
grouped together and organized into regiments or 
battalions, of not less than six, nor more than ten 
companies. The nine companies in Montreal were 
brigaded under the title "The First Battalion Volun 
teer Militia Rifles of Canada," by a militia general 
order dated Quebec, 17 November, 1859. This corps 
still exists as the First Prince of Wales Fusiliers. 

By order, dated Quebec, April 26th, 1860, the four 
rifle companies in Toronto, with the Barrie Rifle Com 
pany and the Highland Rifle Company of Whit by. 
were constituted into a battalion styled the " Second 
Battalion Volunteer Militia Rifles of Canada." It is 
scarcely necessary to add that, as the 2nd Queen s Own 
Rifles of Canada, one of the most efficient and most 
historic corps of the service, this regiment still exists. 

The Act XVIII Victoria, Chapter 77, which was 
officially designated "An Act to Amend and make 
Permanent the Laws Relating to the Militia of this 
Province," did something more than provide for the 
regimental organization of the volunteer militia and 
the permanency of the militia laws. Provision (Sec 
tion 12) was made for uniformity in clothing, it being 
laid down that there should be a service uniform for 
each service, similar in colour, pattern and design, to 
be approved by the commander-in-chief. 

This act placed certain restrictions upon the strength 
and drill periods which were much resented in the 
service at the time, but which were considered neces 
sary owing to the rapid increase of the force, volunteer 
companies springing into existence everywhere, and 
exhausting the militia appropriations. The period 
of drill for field batteries was reduced to twelve days a 
year, six of which had to be consecutive. Other 
volunteer corps had to drill for six consecutive days 
each year. The paid establishments were reduced to 
30 men per company, but captains were given the 



option to raise 20 additional men and distribute the 
pay among the full company. It was provided that 
the arms were to be kept in armouries where such 
existed, otherwise they were left in charge of the 
captains, to whom an allowance was made. The 
schedule for pay, rising from one dollar a day for 
non-commissioned officers and men, as fixed by the 
former act, remained the same. 

The "Trent" excitement in the years 1861 and 1862 
had an important and beneficial effect upon the active 
militia, the menaces of invasion arousing the military 
spirit of the whole Canadian people and stimulating 
the energies of the newly organized defensive force. 
Many of the existing organizations of the active 
militia trace their existence back to those stirring 
months. Voluntary drills went on morning,. noon and 
night, and while the infant Canadian defensive force 
W 7 as trying to get itself into serviceable shape, the 
Mother Country poured regular troops into Canada. 

Towards the end of January, 1862, with a view of 
more effectively organizing the militia, the governor 
general issued a commission on which, were 
placed Colonel Daniel Lysons, C.B., of H.M. Army, 
Colonel the Hon. Sir Allan N. MacNab, Bart., Colonel 
the Hon. Sir E. P. Tache, C.B., Colonel Campbell, C.B., 
of St. Hilaire, and Colonel Cameronof Kingston. The 
regular service was represented on the commission by 
Colonel Lysons, sent out specially on this service by 
the Imperial government, as having large experience 
with English volunteers; and each one of the four 
colonels appointed to the commission command 
ed militia districts in various sections of the 
province. Two of them had been members of a 
former militia commission. Lieut. -Colonel Wily, of 
the 1st Battalion, who had had much experience with 
volunteers in Canada, was secretary of the commission. 
The formation of any more new corps was suspended 
until a new law could be brought into force. 

The commission recommended that an active force 
of 50,000 men should be raised, the usual period of 
training to be 28 days. A vitally important recom 
mendation was that a qualification of military efficiency 
should be exacted from militia officers. Upon this 
recommendation the Cartier-Macdonald administration 
introduced a bill providing for an annual expenditure 
of $1,000,000. 

Upon introducing this bill into parliament the Hon. 
J. A. Macdonald (later Sir J. A. Macdonald) explained 
its provisions at length. 

A military authority of great value Sir John 
Burgoyne had given it as his opinion that to hold 
the country in the face of a foreign foe. 100, 000 militia 
men would be required to assist the British arm of the 
service. 



65 



Aii interesting statement was laid before the com 
mission by Colonel Lysons, showing the distribution 
that would be actually requisite for making at least 
a show of defence of this country with 50,000 men, 
and an examination of the map would show that to 
make anything like a show of defence, 50,000 men 
would be the smallest force available for that purpose. 
The commission reported therefore that a force of 
50,000 men would be required for the defence of this 
country, in addition to the reserve. And the plan, as 
pointed out by the commission in the report, was 
simply this : that a force of 50,000 men should be 
organized, and that they should be trained for a period 
of three years, as regards the rural population of the 
country, and for five years as regards the population 
of the cities and towns. The report recommended that 
the country should be divided into a certain number of 
military districts. The number under the existing 
system was 19. It was not proposed by the report 
that that number should be altered. But it was pro 
posed that each military district should be divided 
into a certain number of regimental divisions. It 
was considered of great importance that in forming 
regimental divisions, the [county divisions should be pre 
served as much as possible. It was thought of great im 
portance,- for keeping up the esprit du corps, that each 
county in this country, as in England, should have its own 
militia, in order that there might be that wholesome com 
petition which was exemplified both in Upper and Lower 
Canada, when there were the Glengarry militia, and 
several other county corps. 

It was proposed by the commission that in each 
regimental division there should be a central rallying 
point, whei-e the arms and the clothing for the regimen 
tal division should be kept. Each regimental division, 
it was proposed, should be divided into so many bat 
talions of sedentary militia. There might be eight or 
nine battalions in a regiment, and each battalion would 
furnish a company for active service. Those active 
service men would form what is called an active bat 
talion. This active battalion would be enrolled for 
three years. 

It was proposed that from each regimental division 
a regular active battalion shall be formed, commanded 
by officers who should have passed such an examination as 
to show they could be entrusted with the command of 
a battalion. The men were to be enrolled 
for three years. They were to meet annually 
at their central point, and then they were to be drilled 
for such a period, annually, as parliament might fix. 
While the report stated that the drill should be for not 
more than 28 days, it recommended that it should not 
be for less than 14 days. It would be for parliament 
to say how many men should be taken out for drill, 



and for how many days drill an appropriation should be 
made. In the opinion of the commissioners, to obtain 
full efficiency in the force, it was necessary that the 
men be drilled for 28 days in the year. 

Supposing there should be an alarm of war, the opera 
tion of thesystem,as proposed, would be this, on an alarm 
of war being given, the active militia would assemble at 
their central point, their armory. It was proposed 
that at each armory there shall be a staff officer, an 
adjutant, who shall be a fully trained officer, obtained 
from the regular service. He would be the inspector 
in drill of the active battalion, and the executive 
officer. He would be there on the spot, and on the 
active battalion, in the event of an alarm of war, 
meeting at the central point, he marched with it to 
the frontier, or wherever it might be ordered. 

At the .end of three years, having received during 
that period an annual drill of from 14 to 28 days, as 
might be ordered, the regular or active battalion would 
fall into the reserve. It became a reserve battalion 
for three years more. And during the three years 
that the men were in reserve, their acquaintance with 
the drill they acquired while in the active force, would 
be kept up by a drill of six days, annually. Suppose 
the report of the commissioners carried out to the 
fullest extent there would be a force of 50,000 men for 
three years, those 50,000 men would become reserve, 
and other 50,000 men would assume the position of 
being the active force. Thus the military spirit, which 
is so essential in every country, would grow up, and 
would extend every year after the first three years, so 
that, ere long, of all the men in the country capable of 
bearing arms, a large proportion would know how to 
use those arms, and to use them efficiently. 

It was not proposed to ignore the volunteer system. 
But the Commission and the Government felt that 
the system of drill must vary in the rural and in 
the urban districts. In the towns and cities, where 
a number of people were collected together, they could 
be easily assembled for the purpose of drill. But 
that system was not practicable in the country, where 
the inhabitants lived apart from each other, it may be 
in districts that are not thickly settled. It would be 
necessary that the volunteers in the country parts 
should be assembled for stated periods and receive 
their drill for a number of consecutive days, and not, 
as in the cities, for a few hours each day; for that in 
the country would be out of the question. With 
regard to the volunteer principle, it would be the same 
in the country as in the towns. Volunteers would be 
called for in the first instance, and it was only in the 
case of volunteers not being procured, that there would 
be any necessity for the ballot. With regard to cities, 
the bill provided that each city specified 



in it should form a military district in itself, 
and such a volunteer system would bo adopted as 
would not require the force to drill for a number of 
consecutive days; but the men would drill as they could, 
consistently with their engagement, and as the volun 
teers had previously been doing. It was provided, 
however, that if the volunteer organization failed or 
broke down in the cities or towns, the population 
would not escape from their duty as militiamen, but 
would be liable, like the population in the country 
parts, to organization under the regular or sedentary 
system provided by the bill. It was provided in the 
bill that all those volunteer corps, which did not exist 
in the cities, but in. the rural districts, might be main 
tained and kept up, and that others might be formed on 
the same conditions as volunteer corps then in the 
cities, this is to say, they might procure arms, if parlia 
ment should see fit to supply them, but no pay. When 
the bill went to committee of the whole, he proposed to 
move a clause in extension of the principle, for the pur 
pose of giving encouragement to the volunteers of 
towns and villages, in the same manner as they were 
encouraged in the cities, under the bill. This was 
done to enable the volunteer corps that might be formed 
out of the cities to become useful, available and sub 
servient to the defence of the country, and at the same 
time not destroy the regular militia force in the country 
that is, the regular as distinct from the volunteer 
force. And in this way, every town and village would 
be within the bounds of some regular regimental 
division ; and where a volunteer company was formed in 
a village within a regimental division, that corps 
would form a portion of the regular battalion raised 
within the division. 

It seemed desirable that every battalion of volun 
teers should, in addition to its own officers, have the 
assistance of two officers of the service, one, a field- 
officer, and one, an adjutant, to assist in the instruction 
and dicipline of the corps. These officers would be 
considered as belonging to the army, and in every 
respect enjoy their rank, pay and other advantages, 
as if they were actually serving in the army. The 
expense of this arrangement would be considerable; 
but from the great superiority which a battalion, with the 
benefit of such officers, would have over one trained under 
their own officers, without such assistance, though with 
the utmost zeal and diligence, the expense would be 
abundantly compensated by the perfection which the 
corps would attain. 

Instead, however, of having a field-officer and ad 
jutant in every battalion, it was proposed that there 
should be an officer in every battalion who could 
discharge the duties of adjutant, and a sergeant. The 
measure provided that the commander-in-chief might 



call out a battalion every year from every regimental 
division; but it also provided that he might dispense, at 
his discretion, with a portion of the number of days 
drill, thus reducing, if it be thought advisable, the 
annual expense. 

Mr. Macdonald proceeded to point out that the bill 
was an enabling bill. The report recommended cer 
tain things. The bill did not say such and such 
things should be done, but it enabled the commander- 
in-chief to carry out the system as approved of by 
the military authorities and by parliament. It was 
an enabling bill, like the Mutiny Act in England, 
which parliament passed annually. The militia, in 
England, was not an annual, but a permanent force, 
while, on the other hand, parliament voted every year 
upon the army, so that should there be danger from 
it to the popular liberties, the parliament of the 
country could readily deal with it. In this bill there was 
no provision for the perpetual organization of the 
militia, but the annual vote would be such as parlia 
ment in its wisdom saw fit. 

Hon. Mr. Sicotte objected to the discussion pro 
ceeding until some estimate of the cost of the proposed 
system was presented to the house. 

Hon. Mr. Macdonald explained that if 50,000 men 
were raised and drilled for 28 days, the expense would 
approach 250,000 a year, and it might exceed that. 
As regards the cost of the armories it would vary. 
In the country parts they would not be expensive. 
The estimate was that they would cost 750 a piece, 
and there would be about sixty of them. 

The following would be the maximum cost, if the 
full provisions of the bill were carried out: 56 ad 
jutants, $51,000; 60 sergeant-majors, $18,000; 10 
field batteries of artillery, $26,180; 27 troops of 
cavalry, $61,236; 10 battalions volunteer militia, 
$129,164; 49 battalions regular militia, $600,916; 
clothing allowance of volunteers, $27,879; cost of 
clothing for militia, $122,253; annual cost of ammuni 
tion for practice, $73,556; making a total of $1,110,- 
204. He added that there was no estimate of the cost 
of the arms, for it was the ambition of the government 
to ask the Imperial Government to supply them. The 
probable cost of the arms would be about 4 a 
set. There was no item for marine or engineer corps, 
as these would not be raised except in case of war. 
The expense stated, contemplated the cost of the whole 
50,000 men if they were drilled 2S days in the year. 
If only 20,000 men were called out arid only drilled 
for 14 days, the expense would be proportionately so 
much less. 

Hon. Mr. Druminond enlarged upon an admission 
by the Hon. Mr. Macdonald that it was not as yet 
known if the Imperial Government would give the 



67 



arms which should be necessary to equip the 50,000 
men. Now. he (Mr. Drummond) thought the govern 
ment had been extremely neglectful of their duty in 
not ascertaining this point before they brought in the 
bill. The fact was that the whole proceeding was a 
mere parti/an proceeding from first to last, and un 
worthy of the parties who had managed it. The true 
question to be answered was what was the policy of 
England towards us? and as this had not been ascer 
tained it was then his duty to exhibit the extraordinary 
neglect that had been exhibited. 

Colonel Rankin rose to ask whether the government 
had decided what the numerical force of the militia 
would be? Did they desire to conceal tneir intentions 
until they had ascertained those of the house? After 
the eloquent way in which the necessity of the measure 
had been presented, he thought the government should 
say that they really did propose to do. He could not 
fail, however, to remark what a most extraordinary 
selection had been made to advise the Crown on this 
subject. With the solitary exception of Col. Lysons, 
there was not a person on the commission, who had the 
slightest fitness for the duty they had assumed. He 
would have liked on this occasion, though an uncom 
promising opponent of the ministry, to have given this 
his countenance and support, but they had shown 
themselves so wholly unprepared to meet the house, 
after all the time they had had to consider the measure, 
that he felt obliged to oppose them. They had not 
had the courage to come down and say what they 
wanted, and why had they not? Just because they 
were afraid of losing their offices. They could not say 
whether 50,000 would be wanted or 20,000 men; but 
if the opposition limited them to 2,000 or 500, or even 
to a solitary company, they would take the number, 
whatever it might be, for they were evidently prepared 
to submit to any degree of humiliation. 

Hon. Mr. Loranger said he had expected that when 
the government came forward with such a measure 
they would be prepared to say why, when the country 
had hitherto only paid $40,000 per annum for militia 
purposes, it was at once to devote $2,335,304 for the 
first year and 1,110,304 for every succeeding year. 
The country was less able than it had for many years 
been to bear such expense, for it was \vell known that 
there was great commercial depression, and that, in 
fact, the country was in a pecuniary sense, in extremely 
low circumstances. 

Hon. J. H. Cameron said he wished the Attorney 
General West (Hon. Mr. Macdonald) would come down 
boldly with a demand for a definite number of men, 
and he believed the house would cordially support 
him. The ways and means for meeting the expense 
should also be stated, and if the government could 



not carry their point they should leave it to the opposi 
tion to do so. 

Hon. J. Sandfield Macdonald said if there ever was a 
measure which required to be well defined and clearly 
st a t ed , it was that measure before the house. He was sorry 
to say that the government had failed to tell the house 
what they really proposed to do. If they had asked 
a million of mone.v, and then said what they were 
going to do with it, the house would have known how 
to act. But no, they brought in the measure in an 
indefinite manner, for the express purpose of finding 
out the opinion of the house, as to the number of men 
it would consent to provide for. In fact, instead of 
coming to advise the house, they came to the house 
to be advised in other words, they were putting the 
cart before the horse. 

During the debate the Hon. A. T. Gait, who was 
speaking (May 6) on behalf of the government, was 
asked who was to supply the arms. Mr. Gait explained 
that the province already owned 7,000 Enfield rifles, 
which were purchased under the existing militia act. 
At the period of the Trent difficulty, those were the 
only arms belonging to the province. The necessities 
of the country were represented to the Imperial 
Government, which sent out immediately 30,000 stand 
of rifles, which were then at Halifax awaiting trans 
portation to Canada. These arms, it was understood, 
would, on the recommendation of the military authori- 
ties, be placed at the disposal of the provincial govern 
ment. The arms were a most expensive part of the 
equipment, and if the government of this country were 
called upon to provide rifles for 50,000 or 100,000 men, 
a very large expenditure would be required. He spoke 
of 100,000 men, thinking it desirable to refer to the 
arming of the sedentary as well as the regular militia, 
because if circumstances were to arise, requiring the 
services of 50,000 men, the same necessity would calf 
for the placing of the reserve of 50,000 in a position 
to take their places, or to serve with the 50,000 of 
regular militia. Such a cost as that which the pur 
chase of 100,000 rifles would entail would be too great 
for the provinces, and must devolve on the Imperial 
Government. This was only reasonable. If difficulty 
arose with the United States so as to imperil the safety 
of Canada, it must arise as a consequence of imperial 
policy as distinguished from colonial policy. And 
under such circumstances, coupled witli the examples 
already possessed of the liberal behaviour of the 
Imperial Government, there was no reason to doubt 
that the application for arms would be readily res 
ponded to. The Canadian Government had good 
reason to expect that arms would be given either to 
tlie militia of Canada by the Imperial Government, 
or placed at their disposal for service, but still re- 



maining the property of the Imperial authorities. 
The only specific information the government pos 
sessed was that Great Britain had already sent out 
arms to be used by the Canadians, in the manner 
already described. It might be said it was only a pre 
sumption that the Imperial Government would supply 
arms. If it was nothing more than a presumption, it 
was a presumption based on the fact that when diffi 
culty arose and arms were required, arms were sent out, 
accompanied by the assurance that a large number 
would be forwarded as soon as possible. Before the 
navigation of the St. Lawrence closed the previous 
autumn, the government of this province, although 
they did not doubt the good-will towards Canada of 
the people of the United States thought it would be 
incurring some risk if they did not represent to the 
Imperial Government the absence of arms from this 
country. That representation was made, accompanied 
by a suggestion that the arms Great Britain might be 
disposed to send to Canada could be placed in store, 
to be used in case of need, the necessity for calling out 
the militia for training not having at that time pre 
sented itself. The Trent difficulty occurred shortly 
afterwards, and Hon. Mr. Vankoughnet, who was in 
England when the news of that difficulty reached 
Great Britain, immediately applied to the Home 
Government, and urged the importance of the request 
of the Canadian Government being complied with 
without delay. The result was seen in the shipment a 
few days afterward of 30,000 stand of arms, an intima 
tion being given at the same time that if more were re 
quired they would be dispatched. Happily, the cloud 
of war blew over, and with it the necessity ceased for 
a supply of arms. But looking at the pledge England 
had given over and over again, that the whole force 
of the empire would be exercised in Canada s favor 
in the event of her being involved in war in consequence 
of imperial policy, Canadians had every reason to 
suppose that she would treat them, in such circum 
stances, in the fairest and most liberal spirit. If the 
country was to be made a battle ground it would, as a 
matter of course, be solely as the result of imperial 
policy; but he did not see that there was any founda 
tion on which to ground a belief that the whole force 
of the empire would not be placed at our disposal 
in case of danger. 

A great deal had been said about the doctrines urged 
by certain parties in the British House of Commons, 
but Canadians should bear in mind that thosepersons, 
who thus mistook the position of Canada, and based 
their theory upon it, were not the men who held the 
destinies of the empire in their hands. As forming 
part of the empire we should be prepared to share in 
her difficulties as well as her prosperity. If the mother 



country were assailed, Canadians should not, and would 
not, stand by with folded arms. But, on the other 
hand, they were entitled to expect in the hour of 
danger, from the mother country, that support and 
assistance to which they were entitled and which they 
had always received. Those who said, in the House 
of Commons, that Canada would receive no assistance 
were also those who maintained that England should 
have no colonies. Their doctrine relative to Canada 
was therefore part of their system and policy. 

Altogether this proved to be one of the most im 
portant and interesting militia debates which has ever 
taken place in a Canadian parliament. 

Opposition to the bill rapidly developed. It was 
urged, among other things, that the withdrawal of 
so large a body as 50, 000 men from industrial pursuits, 
though only for a short time, might cause incon 
venience, and, which was represented as much more 
important, that the constant recurring service for five 
years would worry, and, annoy the men, be much more 
expensive, and leave them, after all, far less efficiently 
disciplined than an equal, or even shorter, period of 
continuous instruction. 

At the time, the government happened to be weak 
politically, and in view of the objections raised to the bill 
it was deemed a useful instrument to effect the defeat 
of the administration, and when on May 20. 1862, 
the motion for the second reading of the bill was made, 
the vote was taken without any further speaking, and 
the government defeated by a vote of 54 to 61. The 
government the next day resigned, and the Hon. .). 
Sandfield Macdonald was called upon to form a new 
government. 

May 23rd, Mr. Wallbridge, on behalf of the new 
administration, read to parliament a memorandum of 
the government s policy, which stated that the 
ministers proposed to bring in an amendment to the 
militia law so as to secure a proper enrollment of the 
available force of the province under efficient officers. 
The promised bill was brought in by Colonel Haultain. 
June 5th, 1862, the honourable gentleman explaining 
that the government desired to leave the law as it 
then stood, as far as was compatible with the ex 
tension of the volunteer system. The financial cir 
cumstances of the country were such, as, in their opinion. 
prevented any large sum being appropriated to militia 
purposes. As an old military man, it could be easily 
conceived that he would rather see a vote of $1,000,000 
for this purpose than $250,000, but the funds of the 
country precluded the hope of that desire being ful 
filled. Such being the case, they must make the best 
of their limited resources. It must also be borne in 
mind that the government had not at their disposal 
all the information desirable to be possessed with a 



69 



view to their framing; a more complete measure. And 
in preparing the bill now before the house, they were 
guided by the state of the finances and by the belief 
that they should ask for powers to act in accordance 
with the information at their disposal. The chief 
feature of the bill was at once apparent. It was to 
give, as far as practicable, full scope to the volunteer 
movement. He believed the feeling in the country 
\\as general, that that system should be extended. 
Hitherto there had been many hindrances to the move 
ment spreading, foremost amongst which were the cost 
of the clothing and the limited number of men who 
were entitled to pay whilst being organized and drilled. 
To a great degree, this bill would remove such draw 
backs, by providing clothing and payment for drill for 
a greater number of men. A?iother important feature 
of the bill was the means of instruction it furnished 
to volunteer companies. He held that the basis of 
all efficiency among military bodies was the ability 
of those who were appointed to instruct and comma ml, 
and that a system established on any other foundation 
must certainly fail to accomplish the end in view. 
(Hear, hear.) All the country could hope to do at the 
time was to furnish that basis to the extent of its 
means. The bill enabled the commander-in-chief 
to employ, from time to time, as many drill instructors 
as were necessary, such drill instructors to be paid by 
the province. With these facilities afforded, it was 
hoped that there was to be found in the country 
patriotism to induce men of various ranks in society 
to enroll themselves for the defence, if need be, of their 
country. It was as yet a matter of experiment 
whether the volunteer system would succeed. On 
that subject there were differences of opinion. Some 
were persuaded that compulsion must be resorted to, 
whilst others were equally persuaded that the feeling 
existing among the people would induce them to come 
forward readily when the hindrances of which he 
had spoken were removed. For the reason he 
had stated, the absence of precise information, the 
government had thought it advisable to make the 
amendments to the existing act as fair and simple 
as possible, and the new arrangements to be affected 
would be of a provisional character, and be subject to 
such future changes as experience might teach to be 
necessary to be carried into effect. 

With a few amendments, this bill was passed and 
became the Act 25 Victoria, Chapter 1, "An Act to 
amend the Act respecting the Militia," assented to 
.lime 9, 1862. Among its provisions were the follow 
ing: 

Section 1 The following paragraph shall be added to 
the twentieth section of "An Act respecting the M ilitiu. 
< /HI pier thirty-five of the Consolidated Statutes of Canada. 



"The commander-in-chief may, whenever he deems 
it necessary, order that a corrected roll of every 
company of the sedentary militia be made out; and it 
shall be the duty of every officer commanding a com 
pany, within ten days after such order has been re 
ceived, to make out such corrected roll, etc., etc. 

"22. The active militia of the province in time of 
peace shall consist of volunteer troops of cavalry, 
military train, field batteries of artillery, garrison 
batteries of artillery, companies of engineers and 
companies of infantry, and marine and naval com 
panies, to be armed and equipped according to their 
respective services and to be formed at such places 
and in such manner as may from time to time be 
designated or ordered by the commander-in-chief; but 
except as hereinafter provided, the total strength of 
such volunteer corps shall not exceed ten thousand 
officers and men in Class A." 

"3. Each volunteer militiaman shall, in the discre 
tion of the commander-in-chief, be supplied with uni 
form clothing, while on drill or service, or receive such 
sum not exceeding six dollars per annum in lieu thereof, 
as may be directed by the commander-in-chief." 

"5. The commander-in-chief may appoint brigade 
majors, not exceeding one for each military district. 
.... Each of the brigade majors shall be paid by 
the province at a rate not exceeding $600 per annum 
and travelling expenses." 

"40. The non-commissioned officers and men of 
the active militia (Class A) shall be paid for each day 
of actual and bona-fide drill not exceeding twelve in 
number, the sum of fifty cents per diem, and a further 
sum of one dollar per diem for each horse actually 
and necessarily present, belonging to and used for 
such drill by such non-commissioned officers and men. 
Such days of drill need not be consecutive unless so 
ordered by the commander-in-chief, who may also 
determine the manner in which such number of days 
of drill shall lie computed." 

Section 43 provided that sergeants-major of field 
batteries be paid $200 per annum, and musketry and 
drill instructors, a dollar and fifty cents a day. In time 
of active service in the field, officers and men were to 
have same pay and allowances as the regular army. 

Provision was made for the raising, in the event of 
war, in addition to the active and sedentary militia, 
of regiments of militia by voluntary enlistment for 
general service. The organization of associations 
for drill, and of independent companies of infantry in 
universities, schools and other institutions, but without 
pay or allowances for clothing, was also authorized. 

The rejection of the Militia Bill of the Cartier- 
Macdonald government drew from the Knglish press, 
and from not a few English statesmen, the most em- 



70 



phatic declarations many times repeated that Eng 
land could not and would not undertake the defence 
of Canada, unless Canada was prepared to contribute. 
and that in no slight measure, towards her own pro 
tection. 

At the second session of parliament in 1863, the John 
Sandfield Macdonald administration submitted a com 
prehensive new "Militia Bill" and also a separate 
"Volunteer Bill," both of which received the support 
of parliament and were assented to October 15, 1863. 
The "Militia Act" (27 Victoria, Chapter 2) divided the 
militia into three classes: 1st class service men, 2nd 
class service men, and reserve; and provided that the 
service militia might be called out for six days drill 
each year, the men to receive pay at the rate of fifty 
cents a day. Further provisions of this Act included 
the establishment of a militia department under a 
responsible minister, the establishment of military 
schools in connection with the British regular regiments 
then in Canada, for the training of officers, the laying 
down of the rule that officers must have qualifying 
certificates to secure promotion, the authorization 
of drill associations or cadet corps in universities and 
schools. Officers of the regular army were to outrank 
militia officers, and when balled out on actual service, 
the militia were to be given the same rates of pay as 
corresponding ranks in the regular army. 

The second act (27 Victoria, Chapter 3, "An Act 
Respecting the Volunteer Militia Force") indicated a 
desire to keep the volunteer service quite distinct from 
the militia, as in Britain, where there had been a 
marvellous revival of the old volunteer movement in 
1859 and 1860 as a result of the menaces of French 
invasion at the time of the excitement over the Orsini 
conspiracy, the volunteer force in a few months ex 
panding from 70,000 to 180,000 men. 

This Canadian "volunteer" Act provided for a force 
of 35,000 men. exclusive of commissioned officers. 
Uniforms and arms were supplied by the country, and 
the arms were to be kept in armouries or in the per 
sonal charge of commanding officers. Section 34 pro 
vided that "volunteers shall always be considered 
senior to officers of militia of the same rank." Volun 
teer officers were required to qualify for their com 
missions before a board of examiners separate from 
the militia boards. When called out for actual service 
volunteers were to receive pay at the same rate as the 
British army, and they were liable to be called out in 
aid of the civil power. There was no provision for 
drill pay as in the militia, but an appropriation of 
$2,000 per annum was made for prizes. to be competed 
for by corps, for proficiency in drill, discipline and 
target practice. A further allowance was also made 
of not less than 850, nor more than $400 per battalion, 



as an efficiency grant, the aggregate sum, however, 
not to exceed $5,000. 

The success of the system inaugurated by these bills 
depended almost entirely on the establishment of a 
couple of military schools, to be attached to imperial 
regiments serving in Canada, in which the militia 
officers were to be trained for some two months, if 
they chose to attend. 

The first big rifle meeting participated in by marks 
men from all parts of Canada was held in Montreal in 
1S6:-). and continuing twelve days. It was under the 
nominal patronage of Lord Monck, the prizes being 
furnished by a fund contributed by the Corporation 
of the City of Montreal, the banks, merchants and 
others. General Sir Fenwick Williams of Kars fired 
the first shot, and all matches were open to the British 
regulars as well as to the militia. The Guards and 
other regiments forming the strong garrison of Montreal 
at that time furnished complimentary guards of fifty 
men every day of the meeting. 

Up to the autumn of 1864 not one single company 
of militia had been organized, or received even the 
six days drill which was the maximum permitted, 
not enjoined, by the new bill. 

At this period a statesman who had even then at 
tained a national reputation (Sir Richard Cart- 
wright), advocated strongly in parliament and pamphlet 
a scheme which comprised these propositions: 

1. A distinct understanding, convention or treaty 
with the imperial government in which Canada s con 
tribution, as a province of the empire, towards her own 
defence, be denned. 

2. The volunteers to be regarded purely as an 
auxiliary body; chief expenditure to be devoted to 
disciplining a certain proportion of the "regular" 1st 
class militia, the number to be fixed by convention as 
above stated, but supposed likely to range from 
50.000 to 100,000 men. 

3. These to be trained in annual instalments of 
so many thousand a year, each detachment to serve 
for, say six months, in the open field. 

4. These trained men to be thenceforward free 
from all further duty in time of peace, but liable for 
actual service for 10 years, and thereafter to be formed 
into a reserve, not to be called out except in extreme 
emergency. 

In the autumn (September and October), 1864, the 
London Times and other English papers had much to 
say about Canada s unpreparedness for war and her 
responsibility in that regard. "Take care of your 
selves, for we can do nothing for you." was, according 
to one shrewd pamphleteer of the day ( Backwoodsman" 
of Templeton, Que.),the plain English of all the 
writings of that time about Canadian defence. 



71 



" Backwoodsman " in a foot note to one of his pam 
phlets wrote: "The last Times received here contains, 
in an article on the above subject, these pregnant 
sentences: The question (of defence) is momentous 
foe .Mexico and for Canada, and we have endeavoured 
to discharge our duty by pointing out the necessity of 
defence, and endeavouring to arouse our own colony 
to a sense of its danger. The language we have held 
has been plain and uniform, and yet, though plain, not 
such as could give reasonable offence to any com 
munity which feels a respect for itself, and estimates 
properly its duties and its responsibilities. We have 
stated that Canada leans on a broken reed if she 
supposes that, in case of an invasion from America, 
any considerable portion of the burden of her defence 
can be borne by this country. " 

What is known as the St. Albans Raid in 1864 
threatened serious complications with the United States. 
The United States held the authorities on this side of 
the line to be responsible, and prompt measures were 
taken in this country to prevent a repetition of the 
raid. Provisional battalions were organized from the 
volunteers for special service in November. The 
special order issued by the commander-in-chief pointed 
out that the militia were not to be employed for the 
purpose of warfare "but with the object of aiding the 
civil power in its efforts to prevent aggression on the 
territories of a friendly state, on the part of persons 
enjoying the right of asylum in Her Majesty s do 
minions; and to maintain, as regards Canada, complete 
neutrality with respect to the war existing in the 
United States, which Her Majesty has enjoined on all 
subjects." 

The organization of the militia at this time made 
considerable progress, and so did the erection of drill 
sheds. V>\ the end of 1864 there was an imposing 
array (on paper) of drill sheds in Canada. 

One of the first steps taken towards the successful 
carrying out of the new Legislation was the securing 
of a capable imperial officer to assume the duties of 
adjutant-general. The choice fell upon Colonel Patrick 
L. Macdougall, of whose selection Lord Wolseley, in 
his book "The Slory of a Soldier s Life," wrote: 

"The Trent Affair had caused all Canadians to 
study seriously how defenceless would be their pro 
vince should we be forced into war with the United 
Stales. Hitherto the people of Canada had been too 
prone to rely upon England for protection. 
The first step towards the reorganization of (he Cana 
dian militia was to obtain the services of a thoroughly 
able soldier to organize and command it. His Royal 
Highness the Duke of Cambridge wisely selected 
General Patrick MacDougall for this duty, and no 
better selection could have been made. He was very 



able, highly educated as a soldier in his profession, 
and was gifted with the most charming, the most 
fascinating manner towards all men by no means a 
poor recommendation for any one who has to get on 
well with politicians. He had also the great advantage 
of knowing Canada and its good people thoroughly, 
from having formerly served there many years. 
No man knew better than General MacDougall 
the difference there is between the educated 
officer and the ordinary amateur in uniform, and 
the best of the Canadian militia soon came to 
recognize their new commandant s military worth, 
and the value of the new system he introduced. 
It was, however, very uphill work, for he never could 
induce Canadian ministers to supply him with the 
funds required to start schools of instruction upon an 
adequate scale. There is no idle or leisured class in 
any part of Canada. Every one has to work there, 
and it is not easy for the hard-toiling man in any office 
to spare even a few hours per week for the study and 
practice of the military arts and science. Colonel 
MacDougall began the heavy task before him by the 
creation of an efficient militia staff, and of military 
schools at every station where we had regular troops. 
At these schools militia officers were to be taught, 
and young Canadian gentlemen rendered fit for the 
position of officers. After these schools had been a 
season a( work, he collected those who had qualified 
at them in a camp he formed at the old disused barrack 
of Laprairie, which is south of the St. Lawrence river, 
near Montreal. He asked me to be its commandant, 
and, always anxious for any interesting employment, 
I gladly accepted the offer. These cadets were formed 
into two battalions, one of Upper, the other of Lower 
Canadians, and two excellent officers of the Canadian 
militia were selected to command them. The more 
drill they were given the more they enjoyed their 
camp life. 1 may say, that it was at the Laprairie 
camp nearly all the best militia officers of that genera 
tion were drilled and given some practical knowledge 

of military duties I liked all those men I met 

at this camp, and thoroughly enjoyed my life there. 
General the Hon. James Lindsay a first-rate soldier 
and a most charming man who was then command 
ing our troops in the Quebec province, helped me much, 
and took a deep interest in my work. He marched the 
Montreal garrison of infantry and field artillery to 
Laprairie, and with my two battalions of cadets we had 
an instructive field day, which my embryo warriors 
thoroughly enjoyed. I refer thus to this Laprairie 
camp, because it was the birthplace of the very fine 
Canadian militia force with which I was subsequently 
intimately associated, and because it was, I think, 
the first practical effort made to convert the excellent 



72 



military material Canada possesses so abundantly, 
into useful soldiers. A considerable number of those 
trained at Laprairie subsequently accompanied me 
in the expedition I led in 1870 from Lake Superior 
to the Red River, and no commander could wish to 
have better soldiers than those of the two Canadian 
militia battalions who constituted the bulk of the 
brigade I then had with me." 

The excitement of the Fenian Raids of 1866 gave a 
great impetus to the volunteer force, which, by its 
ready response to the call to actual service, and by its 
really good work in the field, asserted its claim to be 
considered the first line of defence of the country. 

The first call upon the national defensive force was 
made November 15th, 1865, when a militia general 
order was issued calling out one volunteer company for 
active service in each of the following places: Quebec, 
Montreal, Ottawa, Morrisburg, Toronto, Port Hope. 
Hamilton, Woodstock and London. The order ex 
plained that "His Excellency, having had under con 
sideration the possibility of raids or predatory in 
vasions on the frontier of Canada during the winter, 
and being impressed with the importance of aiding 
Her Majesty s troops and repelling such attempts," 
had decided to place a portion of the volunteer force 
on active service. 

Several calls for service detachments were made 
during the year 1866, to furnish guards for armouries, 
to hold strategical points along the frontier, etc. 

The expectation of trouble from the Fenians this 
year had good effect upon the militia force, and during 
the three months of March, April, and May the nominal 
strength of the active militia increased from 19,597 
to 33,754. Meantime the Fenian leaders had not been 
inactive, and four simultaneous descents upon Canada 
had been planned, one from Chicago, the second from 
Buffalo and Rochester, the third from Ogdensburg, 
and the fourth from New York, Troy, and Albany. 
May 29th, telegraphic advices to the public press re 
ported parties of men on the move northward from 
points even as far south as Tennessee. Subsequent 
reports showed that the movement had become general, 
and the government s private reports confirmed them. 
During the evening of the 31st, orders were issued at 
Ottawa for the calling out of four hundred of the 
Toronto militia, and their despatch to Port Colborne 
on Lake Erie. The following morning news of the 
crossing of O Neil s force of Fenians to Fort Erie was 
received, and orders were at once issued for the des 
patch of all available troops to the Niagara frontier 
to protect the Welland Canal, and expel the invaders 
from Canadian soil if possible. The Queen s Own 
Rifles, the 13th Battalion, the York and Caledonian 
Companies and the Welland Canal Field Battery, 



armed as riflemen, formed a force of about nine 
hundred strong at Port Colborne at the head of the 
canal, the point of that work nearest to Fort Erie, 
the Fenian base. The senior officer was Lieutenant- 
Colonel Booker of the 13th. At Chipewa was assembled 
on the morning of June 2nd a force composed as fol 
lows: Field Battery Royal Artillery, 200 of H.M. 
16th Regiment, 350 of H.M. 47th Regiment, the 10th 
Royals and the 19th Battalion of St. Catherines; all 
told about sixteen hundred men, of whom six hundred 
were regulars. Having secured the head of the canal 
and the bridges over Chipewa Creek or Welland River, 
Colonel Peacocke, commanding H.M. 16th Regiment, 
and the senior officer at the front, issued orders for 
the junction of the two forces at Stevensville. This 
movement resulted in the action of Lime Ridge or 
Ridge way, and the fighting at Fort Erie which fol 
lowed. 

By the Third none of the Fenian force remained 
on Canadian soil except as prisoners. A few days 
later a couple of incipient raids were made across the 
Vermont frontier of Canada East, upon the last occasion 
a minor skirmish taking place near Pigeon Hill, between 
the raiders and a force consisting of the Fourth Bat 
talion, 60th Rifles and a Montreal volunteer cavalry 
corps, the Royal Guides. 

The Sandfield Macdonald Government had been de 
feated March, 1864, and the Tache-John A. Macdonald 
Government was formed on the 30th of that month. 
July the third, 1866, the new government through 
the Hon. J. A. Macdonald, Attorney General, presented 
a bill to amend the Militia Act, which passed, and was 
assented to as 29 and 30 Victoria Chapter XII "An 
Act to Amend an Act respecting the Volunteer Militia 
Force. " 

This Act repealed the restriction that the volunteer 
force should not exceed 25,000, the number being left 
to the discretion of the government, and gave to the 
Coinmander-in-Chief more extended authority to call 
out the volunteer force, he having no right under the 
Act, as it stood, to call out the force except "in case 
of war, invasion, or insurrection." The organization 
of mounted infantry, mounted rifles, military train, 
commissariat, staff, hospital and ambulance corps, and 
also naval companies, was provided for. In cities, no 
infantry units smaller than a battalion were to be 
accepted or gazetted as " Volunteer Militia, " and the 
establishment of troops of cavalry, batteries of garrison 
artillery and companies of infantry was fixed at one 
captain, two lieutenants, 3 sergeants, 3 corporals and 
48 privates. An important provision, and one much 
objected to in parliament was that municipalities 
might spend their funds in support and encourage 
ment of the Volunteer Force, for the building of armor- 



73 



ies. tin- care of the families of volunteers on service, 
etc., etc. Municipal by-laws for raising and expending 
such monies were subject to disallowance by the 
Minister of Militia. Section S provided that the Volun 
teer Force should be subject to the Queen s Regula 
tions and Orders for the Army, and while on Active 
Service to the Rules and Articles of War and to all 
other laws applicable to Her Majesty s troops except 
that no man should be subject to any corporal punish 
ment except death or imprisonment. 

During the same session that this Act was passed 
the sum of $134,060 was voted for the purchase and 
maintenance of the gunboats it had been found neces 
sary to place upon the St. Lawrence and the great 
lakes, at the time of the Fenian Raids. An item of 
*2.">0.000 to purchase improved fire arms for the volun 
teers was also passed, and one of $36,880 for depart 
mental salaries. The staff provided for was an Ad 
jutant General, two Deputy Adjutant Generals, four 
Assistant Adjutant Generals, a Superintendent of 
Military Schools, a Military Surveyor, Provincial 
Aide-de-Camp, etc. The opposition having objected 
to the large increase of the staff, a letter from C olonel 
MacDongall, the Adjutant-General, was read in which 
he asserted "it is utterly impossible to work advan 
tageously in time of pressure, with departments sud 
denly created for the emergency, and without ex 
perience. If departments are expected to work well in 
time of war they must be created and gain experience 
of routine duties, and have at their command all the 
knowledge 1 and. appliances in times of peace, which 
they would have to bring to bear in time of war." 

For some time after the withdrawal of the militia 
from the frontier. Fenian agitators continued to dis 
play considerable activity in the border cities of the 
Tinted States and, as a matter of precaution, the 
military authorities decided to form, on August 14th, 
a camp of observation under the command of Colonel 
Wolseley, now Field Marshal Lord Wolseley, at 
Thorold, on the Welland Canal. The force in this 
camp consisted of the Governor-General s Body Guard 
of Toronto, one wing of H.M. 16th Regiment, Lieuten 
ant Colonel Hoste s Field Battery, Royal Artillery, 
three or four battalions of militia infantry, and a troop 
of cavalry. The infantry battalions were relieved 
every ten days, the time in camp being used to put in 
the customary annual drills. The men received a 
dollar a day pay, and free rations. 

Between the spring of 1866 and the end of the year 
the volunteer force of Ontario and Quebec increased 
from 348 companies, with a nominal strength of 
19,597 men, to 569 companies with a nominal strength 
of 33,754 men. 



Great inconvenience was experienced during this 
year from the fact that the force consisted for the 
most part of isolated companies; the volunteers of the 
principal cities having been alone formed in battalions. 
Thus, when in the spring a sudden call was made for 
the service of the whole force, it became necessary to 
form the isolated companies into provisional battalions, 
and to appoint a provisional staff to each battalion 
in a hurry, and at an obvious disadvantage. The 
ad jut ant -general therefore obtained the authority of 
the Commander-in-chief to form the isolated companies 
into permanent battalions with permanent command 
ing and staff officers. This was effected, wherever 
possible, by forming the isolated companies into bat 
talions by counties. 

The force was, in the autumn of 1866, told off into 
field brigades and garrisons of posts, and an arrange 
ment for combining in the most useful manner the 
action of the force with the regular troops was made 
by the lieutenant-general commanding. This arrange 
ment, originally suggested by Lieutenant-Colonel Earle, 
was as follows: 

The nucleus of each field brigade consists of one 
regular regiment, and its composition was as follows : 
Regular infantry, 1 battalion; volunteer infantry, 3 
battalions; artillery, 1 field battery (regular or volun 
teer) ; cavalry, 1 troop (volunteer). 

The staff of each brigade was as follows : Commandant , 
brigade major, commissariat, engineer officer, surgeon 
in charge, regular officers; mounted provost, a regular 
sergeant; assistant brigade major, volunteer officer; 
assistant commissary, with as many aids as may be 
necessary, volunteer officers or N.C. officers. 

Of these brigades three were formed in Western 
Canada, four in Eastern Canada. The component 
corps and brigade staff were detailed, and the points 
of assembly fixed. The staff officers were provided 
with a list of the stores which were required to enable 
each brigade to take the field, and would draw then 
from the storekeepers who had orders to issue them 
on the shortest notice. Similarly the commissariat 
officer of each brigade was prepared to provide the 
necessary transport to enable it to move at the shortest 
notice. Those volunteer corps which did not form 
part of the above moveable columns were formed into 
brigades by districts, of which each had its volunteer 
commandant and brigade major. 

These corps were to be employed in garrison duty, in 
guarding frontier towns and villages, and important 
points on the lines of canal or railroad communication. 
The duties of the commandant and brigade major were 
to organize a system of lookout parties and patrols 
suited to the localities; and to visit constantly all the 
posts within their respective brigade districts. 



During the period of active service by the volunteer 
force in the summer of 1866, much inconvenience was 
occasioned by the inexperience of the officers and men 
generally, and by the absence of specific instructions 
for their guidance, and by His Excellency s command 
the adjutant-general prepared and circulated a code 
of regulations for the volunteer militia. 

In his annual report at the end of this year the 
adjutant-general drew attention to the disadvantage 
each militia unit was under owing to the absence of a 
properly paid battalion staff. In order that a bat 
talion should be efficient, he considered it indispensable 
that it should be provided with an adjutant and 
sergeant-major, who should give up their whole time 
to their military duties. 

The apprehension of further hostile intentions by the 
Fenians, which existed generally along the frontier of 
Canada during the spring of 1867, led to the adoption 
of measures of precaution. Three thousand Peabody 
breech-loading rifles were purchased by the govern 
ment; and these, together with four thousand five 
hundred Spencer repeating rifles which were at the 
disposition of the government, were distributed to the 
volunteer corps in the localities most exposed to attack ; 
that is to say, generally along the frontier from Lake 
Memphremagog, on the east, to London on the west. 
In addition, the whole of the Montreal brigade 
was supplied with the Westley-Richards breech- 
loading rifle from the imperial stores. The 
corps which were supplied with these new weapons 
were ordered to drill twice every week to accustom 
the volunteers to their use, which they did accordingly 
between the 20th March and the 30th June, 1867. 
These were later exchanged for the Snider rifle, and 
the adjutant-general had the satisfaction to report 
at the end of the first year of Confederation that 30,000 
of these rifles were then in the hands of the volunteers 
of Ontario and Quebec. 



The adjutant-general this year recommended that 
the garrison artillery should receive special instruction, 
and that at least two eighteen-pounder guns should 
be supplied to each garrison artillery corps. In order 
to ensure the efficiency of this most important arm, 
it was, in the opinion of the adjutant-general, indis 
pensable that one deputy and one assistant adjutant- 
general of artillery should be appointed to superintend 
the organization of the artillery force of the Dominion, 
who should have obtained the rank of lieut.-colonel 
in the Royal Artillery, and would thereby bring to the 
service of the country that knowledge of all the details 
of artillery science which none but an educated artillery 
officer could, possess. 

The schools of military instruction, established in 
connection with the service militia of the Province of 
Canada, and in operation at Confederation, were four 
in number, established respectively in the cities of 
Quebec and Montreal, in the Province of Quebec; and 
Kingston and Toronto, in the Province of Ontario ; 
and the adjutant-general in his annual report ex 
pressed his high sense of the efficient manner in which 
the duties of instruction had continued to be per 
formed by the respective commandants and staff. 

In addition to these schools, two schools of gunnery, 
one at Montreal and the other at Toronto, as also a 
cavalry school in the latter city, had been temporarily 
formed, and were in operation, affording every facility 
to officers and non-commissioned officers of militia, 
and candidates for commissions therein, to acquire a 
knowledge of the duties connected with those arms 
of the service. The adjutant-general recorded his 
acknowledgements to Colonel Anderson and to Lieut. - 
Colonel Pipon, of the Royal Artillery, and to Colonel 
Jenyns, of the 13th Hussars, for the able, indefatigable, 
and kindly manner in which they had carried out the 
instruction of the graduates in the schools committed 
to their superintendence. 





CHAPTER VII 

THE MARITIME PROVINCE MILITIA 



CONFEDERATION brought the militia forces of 
Nova Scotia and New Brunswick into the militia 
of the new Dominion of Canada. 
The French attempted to occupy Nova Scotia in 
1598, and again the following year. In 1605, a French 
colony was established there, and was the first actual 
settlement by Europeans within the boundaries of the 
Dominion of Canada. In 1621, Nova Scotia was 
annexed to Scotland and named Nova Scotia by James 
I, and in 1625 the Scottish Order of Baronets was 
founded. Nova Scotia was ceded to France by 
Charles I, whereupon Richelieu formed a colonization 
company to colonize the country. It was conquered 
by Lord Protector Cromwell. Again ceded to France, 
it remained really, or nominally, under France till 
ceded to Great Britain by the Treaty of I trecht, in 
1713. 

Halifax was founded in 1749, at the expense of the 
Imperial Government, under the direction of the 
Lords of Trade and Plantations, and was named in 
compliment to George Montague, Eurl of Halifax, 
under whose immediate auspices the settlement was 
undertaken. The scheme for a settlement on the 
shores of Chehucto Bay is said to have originated with 
the people of Massachusetts, who, in calling the atten 
tion of the British Government to the claims of the 
French on the territory of Acadia, suggested the 
necessity of, as well as the great commercial advantage, 
to be derived from such an undertaking. A plan was 
submitted to government in the autumn of 1748, and 
was warmly supported by Lord Halifax. Parliament 
voted 40, 000. and supplied 13 transports and a sloop 
of war, by which Colonel the Hon. Edward Cornwallis, 
designated Captain-General and Governor of Nova 



Scotia, his suite, and 2,576 settlers, were conveyed to 
the bay. 

The Halifax colonists were largely of a military class, 
and the colony was really established as a military 
post, so that from the first British occupation there 
may be said to have been a British militia organization 
in the province. The French maintained a militia 
organization among the Acadians, particularly in 
Cape Breton, until the capture of Louisburg, and 
their desperate services on behalf of the Bourbon 
cause are recorded in history. 

Nova Scotia militiamen served under Monckton and 
Winslow in 1755, when they captured the French fort 
Beausejour, some Halifax companies serving in this 
expedition claiming to have been in existence since 
1749 or 1750. 

It is interesting to observe that according to Dr. 
James Johnson (Alphabet of First Things in Canada) 
the first suggestion of Confederation as applicable 
to British North America as at present founded, is to 
be found in a report made by Colonel Robert Morse, 
R.E., who was sent in 1783, at the instance of Sir Guy 
Carleton (then commander of His Majesty s forces in 
North America), to report on the military defences 
required for Nova Scotia. In his report (1784) 
Colonel Morse says: "In the course of this examination 
my mind has been strongly impressed with the idea 
of uniting these provinces of Canada to the advantage 
of both, since by establishing the same laws and 
inducing a constant intercourse and a mutual interest, 
a great country may yet be raised up in North Am 
erica." 

The first attempt to form a regular force in what 
is now Canada was in 1792, when the King authorized 



70 



the raising of a regiment in each of the provinces, and 
permitted them to take the title of "Royal." The 
raising of the Royal Canadian Volunteers has already 
been referred to. The first of these regiments to be 
raised, however, was the Royal Xova Scotian Regi 
ment, which, by June, 1793, was complete. Its officers 
were men of considerable means, and they served 
without pay. They led the way in obtaining the 
desired distinctive " Royal," title as is seen in the 
fact that Sir John Went worth, in December, 1793, 
returned thanks for the permission to use the word 
" Royal." About the same time a Royal New Bruns 
wick and a Royal Newfoundland Regiment were 
raised. 

In a letter dated Halifax, October 12, 1799, the 
Duke of Kent wrote to his friend, Major Louis de Sala- 
berry: "His Majesty has thought proper to make it 
known that he would be pleased if all the provincial 
regiments would offer to serve in all the American 
colonies, in place of being confined to the one whose 
name they bear. In consequence of accepting this 
offer they would be placed on the establishment as the 
Fencibles are in England and as is the Newfoundland 
that is to say the officers would rank through all North 
America the same as they do at present in their res 
pective provinces, and the adjutants and quarter 
masters would be sure of half pay in case of reduction, 
and the regiments would be commanded by officers 
taken from the line who would be proprietors. 1 
believe it is the intention of forming a brigade of 
Canadians after the manner of the 60th, of which the 
commander-in-chief of the troops in North America 
would be colonel, as the Duke of York is of the 60th. 
The proposition has been made already to the Nova 
Scotian and New Brunswick Regiments, and both have 
expressed in the most loyal manner their willingness 
to serve wherever His Majesty may think proper." 

In August and September of 1802, the several pro 
vincial regiments were disbanded, Governor Went- 
worth, of Nova Scotia, writing on llth October that 
the disbanded men of the Royal Newfoundland and 
Royal Nova Scotian Regiments were all quietly dis 
persed through the province. The Royal New Bruns 
wick Regiment later became the 104th Regiment. 

During the long war with France the Nova Scotia 
militia were embodied, armed and drilled and used 
for garrison duties. 

Lieut. -Governor Wentworth wrote to H. E. Major- 
General Clarke, 8th May, 1793: " Brig r-General 
Ogilvie has, no doubt, reported to your excellency the 
reduced state of this garrison. The harbor is also 
without a ship of war. In the town I have 700 good 
militia, who may be depended upon. One company, 
about 60 freeholders, are formed into artillery, and are 



now practising with great assiduity, under the in 
structions of the detachment of Royal Artillery in this 
garrison. It will be necessary to furnish the militia 
with arms from the King s stores, as there are not 
any to be had in the province. I have another select 
regiment of 1,000 men, commanded by half- pay 
officers, and composed of privates, most of whom 
served under these officers during the late war. They 
have two companies of artillery and one troop of 
horse, and can be assembled at Halifax in six day s 
notice part of them sooner. The King s Nova Scotia 
Regiment, raising under my command, exceed 100 men, 
now in garrison." 

June 4th, Mr. Wentworth stated to Mr. Dundas that 
the town militia were nearly six hundred strong, com 
pletely armed from H.M. Ordnance office. There was 
also an artillery company, 56 men, chiefly merchants 
and freeholders, who were daily exercised. Many of 
them had served in the army. 

Three distinct corps of militia were enrolled in the 
western portion of the province, viz., the regiment 
raised by Colonel Barclay one under Colonel Millidge, 
and a body of Acadians, commanded by Lieut. -Colonel 
Taylor. 

July 19. H.M. frigate Boston appeared off Halifax 
harbor to procure a pilot for the American coasts, 
upon which Brigadier-General Ogilvie, then command 
ing the troops, ordered the signals of alarm to be made. 
On this, the King s Nova Scotia Regiment were in a 
few minutes paraded, and the first battalion of Halifax 
militia assembled, completely armed, in fifteen minutes, 
before Government House. This is stated by Governor 
Wentworth, in a letter of July 23, to Mr. Dundas, 
the Secretary of State. He added: "In case of any 
invasion of this town, it will, in twenty minutes, put 
under the command of Brigadier-General Ogilvie, 900 
militia, in two hours to be reinforced with 600. being, 
the second battalion, who reside a few miles round the 
town, and these as fast as possible by the militia 
legion of Nova Scotia, consisting of 1,000 effective 
men, commanded by Colonel Barclay, and other res 
pectable officers, upon half-pay." 

Of the Halifax militia artillery, he wrote: "Among 
the privates are men of from 100 to 600 per annum, 
clear, estate, who, from a declared principle of 
loyalty, and utter abhorrence of French democratic 
tyranny, have voluntarily offered their services." He 
considered the militia everywhere well disposed and 
faithful. On emergency, he reckoned on 4,000 of them 
to join him, and in an extreme case 2,000 more. He 
estimated the whole force of the country at 9,160 men. 
He requested arms for Barclay s legion. The people 
of the harbours on the Atlantic coast were ready to 
assist in defence. 



October 9th, 1795, on intelligence as to the French 
fleet at New York preparing and being nearly ready 
for sea, and that they were supposed to be destined 
for Halifax or the fisheries, the lieutenant-governor, 
General Ogilvie and Commissioner Duncan united in 
opinion that Halifax was in danger, and that the 
country militia should be brought to town, and the 
council approved of the measure. Governor Went- 
worth issued orders for 1,000 men to be marched from 
I he regiments of Hants, King s and Annapolis counties 
to Halifax, with all possible despatch. General Ogilvie 
promised all the unoccupied barrack room, and the 
lieut .-governor stated to Mr. Dnndas. October 10, that 
nearly 400 could be lodged in the place he had proposed 
for the French prisoners from St. Pierre, (Melville 
Island). About 105 effectives, exclusive of officers, 
marched into town with all possible speed and alacrity. 
Mr. Went worth wrote: "Perhaps a finer body of 
athletic, healthy young men, were never assembled 
in any country, nor men more determined to do their 
duty." 

One company, under Captain Willet, inarched from 
Granville to Halifax, performing 135 miles in 35 
hours. Of the French Acadians, 75 youths came near 
20 miles, zealous and gratified to unite with the English 
colonists. The behaviour of the militia while in 
Halifax was unexceptionable. Colonel Barclay, the 
adjutant-general, came with his men, and declined 
any pay. The lieutenant-governor commended him, 
Colonel Van Cortlandt, of King s county, and 
Lieut.-Colonel Howe and Colonel Brymer, of Hants. 
The militia and regulars at the capital amounted, 
as it was computed, to near 4,000 men. Lieuten 
ant-Governor Wentworth, finding that the French 
armament had left the American coast on 
(lie !) October, and were believed to be on their way 
to Newfoundland, and the apprehension of their 
attempts on Nova Scotia ceasing as the season passed, 
on 31st October called the council together, and stated 
to them his intention to send the militia to their homes, 
in which the council concurred. He accordingly, on 
November 2, published his thanks to them for their 
prompt obedience and good conduct, and dismissed 
them after a garrison service of about four weeks. 
The last division marched off on November 8. 
The expense of this service was paid by the British 
Government, Mr. Wentworth drawing bills on the 
Lords of the Treasury for 4,597 sterling to cover 
the pay, subsistence and contingencies of the militia. 

July, 1799, 1,000 militia were embodied for service in 
the Halifax garrison. In addition, 2,000 more select men 
were under orders to come in on (he shortest notice 
in case of any attempt to be made, by the enemy. The 
Duke of Kent requested that another battalion should 



be embodied and called into the garrison, but. Sir John 
Wentworth was unwilling to accede to it, and re 
monstrated with him by letter, shewing the ill effects 
it would produce upon the people and their agriculture. 
The embodied militia were discharged 24 October 

In a letter to Captain Fenwick, 17th February, 1800, 
the Lieutenant-Governor estimated the militia of the 
province at 10,000 effective men, and said he thought, 
in case of invasion, that 6,000 more would be found 
able and disposed to serve. 

Nova Scotia having suffered very severely in the 
early part of the war from the cruisers of the enemy, 
fitted out a number of privateers in order to retaliate 
on, and to extort compensation from the foe. Within 
four years, twelve or fifteen ships of war were fitted 
out by the Nova Scotians, and of this number one 
half were owned by the little village of Liverpool. 

Lieut.-Governor Wentworth at all times gave much 
attention to the militia of the province. They were 
but scantily supplied with arms. Many of his letters 
remain, requesting of the generals who commanded 
in the garrison supplies of muskets 40 for one com 
pany, and 20 or 30 for another. In 1805, there were 
three battalions of Halifax militia. Of these, the 
companies of Captains Morris, Bre inner, and Fillis 
had volunteered, (the law requiring only 4 days duty 
in the year). Fillis commanded 60 men, who had 
begun their artillery exercise. Captain Mclntosh s 
company were to do duty at York redoubt, being 
fishermen, living near it. Sir John suggested their 
being instructed on Sunday afternoons, as they were 
generally employed in their boats in the week. There 
were companies of artillery in other militia regiments 
who had been instructed by men from the force who 
had been discharged and settled in the province. One 
company of 40 men, under Captain Thompson, resided 
near Chester. 

In 1807, every exertion was being made in Nova 
Scotia by the Governor, Generals Hunter and Skerret, 
Admirals Berkeley and Cochrane, in anticipation of 
an American war. The 98th Regiment and the New 
foundland Fencibles were sent to Quebec by order 
from England. 1,000 militia were placed in garrison 
in their stead ; and in October, on the request of Major- 
General Skerret, 500 more were drafted from the 
country to strengthen the place. By the 26th October, 
part of the reinforcements of militia had come in. 
Halifax militia were working on the fortifications. 
Admiral Berkeley designed to employ 140 men, 
accustomed to boats and vessels, in gun brigs, for 
defence; and Mr. Monk was directed to secure the aid 
of the Micmacs. Two companies of militia (150 men, 
under good and well-informed officers, well clothed) 
trained and skilful, were frequently exercised in the 



7S 



batteries to which they were attached. In the other 
militia regiments there were at least 150 more good 
artillery men, and a company of 50 free blacks was 
also engaged. 

December 26, 1808, Major-General Hunter, by 
letter, requested that 1,000 militia should be im 
mediately embodied, 200 to be stationed at Annapolis, 
and 800 at Halifax, and a further 1,000 got ready to 
be called into service on the shortest notice. This 
(December 29). the lieutenant-governor and council 
agreed to do. 

These regiments of militia were in February, 1809, 
embodied in Nova Scotia, and employed in actual 
service. It was proposed to have one troop of light 
horse, in number 35 officers and men, who should find 
their own horses. The artillery (militia) could at 
this time furnish 124 men, capable of assisting the 
regulars either in batteries or with field pieces. The 
town militia mounted guards in rotation, being only 
paid when on actual duty. The whole trained force 
reliable, was 1,800 men, and great harmony pre 
vailed between them and H. M. regular troops. (Sir 
F. Wentworth s letter of March 26 to Lord Castle- 
reagh.) 

On April 18, the militia was estimated at 9,000 men, 
and it was decided to call the assembly together on 
May 19. to amend the militia laws. The effective 
force of the militia in Nova Scotia, the Governor con 
sidered, would not exceed 3,000 men in New Bruns 
wick, 700. Cape Breton and Prince Edward Island 
together could furnish 400. The Governor wrote at 
this date: "Hitherto the male population composed 
the militia. It. was rather a levee en masse, of which 
one-third only will be called out for training and 
instruction." 

The Assembly in their session this year thanked 
the Imperial Government for "the supply of arms, 
clothing and camp equipage, so graciously granted, 
for the use and accommodation of our militia." 

Saturday, June 18, 1808, the Lieutenant Governor 
informed a committee of the house that "in addition 
to 2,000 stand of old arms and accoutrements now in 
II. M. stores, he will order the issue of 2,000 stand of 
new arms and accoutrements" just arrived, on a 
pledge from the house that it would, at its nex( 
session, make provision for the payment for such arms. 
the price of new arms to be estimated at the Tower 
prices, and the old at reasonable rates, also promising 
to apply for as many more as might be required to 
complete arming the militia on a similar pledge. The 
a-M inbly accordingly, June 20. resolved to pay for all 
arms and ammunition which should be issued for the 
use of the militia. Several inspecting field officers 



of militia (regular officers) were employed and paid 
this year. 

Thursday, June 23, Sir George Prevost closed the 
session, thanking the house for the militia laws they 
had passed, &c., and prorogued the assembly. Although 
the new militia law was a great improvement, he 
considered it very defective still, which he ascribed 
"to the jealously manifested against measures emanat 
ing from government, and to a tendency to democracy, 
imbibed from our neighbours." 

Sunday night, June 28, 1812, a messenger, with 
despatches from General Hunter, who commanded in 
.\~e\v Brunswick, with intelligence of the declaration 
of war, arrived at a late hour at Halifax. His Ex 
cellency held a council at 10 a.m. on .Monday, and the 
intelligence was then made public. The Lieutenant 
Governor ordered the first class of the militia (able- 
bodied men from 18 to 50) to be ballotted from, for 
service, and a proportion in each district to be at once 
embodied, to protect the most exposed parts of the 
coast, as he could not spare regulars for the purpose. 
He also directed a few guns to be mounted at the 
entrance of some of the most exposed harbours, to be 
used against the depredations of privateers; and 
where there were suitable boats to carry them, he 
sent small guns. 

The assembly met Tuesday, July 21, (10th assembly, 
2nd session.) It was convened on account of the 
war, and His Excellency requested it, in his open 
ing speech, to make provision for the extra pay allowed 
by the provincial statute to the militia. (Act 180S, 
sec. 56, which directed the militia, when embodied, 
to have same pay and allowances and the same rations 
as regulars. Sec. 57 fixed the pay of sergeant, per day, 
at 2s.; corporal, trumpeter, drummer or fifer. Is. 6d.; 
private man. Is.) He also called for provision to be 
made for such other expenses as the security of the 
province demanded. 

The house voted S.OOO for block-houses, temporary 
work, arming boats, telegraph. Arc.: 12.000 For extra 
pav to militia, now to be embodied; 10,000 for a 
further force embodied, if found necessary: 7s. (id. a 
day cadi to clerks of paymaster and adjutant-general 
of militia: 150 for carriage of arms; 40 stationery 
and printing, and 120 for medical attendance on 
embodied militia. They also resolved to borrow 
30.000. at (i per cent., for defences. (Burdock s 
History of Nova Scotia). 

Interest in the militia was kept up even after the 
close of the war. A bill providing for the reduction 
of the force was discussed at some length during the 
session of 1819. A longer term of service seems to 
have been advised by the governor. Several members 
dissented. 



Mr. Haliburton observed, that during the American 
war no inconvenience was felt in the existing system, 
and he thought it strange that in time of peace they 
should find difficulties that did not exist then. It 
appeared from the plan, that they were to take a part 
of the first class and enrol them for the term of seven 
years. If it was necessary to drill them so frequently 
now, how happened it that it was not necessary 
in time of war? One quarter of the militia, he be 
lieved, were labourers, and when they arrived at the 
age of twenty-one they removed to different places, 
and it would be found necessary to have recourse to 
continual drafts to supply their places. 

Mr. Mortimer doubted whether the province had 
any militia at all, for all the service required of them 
was to turn out three days in the year,; approved of 
the plan as far as the staff officers were concerned, 
but not of a reduction of the battalions proposed. 

Colonel William Dickson, member for Truro. stated 
that he was not able to comprehend His Excellency s 
views on the subject, particularly as regards the re 
duction ofthebattalions. His ExceUecy seemed to think 
the offices of quartermaster-general and adjutant- 
general of militia were not of much use towards 
rendering the force more efficient, and that both 
offices might be executed by one person. This amend 
ment, he thought, was a very proper one. During the 
late war, he said, there were three inspecting field 
officers, for the Western, Eastern and Middle districts 
respectively. 

Mr. Roach (of Cumberland) moved that a committee 
be appointed to report what amendments were neces 
sary to be made to the existing militia law, which 
motion was adopted and passed by the house. On this, a 
committee of eleven members was named. This com 
mittee advised, next day, to alter the age of enrol 
ment, to be from 18 to 60, instead of 16 to 60; that 
the first class for service be from 18 to 40; to add one 
day for battalion meeting, and to provide for two 
inspecting field officers in place of the adjutant-general 
and quartermaster-general. 

The oldest existing militia organizations in Nova 
Scotia at Confederation traced their origin back to the 
volunteer movement in Nova Scotia co-incident with 
the big volunteer movement in England. 

Meetings were held in the city of Halifax during the 
autumn of 1859, and it was evident that the material 
for military organization was not confined to the old 
country. From the outset there was an inclination 
exhibited to organize by nationalists, and in December, 
1859, English, Scotch, and Irish companies were 
formed, each keeping its particular national character. 
This had the effect of causing a healthy rivalry, that 



tended to keep up the interest and promote a pride 
in each company, and an interest by citizens who 
were unable to join the ranks as active members. 

"Regulations and Orders" for the local forces of 
Nova Scotia, 1861, shew that the utmost freedom was 
allowed in the selection and appontment of com 
missioned officers, and in other matters connected 
with the formation of volunteer companies. The re 
gular mode of proceeding was laid down. The com 
missioned officers were elected by the company, and 
a certificate, signed by the secretary and chairman 
of the meeting, that the candidate had a majority 
of the votes of the company, was all that was re 
quired by the adjutant-general, to entitle the appli 
cant to a commission, provided, of course, there was 
no charge of disloyalty against him. 

The volunteer force not only had the privilege of 
paying for their own clothing and accoutrements, but 
were allowed full liberty to select such styles and 
colors as the fancy of the members, or their financial 
resources, would allow. The result was a great want 
of uniformity, for, although the color generally selected 
was gray that being considered most suitable in 
England the shade of colour, quality of material, 
and style of facings were very different. 

On the evening of April 16, I860, a public meeting 
was held in Halifax, Earl Mulgrave, the governor, 
presiding. Earl Mulgrave, in his remarks, stated 
that there were at that time thirty-two effective 
volunteer companies in the Province, with a total 
strength of two thousand three hundred and forty-one 
(2341) men. In the city there were eleven (11) com 
panies with a total strength of eight hundred and 
sixty-eight (868) men. 

Major Egan s " History of the Halifax Volunteer 
Battalion," published in 1889, gives a full account of 
the development of the Nova Scotia volunteer force. 

On the 24th of April the South Barrack (now the 
engineer barrack) yard, was handed over by the 
imperial authorities for a drill ground for the city 
companies, and drill instructors from the regiments 
in garrison were furnished, the companies having the 
use of the ground on alternate evenings; some of the 
companies also mustering on the Grand Parade for 
morning drill at 6.30 a.m. 

On the 14th May, 1860, a meeting of representatives 
from the Volunteer Artillery, Scottish Rifles, ( he 
lmet o (I revs, the .Mayflower, Halifax, Irish and Vic 
toria Rifles and Halifax Engineers, was held in Lieut. 
Halliburton s office. Col. Sinclair, Adjutant-General 
Nova Scotia Militia presided, and Lieut. Halliburton 
acted as secretary. On motion by Capt. Samuel 
Caldwell, Halifax Engineers, seconded by Lieut. Mac- 
kinlay, Scottish Rifles, it was resolved, "That the 



80 



Halifax Volunteer companies be formed into a bat 
talion." 

I hiring the summer of 1X60, the Government having 
granted an allowance of ball cartridges, the city com 
panies proceeded to Point Pleasant range to go through 
their regular course of position drill and rifle practice. 
The "Scottish" and the "dreys" encamped on the 
ground, but the other companies marched down each 
day. Sixty rounds per man was the allowance, and 
the scores of the last twenty rounds, which were fired 
under the inspection of an officer, were returned to 
headquarters. For private practice the price of 
ammunition was 11 7s. 3d. per thousand, caps two 
shillings and eight pence half-penny per thousand. 
Among the regulations issued at this time from head 
quarters, was one allowing the sum of five pounds ($20) 
per company to provide armories, and one shilling and 
three pence (25 cents) per annum for the care of each 
stand of arms and accoutrements, and another which 
regulated the transfer of men from one company to 
another. 

By a general order, dated May 3rd, 1862. Major J. W. 
Laurie (unattached) was appointed Inspecting Field 
Officer of the Volunteers and Militia of Nova Scotia, 
with the rank of colonel. The duties of inspecting 
officer had up to this time been performed by Col. 
Sinclair, in addition to the duties of adjutant-general. 
In June the volunteer battalion made an effort to secure 
the services of Capt. Milson, of the 62nd Regiment, 
as adjutant, the intention being to have a paid ad 
jutant. The idea did not meet with the approval 
of Karl Mulgrave, but Captain Milson was soon after 
employed by the Adjutant-general, and in March, 
1863, appointed as Inspecting Field Officer, with the 
rank of lieut. -colonel. 

During 1862, great activity was displayed in re 
organizing and enrolling the regular militia of the 
province. "The Regulations and Orders for the 
deneral Management and Guidance of the Volunteers 
and Militia" shewed that the militia of Nova Scotia, 
previous to the organization of the volunteer force, 
was in a very crude state, but, with the military spirit 
and training introduced by the Volunteer movement, 
a new state of affairs came about, and the regular 
militia was now organized. Previously there was no 
means of getting trained officers for that force, and 
the commissions were consequently held by men who 
were, from a military point of view, in many cases 
totally unfit for their position. From the volunteer 
companies competent men were now drawn by the 
offer of commissions in the regiments of militia and 
paid drill instruction being introduced, no excuse for 
non-efficiency was allowed. The Halifax battalion 
lost some of its best members at this time, the tempta 



tion of a commission in the militia taking many from 
its ranks. At one time it was in contemplation to 
form the counties into districts, and to place the 
militia in each under brigadiers. 

During the fall of 1864, the subject of reorganiza 
tion was taken up by the officers, the term of service 
for which the men had enrolled expiring in .January, 
1X6">. Quite a number of meetings were held, and 
application was made to the Commander-iu-Chief to 
secure a grant from the government to assist the 
volunteers, the sum of five dollars per man being 
suggested, that being the amount allowed the volun 
teers in Kngland and Canada. The uniform of the 
companies, which had now been in use for five years. 
requiring to be renewed, a committee of officers was 
appointed to consider the subject, and they recom 
mended "Rifle green" as the most suitable color. 
This was adopetd by all the companies except the 
Scottish, this company continuing to wear their dark 
plaid clothing. 

During the winter of 1S66 overcoats were issued to 
the battalion by the government, and the long " Kn- 
field " rifle (muzzle loader) which the battalion had 
used from its organization, was replaced by the short 
rifle and sword bayonet. 

In March. 1866, the first Fenian scare took place. 
Rumors of an inroad by the Fenian Brotherhood from 
the United States caused considerable alarm, and the 
departure of an armed ship from New York, in a 
mysterious manner, seemed to point to Halifax as 
the scene of attack. The Halifax battalion was 
called out for active service, and each company told 
off to its post, the signal of alarm being three gnus 
fired in succession from the citadel. 

Although the fears of a Fenian invasion in March 
proved groundless, the result showed that there was 
some cause for alarm. In consequence of an inroad 
into Canada and the withdrawal of a portion of the 
garrison, the Halifax battalion was ordered out for 
duty. One hundred and fifty men, with the proper 
complement of officers, being detailed, in the following 
proportions: The men were required to provide 
their own rations, and two men for fatigue were told 
off with each guard, whose duty it was to look after 
the provisions: as a rule the families of the men sent 
their meals ready cooked to the guard rooms. By the 
general order, dated July, olst the battalion was 
relieved from garrison duty, having served from the 
6th Jun. By this general order the thanks of the 
commander-iii-chief were coin-eyed to the men, and 
a despatch from Karl Carnarvon expressing his ap 
proval of the services of the battalion was also pub 
lished. 



81 



How the old Halifax battalion came to be called the 
63rd in the Dominion active militia has never been 
satisfactorily explained, the regiment being really 
entitled to the third place in the roll of regiments of 
the Active Militia of Canada, it having had an unbroken 
existence since the 14th of May, 1860. The only other 
battalions senior in Canada were the 1st Battalion 
"Prince of Wales" Regiment, Montreal, organized 
November 1st, 1859, and the 2nd Battalion "Queen s 
Own," of Toronto, organized 26th April, 1860, eighteen 
days before the 63rd. (Major Egan s History of the 
Halifax Volunteer Battalion.) 

As adjutant-general of the militia of Nova Scotia, 
Colonel R. Bligh Sinclair, December 31, 1867, reported 
on the provincial force, this report giving a good idea 
of the organization prevailing at and immediately 
prior to Confederation. The following extracts from 
this report are interesting on this account: "The 
organization is the result of about six years work, 
commencing first with the military instruction of 
volunteers and militia officers, the men not being 
called out till the latter were fit to instruct, in 1863. 
The whole available militia force has now been called 
out for five days training for five successive years, 
and the result has been more favorable than antici 
pated from such a limited period of drill. By far the 
most valuable effect has been on the officers of the 
force, all of whom passed examinations in field 
exercise before receiving commissions, and besides had 
a good deal of training to qualify themselves to com 
mand. Officers promoted also passed the higher 
grades of examination. The adjutants all had to pass 
the highest grade of examination, as well as the com 
manding and field officers. Of 230 officers from the 
county, thoroughly trained at headquarters, during 
the last two years, a considerable proportion were 
adjutants of regiments. 

"The Provincial Army List gives a fair idea of the 
state of the organization. Officers are nominated to 
serve, with acting rank, as cadets, until they pass the 
required examination for commissions. Hitherto these 
examinations have been limited to field exercise. 
Light infantry has been as yet little practised, as, 
irrespective of the body of the militia force being only 
lately armed to any considerable extent, five days 
only suffices for heavy drill. Light infantry was, 
however, taught to the officers trained at headquarters, 
and the regiments armed were trained in it to a limited 
extent, during the Fenian alarm." 

" In several previous reports I have represented the 
good results which would be derived from establishing 
a reasonable amount of military instruction with prizes 
in all schools; far less training will have greater effect 
as soon as t he benefits of early training begin to operate. 



The college at Windsor and the Normal School at 
Truro have adopted military training. 

"It is my duty to represent to your Excellency that 
the annual five days training of the whole force has now 
fully attained the object originally aimed at the com 
plete organization of the whole force of men of martial 
age for administrative purposes, and giving them a 
tolerable idea of parade, discipline and marching, 
while the more intelligent have gained an amount of 
military knowledge which would be useful if required . 
"It affords me sincere pleasure to be able to report 
that nothing could exceed the willing and loyal spirit of 
the militia of Nova Scotia during the five years they 
have been called on to render gratuitous service s, 
which must have been heavily felt. 

"As the final returns are not complete at the date 
of commencing this report, I take the returns of 1866 
as a base for remarking, that the aggregate training for 
that year (45,767 men for five days) was equivalent 
to 223,835 days. This is equal to training 5,720 men 
for six weeks. 

"From drill experience, I can safely submit, that, 
with intelligent officers and men, six weeks con 
secutive drill of five hours a day, per annum, is t In 
most advantageous period of training. 

"By a system of service men and reserves, the 
service would be relieved of much that now weighs on 
individuals with inconvenience, and no advantage 
to the service. For instance, during the constructive 
organization of the whole force, all under forty-five, 
had to be called out for drill at the same time, and 
business and private convenience had to suffer in a 
say that is now avoidable. 

"Whatever be the periods of training hereafter, 
should it not conflict with general plans, I venture- to 
recommend to your Excellency s consideration that 
this year, subject to such further orders as may be 
deemed expedient, the whole of the militia force of all 
arms, excepting those between the ages of 18 and 22 
(attained), be formed into reserve, for muster only 
during peace. 

"^/ During the past season a good deal has militated 
against militia training. Amongst other things, un 
avoidable political excitement which I need not 
further advert to and a misconception raised in some 
districts that the militia law was suspended. The 
militia regiments, which from the above causes, and 
the advanced season, could not be called out, will be 
observed in returns. 

" I have reason to notice that the amount of drill 
performed by the Halifax volunteer battalion under 
the militia staff, has been equal to former years. 

"The volunteer artillery, and 1st, 2nd and 3rd 
brigades Halifax militia artillery, being inspected by 



82 



Lieut. -Colonel Hardy, and the 4th brigade by Lieut.- 
Colonel Sawyer, are in a good state of discipline and 
training. The volunteer artillery have learned the 
Armstrong gun exercise, having a battery of six of 
those guns. 

"I have to note for your Excellency s consideration, 
Colonel Laurie s suggestion that volunteers be here 
after subsidised according to the year s work per 
formed (shown by diaries), and their consequent 
efficiency." 

Lieut.-Col. Laurie, Inspecting Field Officer, District 
C., remarked in his report: "I feel it my duty again 
to bring to notice how desirable it would be that some 
acknowledgement should be made to effective officers 
of militia, who. often at considerable inconvenience, 
attend their annual 28 days training, and carry out all 
the duties connected with the organization. I do not 
think it would be well to reduce the number of days 
training required of them under the present system, and 
would again suggest that they obtain the same exemp 
tions as effective volunteers, from whom far less duty 
is required. 

"The volunteer companies were this year inspected 
with the regiments to which they are attached thus 
gaining some knowledge of battalion drill. A system 
of classifying the volunteer companies so that their 
subsidy should be proportioned to their efficiency is 
most desirable; at present all, whether highly or in 
differently trained, are classed under one rate. 

"I am happy to state that in each county in this 
district a county rifle association has been formed, and 
competitions have been held, thus carrying the interest 
in rifle shooting much more home to the people." 

The following figures give an idea of the efficiency 
of the Xova Scotia Militia at Confederation: In 1866 
the total first class enrolled were 58,031 ; in 1867, 59,147; 
increase, 1,116. 

Total trained in 1866 first class, 45,767; 1867, first 
class, 41,997; decrease, 3,770. 

Xumber of officers with substantive rank in 1867 
Lieutenant-colonels, 110; majors, 171; captains, 797; 
1st lieutenants, 268; staff, 274. 

New Brunswick was separated from Xova Scotia in 
1784, and had a militia force of its own, but resem 
bling that of Xova Scotia. 

During the war of 1812 a sort of neutrality was 
observed between the people of New Brunswick and 
their Maine neighbours 

The Federal party, who were dominant in Massa 
chusetts and Maine at this period, were openly adverse 
to the war: and the injuries done to commerce by the 
embargo, non-intercourse, and final war measures of 
the democratic government at Washington, were 
much resented. Governor Strong, refused to place 



any part of the state militia under the orders of the 
officers of the general government. President Madison 
then availed himself of an act of Congress, passed in 
February previous, which authorized him to accept 
the services of 80,000 volunteers from the different 
states; and General King, of Bath, (Kennebec), a 
violent, democrat, was sent to Kastport to make 
arrangements for raising three regiments of volun 
teers, in the district of Maine. Conventions and meet 
ings were held, and spirited resolutions passed in 
opposition to the general government. 

As little as possible was done by the uuthoritic- of 
Xew Brunswick to antagonize their neighbours. 

About the close of the year 1812, some field works, 
block-houses and batteries were begun for the defence 
of the city and river of St. John, in Xew Brunswick, 
and a permanent pentagonal work was proposed on 
the Washademoiac. Major General Smyth, who com 
manded in Xew Brunswick, and Sir John Sherbrooke 
differed in opinion about some of these fortifications. 
and Captain Xicolls, engineer, was sent to the River 
St. John in consequence. 

The small military force in Xew Brunswick does not 
seem to have been reinforced from the declaration 
of war. On the contrary, the 104th Regiment was 
sent to Canada, while the 2nd battalion of the Nth 
remained in Xew Brunswick. The detachments of 
the 104th left St. John in February, and the people 
helped them with sleighs. Apprehension of invasion 
having made the people in Xew Brunswick uneasy, Sir 
John sent on ten 24-pounders for the batteries on 
I atridge Island, which commanded the entrance of the 
harbor of St. John, with ammunition and other re 
quisites, and 1,000 stand of muskets, but the store ship 
Diligence, in which they were laden, was lost . She was 
separated from H.M.S. Rattler, her convoy, in a 
snow storm. It happened that 400 of the muskets 
were in the Rattler, and got safe to St. John, but the 
Diligent, and what was saved of her cargo, fell into the 
hands of the enemy. Sir John had no means of re 
placing these until more ordnance stores came from 
England. 

In Xew Brunswick, the militia assisted the regulars 
in garrison duty, detachments from Westmoreland 
going to St. John, where the local militia were also 
embodied. 

According to the Xew Brunswick revised statutes of 
1854, the militia consisted of all white male inhabitants 
from 16 to 60. Each county was a battalion district 
and each regiment or battalion was to assemble one 
day in each year for inspection and exercise," and to 
"rendezvous two days in each year for discipline." Arc. 

In 1S02 a Militia Act. 2.") Victoria. Chapter 20. was 
passed which divided the New Brunswick Militia into 




MINISTERS OF MILITIA, 1867 to 1880 



1. Sir George E. Cartier, July ist, 1867 to M;iy 2oth, 1873. 2. The Hon. A. G. Jones, Jan. 2ist, 1878 to Oct. 171!], 1878. 
3. The Hon. Wm. B. Val, Sept. 3olh, 1874 to June ist, 1878. 4. Tlie Hon. Wm. Ross, Nov. ;th, 1873 to Sept. 3Oth, 1874. 
."i. The Hon. L. K. F. Masson, Oct. igth, 1878 to Jan. i6th, 1880. (i. The Hon. Sir Alex. Campbell, Jan. i6th, 1889 to Nov. 8th, 

1880. 

No i T:. It was impossible Ui sccufL- a satisfactory portrait tor reproduction of the Hon. Hug-h McDonald, .Minister from July i.st, 1873 to Nov. 6th, 1873, 

84 



two classos: Active Militia, men from IS to 45 years 
of age, sedentarv from 45 to 60. The Active Militia 
was divided into Class A (volunteer cavalry, artillery 
and riflemen) ; Class B (unmarried men and widowers 
without children) : Class C (married men and widowers 
with children. Class A drilled for 6 days each year and was 
provided with ammunition at the expense of the prov 
ince. Classes B and C were to be enrolled and muster 
one day in each year. The Sedentary Militia was not 
required to enroll regularly. 

The following extracts from a report by Lieut. - 
Colonel George .). Maunsell, Adjutant General of New 
Brunswick Militia, dated .January 1st. lS(iS. give an 
idea of the organization and work of the New 
Brunswick force just previous to and at Confeder 
ation: 

"The volunteers have hitherto been considered the 
advance guard of the local forces, well drilled, as a 
rule, and when drilled every man is furnished with a 
uniform coat and cap by government; they attend a 
number of drills annually to entitle them to a capita 
tion allowance, which is intended to provide for the 
proper care of the arms and accoutrements issued to 
them, but unhappily, in consequence of the absence 
of government drill sheds, this allowance is inadequate, 
and has frequently to be expended in obtaining in 
sufficient accommodation for drill purposes in such 
buildings as are available, and officers commanding 
have had, at their own cost, to defray the other neces 
sary expenses of their corps. Hence, I would remark, 
it is highly creditable that the volunteers retain the 
efficiency for which they have been justly commended. 
I must admit that, in some cases when volunteers 
serve their time of engagement, they appear unwilling 
to re-engage, and in consequence of the inability of the 
officers to recruit to the strength required by law. tin- 
service of the corps are dispensed with. 

"It is not my intention to urge this as an argument 
against the voluntary system. I hold the opinion 
that each corps serves as a school of instruction on a 
small scale in its own district. The number of well- 
drilled officers the volunteers have furnished to tlie 
militia, proves the truth of my assertion; and as the 
services of one corps are dispensed with, another has 
been speedily organized, a knowledge of drill and 
military ardour being thus diffused over a large por 
tion of the Province. I grant that under the exist 
ing law, which is admitted to l>e defective in many 
important particulars, and tlie consequent impossibility 
of success attending tlie organization of a corps in any 
but a thickly settled district, or town, there is a limit 
to the progress of the volunteer system, and although 
I can with truth state that our volunteers generally 
are in a satisfactory condition, probably that limit has 



been attained under the present system. I may state 
that the men composing the force are, as a general 
rule, taken but from one class of the community, all 
are engaged in industrial pursuits, and when the 
volunteers were called out on service during the past 
year, the absence of the men from the usual avocations 
was much felt. 

"His Excellency General Doyle, being fully aware 
of the comparatively small numbers of available local 
forces, (1,800 volunteers. 500 home guards), of the 
defective law enabling him to call out the militia but 
for one day s muster, and the disadvantages under 
which the volunteers served, had it in contemplation 
to have a scheme for training the militia, in conjunction 
with tlie volunteers, laid before the legislature of this 
province at the last session, and which, while 
strengthening the volunteers as an advance guard, 
was calculated to furnish a drilled support of the 
remaining portion of the active militia, the sedentary 
to form the reserve. I regret that (the union of 
the provinces intervening) His Excellency was pre 
vented from carrying this scheme out." 

"Tlie militia is divided into two classes active and 
sedentary: the former of these is subdivided into three 
classes, termed respectively class A. M, and C. The 
volunteers, or class A, of the active militia consists of 
cavalry, artillery, engineers, and infantry, and num 
bers L>.079." 

" I may observe that there is not a government 
magazine in the province. His Excellency, Major- 
General Doyle obtained authority from the Imperial 
Government, to place ammunition, purchased for the 
militia, in Carleton Tower. Saint John, as a tem 
porary measure, until a magazine be erected. There 
is but one militia store in the province (at Freilericton). 
Considerable sums are paid as rent for a building in 
which to store arms, accoutrements, and other govern 
ment property, at Saint John." 

"The furnishing of uniform, tunics and forage caps to 
effective members of corps at government expense, 
has been a large item in the annual expenditure. The 
term effective is. by law, applied to those who per 
form at least fifteen drills in each month. As none Imt 
effective" members are provided with government 
uniform, another inducement is thus offered volunteers 
to attend drill regularly. 1 can bear testimony to the 
soldier-like appearance of the men at inspection 
parades. Many obtained uniformed trowsers at their 
own cost. As the supply of uniform for volunteers 
is limited, so is that system regarding it at present 
far from perfect." 

"Scarcely a year has elapsed since the establishment 
of the Provincial Rifle Association by His Excellency 
.Major-General Doyle, which, with the subsequent 



86 



formation of several county rifle matches in con 
nection with the association, has been a complete 
success, and surpassed the expectations of the most 
ardent." 

" By the provisions of the Militia Act passed on 31st 
.May, 1865, classes B and C consist of all the male 
inhabitants of the province, (except class A and 
certain exempts) between the ages of 18 and 45; 
class B being unmarried men and widowers without 
children ; class C, married men, and widowers with 
children." 

" Your lordship being well aware that no advantage 
could accrue from the one day s muster of battalions, 
provided for in the existing law, was pleased to order 
it to be dispensed with. However, eight battalions had 
already mustered when your excellency s order was 
published. It is creditable to officers and men that 
the attendance at muster parades has been in any 
respect satisfactory, as the difficulty, if not impos 
sibility, of enforcing obedience and collecting fines 
under a defective law, is such, that in cases of men 
absenting themseves from muster, and having escaped 
punishment by fine, a precedent is established, 
which has a tendency to increase the number of absen 
tees, to diminish the power of commanding officers, and 
has an injurious effect as regards discipline. That the 
important classes of which I now treat, composed 
of young active men, the bone and sinew of the 
community, should be only called upon under such a 
law, and such unsatisfactory circumstances, to con 
tribute to the military strength of this province, is 
indeed to be regretted. It is true that the efforts 
made to instruct militia officers, and to drill a quota 
from every battalion at an annual camp, were accom 
plished with a view to facilitate a future system of 
training, and it cannot be doubted that these efforts 
have been attended with excellent results." 

"The principles upon which the camp of instruction 
was based were in themselves admirable, and were in 
general terms : 

"1. That at least fifteen companies, consisting of 3 
officers and 60 rank and file each, should assemble 
annually for 28 days at a specified time and place. 

"2.- The men to be drawn, by the voluntary system, 
in equal proportions from every battalion, or in such 
proportions as the commander-in-chief should deem 
expedient. 



"3. Any officer commanding a battalion failing to 
furnish the required quota, must resort to the draft. 

" The practical execution of these principles has 
been attended with many difficulties, amongst others 
were these: 

" In consequence of the limited funds placed at the 
disposal of the commander-in-chief, and the neces 
sarily large sums required for the transport of those 
men who reside in distant parts of the province to and 
from camp, and for the erection or hire of a building 
in which to house the assembled force, either the 
course of drill had to be curtailed, or a smaller number 
of men called upon to attend than it was previously 
considered desirable to have at Camp. 

"2. Although commanding officers were requested 
to select officers and men for duty at the camp who 
were residents in the province, and whose services 
would subsequently be available in imparting instruc 
tion to their respective companies, it was found that 
this selection was in some cases impracticable, as many 
men of this class failed to attend, the excuse being 
that absence from their homes and ordinary occupa 
tions for a lengthened period would be with incon 
venience to themselves; and the vacancies their 
absence from camp caused, had necessarily to be filled 
from the so-called migratory class. However, the draft 
was not resorted to in any instance. And it must be 
admitted that the camp of instruction has been the 
means of diffusing a good practical knowledge of drill 
throughout the province, and of shewing the system by 
which the interior economy of a battalion is con 
ducted to those who otherwise would have no oppor 
tunity of obtaining such information." 

"The only remaining class is the sedentary militia, 
comprising all male inhabitants of the province, with 
the same exceptions as classes B and C, between the 
ages of forty-five and sixty. They are attached to the 
battalions comprising the districts in which they 
reside, and are not called upon to muster, but should 
be carefully enrolled as Section 39 of the Act pro 
vides. A return of them has been made by the com 
manding officers of most battalions, but I cannot 
vouch for the accuracy of their numbers, which, as 
taken from the returns would amount only to 7,193." 

The dress regulations of the New Brunswick militia, 
as per order dated April 7, 1863, provided for uniforms 
for the various arms similar to those of the British 
army. 




CHAPTER VIII 

MILITIA OF THE DOMINION 



THE FIRST DOMINION MILITIA ACT AND AMENDING LEGISLATION*. THE FENIAN RAIDS OF 1870 AND 1871, 
THE RED RIVER EXPEDITIONS, THE NORTHWEST REBELLION, AND THE SOUTH AFRICAN WAR. CANADA S 
DEFENSIVE FORCE EMERGES FROM THE EXPERIMENTAL STAGE. 



THE Confederation of the provinces, consummated 
in 1867, had, of course, a momentous effect upon 
the militia. As a matter of fact, the desire to pro 
vide an adequate system of national defence was one of 
the main motives which led to theadoptionof thescheme 
of Confederation. For instance, we find that the 
Hon. John A. (later Sir John A.) Macdonald, in his 
speech in the United Canada Legislative Assembly 
February 6th, 1865, said: "One of the great advant 
ages of Confederation is that we shall have a united, 
a concerted and uniform system of defence. We are 
at this moment with a different militia system in each 
colony in some of the colonies with an utter want 
of any system of defence. We have a number of 
staff establishments, without any arrangement between 
the colonies as to the means either of defence or offence. 
But under the union we will have one system of de 
fence, and one system of militia organization. We 
will have one system of defence and be one people, 
acting together alike in peace and war." 

At the time of Confederation there were 22,390 
active militia maintained in the four originally con 
federated provinces, divided as follows: Upper Canada 
12,199; Lower Canada, 7,398; New Brunswick, 1,791; 
Nova Scotia, 1,002. 

The "British North American Act" (30 and 31 
Victoria, Chapter 3) gave the management and control 
of the militia during peace to the Dominion, which 



came into being on July 1st, 1867, but for some months 
thereafter the old provincial militia organizations 
were maintained pending the drafting and adoption 
of a militia act for the entire Dominion. 

The first Dominion Militia Act, (31 Victoria, Chapter 
xl), entitled "An Act respecting the Militia and De 
fence of the Dominion of Canada," was assented to 
May 22, 1868. 

During the year 1868, this Act was carried into effect, 
and the organization contemplated under its pro 
visions, assumed a practical form. By that law the 
militia consisted: 

1. "Of all the male inhabitants of Canada, of the 
age of eighteen years and upwards, and under sixty 
not exempted or disqualified by law, and being British 
subjects by birth or naturalization," but Her Majesty 
might require all the male inhabitants of the Dominion, 
capable of bearing arms, to serve in case of a levee en 
masse: 

The male population so liable to servo in the militia 
were divided into four classes: 

The first class comprised those of the age of eighteen 
years and upwards, but under thirty years, who were 
unmarried, or widowers without children.; 

The second class comprised those of the age of thirty 
years and upwards, but under forty-five years, who 
were unmarried, or widowers without children; 



87 



The third class comprised those of the age of thirty 
years and upwards, but under forty-five years, who 
were married, or widowers without children; 

The fourth class comprised those of the age of forty- 
five years and upwards, but under sixty years; 

And the above was the order in which the male 
population could be called upon to serve. 

The militia was divided into active and reserve 
militia: 

The active militia consisted of the "volunteer 
militia," the "regular militia," and the "marine 
militia." The volunteer militia was composed of 
corps raised by voluntary enlistment. The "regular 
militia" was composed of men who voluntarily en 
listed to serve in the same; or of men ballotted to serve; 
or of men who voluntary enlisted to serve with the 
ballotted men, and of men ballotted to serve. The 
marine militia was composed of seamen, sailors, and 
persons whose usual occupation was upon any steam 
or sailing craft, navigating the waters of the Dominion. 
The reserve militia consisted of the whole of the men 
who were not serving in the active militia at the time 

being. 

The four provinces of which the Dominion was 
originally composed, were divided into nine military 
districts, viz.: one comprising the province of Nova 
Scotia, one comprising the province of New Brunswick, 
three in the Province of Quebec, and four in the 
province of Ontario. These nine military districts 
were divided into 22 brigade divisions, and again 
subdivided into regimental divisions. 

The law provided for annual paid drills for 40,000 
officers and men, in addition to the oflicers of reserve 
militia, for not less than eight nor more than sixteen 
days, the number being regulated by the money vote 
of Parliament each year. The men required for drill 
could be comprised entirely of volunteers, or if the 
required number was not furnished in that way in the 
several divisions, the men could be drawn from thi 
n-serve by ballot, subject to the exemptions, which 
were reduced to the minimum. 

Ballotted men could be exempted, on providing a 
substitute, on payment of $30. If the substitute was 
drawn his principal had to supply his place. 

Section 27 provided for the calling out of the militia 
in aid of the civil power. 

Section 28 provided for the appointment of an 
adjutant-general of militia to be "a person educated 
to the military profession and who has attained tin- 
rank of field officer in Her Majesty s regular army." 
It was provided that the adjutant -general should be 
charged with the military command and discipline 
oft lie militia. 



As, prior to the date of the union, the several Pro 
vinces had military forces organized under local laws, 
to bring these organizations under the direct authority 
of the Dominion, section 7 of the new law provided for 
their reorganization in the words following: 

" 3. Every volunteer corps duly authorized pre 
viously to and existing on the day on which this Act 
shall come into force, including the officers com 
missioned thereto, shall for the purposes of this Act 
be held to be existing and shall be continued as such, 
subject to the provisions of this Act; and within three 
months after the day on which this Act shall come into 
force, all such corps shall be mustered by their captains 
or commanding officers, the provisions of this Act 
shall be explained to them, and such of the men as have 
not previously given notice of their desire to be dis 
charged, shall take the oath hereinafter prescribed, 
and be enrolled as volunteer militia, and each man 
shall sign a muster roll; and thereafter such men of 
any volunteer corps, as complete three years, including 
any previous continuous service in the same corps 
immediately before such muster, or had served three 
years continuously in such corps immediately before 
such muster, and are discharged after giving the 
required notice, shall not be liable to be ballotted 
for any period of drill or training of the active militia, 
until all the other men in the first, second and third 
classes of militiamen in the company division within 
which they reside, have volunteered or been ballotted 
to serve." 

The re-enrolment of the volunteer militia and the 
enrolment of the reserve militia, were carried on 
simultaneously. 

In the volunteer force, as it stood on the 1st October, 
1868, there were many men who had completed their 
periods of service, and others who did not desire to 
re-enrol. These men had the benefit accorded under 
the law for previous service, and the corps were per 
mitted to enrol other men as volunteers to complete 
the strength in each instance to the regulated standard, 
or in the event of failure to maintain such complement 
of men as was considered necessary for efficiency. If 
any corps became inefficient, it was intended they 
should be disbanded, and others were raised in stead. 
The re-enrolment of the volunteer militia was highly 
satisfactory, and in addition to the old corps pre 
viously in existence, many new ones were added te 
the strength in parts of the country where no local 
organization had previous existence. 

The Dominion Rifle Association was founded in 1S6S, 
Col. Hotsfonl being the first President. 

The number of the corps of active militia, with their 



ss 



nominal strength as they stood at the end of the year 
1868 was as follows: 

Ontario, Total of all arms 21,816 

Quebec, do 12,637 

New Brunswick, do 1,789 

Xova Scotia, do ()2S 

Dominion total 37,170 

There appeared no doubt that the total authorized 
number of active militia could be raised and main 
tained by voluntary enrolment in the several pro 
vinces, in proportion as the population of each com 
pared with the other. In Ontario the quota was 
complete at the end of the year, and in the other 
provinces the deficiences were being rapidly filled. 

As regards the reserve militia, the following plan was 
contemplated by the law. The several regimental 
divisions, which with few exceptions were identical 
with the electoral divisions for representation by 
members of the House of Commons, were divided into 
company divisions, and the officers appointed thereto 
were resident within their company limits, thus 
securing to a large extent a personal knowledge of the 
men enrolled, and also being a guarantee that the ballot 
when called into use, would be conducted with fairness 
and impartiality. 

The drill for 1868-69 was performed in the several 
provinces under orders and regulations having local 
application, and being based upon the old provincial 
laws. In the rural parts of Ontario and Quebec, the 
several battalions performed the days of annual drill 
in camp at their battalion headquarters. It was felt 
that these corps made up of companies (although 
within the same county), widely separated as regards 
distance, could not in any other way be instructed to 
act in concert. The vote of eight dollars per man was 
paid to each country corps for eight days drill in camp, 
the volunteers paying out of that sum the expense 
of the camp, and providing rations which amounted 
to from three to four dollars a man. 

During the year, 2,000 circular tents complete, and 
10,000 blankets were procured and added to the public 
stores; the linen tents from England, and the poles, 
pins, mallets and blankets manufactured in Canada. 

It will be recalled that military schools for the 
practical training of officers, were originally established 
in the year 1864. after the apprehension of troubles 
arising out of the Trent affair. These schools were 
formed in connection with regiments of (he regular 
army, at Quebec and Toronto, and to encourage can 
didates to apply for admission to these schools, gra 
tuities of $50 were granted with both first and second- 
class certificates. The call was responded to from 



all parts, and candidates became so numerous that 
in the year 1865, four more schools were established, 
at Montreal Kingston, Hamilton and London. The two 
schools last named, failing to draw a sufficiently numer 
ous attendance of cadets, were closed by the end of the 
year. The number of cadets who had up to 1870 
been granted certificates by the several commandants 
(officers of the regular army), who had charge of 
the schools in Ontario and Quebec, exceeded 5,000, of 
whom 24 per cent, had taken first-class certificates. 
The whole of these cadets were distributed throughout 
the two Provinces of Quebec and Ontario, and so 
continuous had been the applications from these 
provinces, that the number of cadets in Quebec only 
exceeds that of those from Ontario by eighty-eight. 
Quebec had the advantage of first class certificates, 
as during the period that gratuities were given for 
first class certificates, two were taken in Quebec for 
every one in Ontario. 

In addition to those previously in existence, schools 
of military instruction for infantry were opened during 
the year 1868 at Halifax and St. John, in connection 
with the regiments of the line stationed in those cities, 
and separate schools for artillery and cavalry were in 
successful operations in each of the cities of Montreal 
and Toronto. 

In his annual report for this year, Lieut. -Col. Walker 
Powell, deputy-adjutant general of militia, explained: 
" As an evidence of the success which has attended the 
opening of schools of military instruction, it may be 
observed that some five years ago, when it was decided 
to extend the operations of the volunteer system, and 
largely increase the number of men which had pre 
viously been under training, the chief obstacle to the 
raising of corps in the rural parts, was the difficulty 
in obtaining local officers and instructors capable of 
commanding and drilling the men; to provide for this 
want the schools were established, and the result has 
shown that in every regimental division in Ontario 
and Quebec, where corps of active militia are required, 
competent officers can now be found, and the question 
of instructors is no longer an impediment." 

Towards the end of the first year of the existence 
of the Dominion militia, those interested in militia 
affairs received a pointed intimation that the system of 
military schools in connection with the units of the 
Imperial army stationed in Canada was only a temp- 
porary expedient, and that the time was drawing near 
when Canada would have to make arrangements for the 
establishment of military schools of her own. Colonel 
S.Ci.Jenyns. commanding the 13th Hussars, notified the 
deputy adjutant general of militia that in pursuance 
of the plan of the home government to withdraw the 
regular troops from Canada, his regiment was about 



89 




MINISTERS OF MILITIA, 1880 to 1896. 

1. The Hoti. Sir Adolphe P. Caron, Nov. 8th, 1880 lo Jan. 2^1)1, 1892. 2. The Hon. Sir Mackenzie Rovvell, Jan. 25th, iSi)2 
to Dec. 5th, 1892. 3 The Hon. J. C. Patterson, Dec. sth, 1892 "to March 26th, 1895. 4. The Hon. A. R. Dickey, March 26th, 
1895(0 Jan. 151(1, 1896. o. The Hon. D. Tisdale, May i.st, 1896 to July Sth, ;8o6. 6. The Hon. Alphonse Desjardins, Ian. icth, 
189610 April 2 7 th, 1896. 

00 



to return to England, and he was about to sell his 
troop horses. Consequently the cavalry school main 
tained at Toronto could not be carried on. Colonel 
Jenyns remarked in his communication: "I do not 
like to resign the appointment of commandant without 
specially bringing to the notice of the minister of 
militia the great zeal which I have found exists in all 
ranks. With very few exceptions, I have found that 
every officer, non-commissioned officer and private 
came there to learn, and did his best to render himself 
efficient, and it was quite surprising to me to find how 
much very many did learn in the short time they were 
under instruction, owing to their unremitting attention. 
Although some could hardly sit on a horse when they 
entered the school, a great many officers and non 
commissioned officers are quite capable of drilling 
their respective troops, particularly as a considerable 
number of men under them have passed through the 
cavalry school." 

During the time the militia force of the new Domin- 
/ ion was being organized the military spirit of the country 
was maintained at a high pitch as a result of the 
continued threats of Fenian invasions. Meantime the 
carrying into execution of the home government s policy 
of withdrawing the regular garrisons was partially 
suspended, or at any rate delayed. 

October 9th, 1869, all officers commanding battalions 
and volunteer militia in the Toronto brigade district 
received warning to hold their battalions in readiness 
to turn out for active service at short notice on account 
of another of the periodical Fenian scares of that time. 
The men of the local volunteer militia corps were 
instructed to take home their rifles and accoutrements, 
and the regiments were ordered alternately to mount 
one sergeant and three men as a guard over the maga 
zine in the Toronto drill-shed. October 12th, in 
accordance with district orders, the 10th Royals and 
Queen s Own resumed evening parades as in 1866, the 
order specially requesting the commanding officer 
to have the regiments kept in hand without causing 
alarm. These drills and guards were maintained 
until January 12th. 1870. 

During the year 1870 there was a considerable 
stirring up of the military spirit throughout Canada 
as a result of the Fenian raids across the Quebec 
frontier and the Red River uprising. 

At the beginning of the year 1870, Colonel P. Robert 
son Ross, adjutant-general of militia, wrote in his 
animal report: "Although as yet the military system 
of Canada is in its infancy, it may be said at all events 
with equal truth, that if required for the defence of 
the country, the commander-in-chief has but to give 
the order, and in a very few hours more than 40,000 



men of the active militia, who are at least admirably 
armed, would stand forth to form the first line of 
defence, animated with as much courage and deter 
mination to defend their Queen and country as has 
ever been exhibited by any nation, and their ranks 
might be hourly swelled by men from the reserve 
militia. But to enable the men of Canada to fulfil 
with success the sacred duty of defence, sufficient time 
for military training ought to be afforded them. The 
necessary reserve of arms and stores should be at all 
times available, and an adequate and permanent 
staff maintained to secure their training in time of 
peace, and their guidance in time of war. The ques 
tion of the maintenance and support in a proper state 
of efficiency of the militia of the Dominion to under 
take the defence of the country, depends entirely upon 
the liberality of Parliament." 

During the year 1870, events of great importance in 
connection with the development of the defensive force 
of the Dominion, and involving considerable action on 
the part of the militia and the department, occurred. 
This resulted partly from the attempted invasion by 
Fenians from the United States, in the early part of 
the year, partly from the necessity of raising and 
organizing a militia force for service in the then 
Northwest Territories, and despatching them to the 
Province of Manitoba, in conjunction with a portion 
of Her Majesty s regular troops; but chiefly from the 
labour and responsibility that devolved upon the 
militia department, in taking over the entire military 
charge of the country west of Quebec, consequent on 
the withdrawal of the regular troops from all parts of 
the Dominion west of that station. 

Early in the month of April, apprehension being 
entertained of an intended Fenian raid from the 
United States on the southern frontier, the adjutant- 
general. Col. Robertson Ross, was called on by Govern 
ment, to take the necessary steps to hold in readiness 
such number of the active militia as might be deemed 
sufficient for the emergency. Col. Robertson Ross 
submitted for adoption the following measures: 
1st That the four frontier battalions of active 
militia, belonging to military district Xo. o. south of the 
St. Lawrence and west of Lake Memphremagog, viz.: 
The 50th Battalion headquarters at Huntingdon, 
numbering 29 officers and 2oS non-commissioned 
officers and men; the 51st Battalion, headquarters at 
Hemmingford. numbering 31 officers and 314 non 
commissioned officers and men: the 5 2nd Battalion, 
headquarters at Knowlton. numbering 29 officers and 
250 non-commissioned officers and men: and the (50th 
Battalion, headquarters at Durham, numbering 21 
officers and 200 non-commissioned officers and men. 
should at once be called out for active service, and 



91 



placed upon frontier duty for the military protection 
of that part of the country. 

2nd. That the Montreal Troop of Cavalry, number 
ing 3 officers and 30 troopers, should be directed to 
proceed at once to Hemmingford, to be employed on 
patrol and outpost duty along the frontier, west of the 
Richelieu. 

3rd. That the Cookshire Troop of Cavalry, number 
ing 3 officers and 45 troopers should be sent by rail 
(the roads at that time being in very bad condition) 
via Sherbrooke, St. Lambert and Stanbridge, and 
from thence march to Frelighsburg. as their head 
quarters, for outpost and patrol duty east of Lake 
Champlain. 

4th. That the above force should be placed under 
the immediate command of the deputy adjutant- 
general commanding, military district No. 5, subject 
to such orders as he might receive from time to time. 

5th. That in the event of the regular troops being 
ordered from Montreal to the front, all the active 
militia corps there should be held in readiness to turn 
out for garrison duty in Montreal, or for such other 
service as might be required. 

6th. That such portions of Col. Rodier s battalion 
of active militia (the 64th) as were then equipped 
and ready, having their headquarters at Beauharnois, 
should, together with the St. Martine Company, be 
placed on active service for the protection of the 
Beauharnois Canal, acting also as supports and posts 
of communication with the Huntingdon line of de 
fence. 

7th. That the militia gunboat "Rescue," then lying 
at Kingston, should be manned, armed, and placed on 
duty at Prescott, for patrol service on the river frontier 
of military district No. 4, and that the gunboat " Prince 
Alfred," then lying at Goderich, should be likewise 
placed on service and ordered to Sarnia for the pro- 
led ion of the St. Clair frontier. 

8th. That the above force should remain on duty 
until the alarm had subsided, and that to ensure 
unity of command, arrangements should be made to 
enable the lieut. -general commanding Her Majesty s 
regular troops to assume the command in chief of the 
militia so called out. 

All these recommendations were duly approved of 
by an Order in Council, dated 9th April, 1870, the 
command in chief of the militia called out being 
placed in the hands of the lieut. -general commanding 
the regular troops. Lieut .-Col. Osborne Smith, 
deputy adjutant-general commanding Military District 
Xo. .") (an officer well acquainted with the roads and 
localities on the frontier of his district, the one then 
most threatened), assumed the immediate command 
of the force in his district, proceeding to post the 



various pickets, and to make the necessary military 
dispositions. 

On the 12th April, for the protection of the St. 
Clair frontier, a force of militia, consisting of a demi- 
battery of field artillery (two guns, with 35 gunners 
and drivers), two companies of the 7th battalion of 
infantry (100 men), was placed on duty at Sarnia, 
and the St. Thomas troop of cavalry, 40 strong, the 
Windsor company of 55 strong, and the Leamington 
independent company of infantry, 55 strong, posted 
at Windsor; the force at Sarnia being under the com 
mand of Lieut. -Col. Shanly, of the London field battery, 
and that at Windsor under Major Walker, of the 7th 
battalion. 

On the llth of April, in consequence of additional 
information received by Government, it was considered 
desirable to call out an additional force of 5,000 men, 
to be taken chiefly from military districts Nos. 5, 6 
and 7. To this call the active militia in those districts 
at once responded with promptitude and alacrity, 
and within forty-eight hours after the receipt of the 
order very many were assembled at, and all on their 
way to, their respective posts. 

The remainder of the force called out at this time 
was concentrated at Montreal and Quebec, except 
that a proportion of the Grand Trunk Brigade was 
judiciously disposed at certain vulnerable points 
along the line of the Grand Trunk Railway, by its 
commandant, Lieut .-Col. C. J. Brydges. Including 
the troops on the St. Clair frontier, a force in all of 
6,000 men was stationed where required, in a very 
short space of time. By returns received from Mont 
real, dated 20th April, upwards of 2,000 of the active 
militia were held there in reserve, ready, if required, 
to support those on duty on the Missisquoi, Hunt 
ingdon and Hemmingford frontiers, and at Quebec 
1,637 officers and men were concentrated. 

On the 21st April, it being considered by that time 
unnecessary to retain the whole of the force then em 
bodied, on duty, orders were transmitted for the 
release from duty of all, with the exception of the 
50th, 51st, 52nd, 60th, and 64th, and the two troops 
of cavalry originally placed on the southern frontier, 
and who remained at their posts until the 29th April, 
when they were also withdrawn. The gunboats 
"Rescue" and "Prince Alfred." however, were still 
kept on their respective stations. 

About the middle of May rumours of Fenian invasion 
from the United States again became current, and 
although at first many disbelieved in the probability 
of such, it soon became evident from the active mili 
tary proceedings adopted by the Fenians in con 
centrating arms and \var material on the frontier 
that mischief was intended. On May 24th, then being 



92 



celebrated as the anniversary of Her .Majesty s birth 
day by the inhabitants and militia in the large cities 
throughout the Dominion, the fact of the presence of 
the invaders at different points oil the frontier becom 
ing actually known, the necessary orders were issued. 
A sufficient number of the active militia was called 
out in the districts threatened, those in districts 5, 6 
and 7 being brigaded with the regular troops under 
the immediate orders of the Lieut. -General commanding 
the British troops, (General Lindsay), who, by virtue 
of an Order in Council, dated 24th .May, again assumed 
the command in chief of the militia forces so called out. 

On exposed points of the-frontier, where no regular 
troops were at hand, the necessary protection was at 
once furnished by the men of the militia. On the St. 
C lair frontier, Sarnia was occupied by 322 infantry 
and a demi-battery of field artillery from London; 
Windsor by 234 infantry, and patrols of cavalry or 
mounted riflemen established in the vicinity of each 
of these places. The co-operation of the militia gun 
boat "Prince Alfred" on this line of frontier, could 
not upon the occasion of this second alarm be ob 
tained, that vessel (which, during the winter months, 
had been altered and converted into an effective fight 
ing craft, armed with four guns, and fitted with iron 
shutters to protect the gunners from rifle fire), being 
employed at the moment in connection with the Red 
River expedition. 

On the Niagara frontier, a force of 1,159 men, in 
cluding the Welland field battery of artillery, with four 
guns, was judiciously posted by Lieutenant-Colonel 
Durie, the deputy adjutant-general of militia, military 
district Xo. 2. 

The defence of the St. Lawrence River frontier from 
Brockville eastwards to Cornwall and Vaudreuil, 
was likewise provided for by the militia alone, with 
great rapidity; a force of 2,230 officers and men with 
a field battery of four guns occupying Cornwall, its 
line of canal, and the towns of Prescott and Brock 
ville. 

As the Dominion militia gunboat "Rescue," whose 
usual station was at Kingston, was also employed with 
the North-West expedition, and not available to 
co-operate in the defence of this portion of the river 
frontier, authority was obtained to hire, at Brockville, 
a small steam vessel, and after placing on board one 
six-pounder gun, with a small detachment of militia 
artillery, she was despatched to Prescott, and sub 
sequently to Cornwall, to be at the disposal of the 
deputy adjutant-general of militia of military district 
No. 4 (who was charged with the command there), 
ready to intercept the landing of any hostile force; 
and if such force had landed, available to act on its 
line of communication and cut off its retreat. 



Four hundred and seventy officers and men were 
likewise called out at Kingston. 

On May 25th. at a place called Eccles Hill, in 
advance of Cook s Corners, on the Missisquoi frontier, 
the first attempt during the year 1870 to invade the 
territory of the Dominion was made, but the invaders 
were instantly met with gallantry and repulsed with 
loss, in the act of crossing the line from the State of 
Vermont, by a small force of the Canadian militia, 
consisting of forty men of the 6()th (or Missisquoi 
Battalion), and 37 farmers, resident in the neighbor 
hood, (the only officers on the ground at the moment 
being Lieut.-Col. Chamberlain, M.P., who commanded 
the 60th Battalion, and Captain Bockus of the same 
corps). The men had been previously judiciously 
posted by Lieut.-Col. Osborne Smith, deputy adjutant 
general, commanding the militia, in military district 
No. 5. 

On the advance of the enemy, apparently about 200 
in number, across the frontier, the leading man was 
immediately shot dead, and several others wounded 
(some of whom were subsequently reported dead). 
and the rest speedily retired in disorder. At 6 p.m.. 
on the same day, Lieut.-Col. Osborne Smith having 
in the meantime arrived with reinforcements, the 
invaders were driven out of certain houses on the 
boundary line, in which they had taken refuge after 
their repulse in the morning, and being already de 
moralized, fled in all directions, seeking shelter in the 
neighboring woods, throwing away their arms and 
ammunition, and having one of their leaders, called 
Donnelly, and styled as general, wounded. They also 
abandoned a small field gun, which they had fired 
several times during the evening, and which sub 
sequently fell into the hands of the Canadians. 

On the 27th May, another body from the State of 
New York, again crossed the border in arms, at Hoi- 
brook s, or Trout River, near Hinchinbrook, on the 
Huntingdon frontier, but were instantly engaged and 
driven back with rapidity across the lines by one 
company of Her Majesty s (59th regiment, then forming 
part of the Quebec garrison, and the 50th (Huntingdon) 
Battalion of active militia. 

Although official recognition of the services of the 
rank and file who participated in the repulse of the 
raiders was decidedly tardy, the service medal not 
being issued until 1900, the British government did 
not lose much time in marking its appreciation of the 
services of the Dominion militia officers who held 
responsible commands on the Quebec frontier during 
the raids. October 20, 1870. a very interesting cere 
mony took place in the large reception-room of the 
St. Lawrence Hall. Montreal, when an investiture of 
the insignia of Companion of the Order of St. Michael 



93 



and St. George was held by His Excellency the Govern 
or-General, Lord Lisgar,the recipients being Lieut.-Cols. 
Osborne .Smith, Fletcher, and McEachran. This was 
the first occas.on on which the decorations of the 
then new order had been offered to any in the British 
colonies. 

Before handing over the insignia of the Order, His 
Excellency delivered a speech in which he remarked 
that the Imperial government had marked the public 
spirit displayed by the Canadians, and before any 
communication from him could reach Her Majesty s 
ministers, they had resolved to confer the order on 
any Canadian militia officer who might be deserving 
of it. 

His Excellency s subsequent remarks are historically 
interesting as indicating the routine followed in pro 
curing these honors for the gentlemen concerned, and 
as specifying the exact services for which the honours 
were conferred. 

His Excellency said: "I was particularly asked 
whether there were any officers in command of 
the colonial forces who were actually engaged in 
the recent repulse of the Fenians on the frontier, whom I 
would recommend on that account for the honor of a 
Companionship of the Order of St. Michael and St. 
George, and I stated that there were gentlemen whose 
names I should be happy to have the opportunity for 
submitting for consideration under the circumstances, 
feeling assured as I did, that the conferring rewards 
upon them would have an excellent effect throughout 
the Dominion, animate and encourage the volunteer 
militia, and be received with the utmost gratitude 
in all quarters as a gracious boon on the part of Her 
Majesty. Accordingly 1 communicated with the 
lieut. -general in command, the Hon. James Lindsay, 
and the Honorable the Minister of Militia, Sir George 
E. Cartier, and in accordance with their views, I re 
commended for the distinction in question the names 
of the gentlemen following: Lieut. -Col. William 
Osborne Smith, deputy adjutant-general of militia, 5th 
district, who commanded on the Missisquoi frontier, 
arranged the defence of Eccles Hill, and provided for 
the defence of that post on the 25th May; was present 
there in command on the afternoon of the same day 
when skirmishing took place. Lieut.-Colonel John 
Fletcher, brigade major of St. John s militia brigade 
district, was in command on the Huntingdon 
frontier previous to the arrival of Her Majesty s 
69th regiment, when Col. Bagot, the officer commanding 
that regiment assumed the command of the field 
force. Col. Fletcher accompanied the troops when 
advancing to attack, and though not in command, 
was present with the advanced guard when it drove 
the Fenians across the border. Lieut. -Col. A. Mc 



Eachran, commanding 50th Huntingdon Borderers, 
commanded on the Huntingdon frontier until the 
arrival of Lieut.-Col. Fletcher; commanded his own 
corps when it drove the Fenians across the border 
at Trout River. Lieut.-Col. Brown Chamberlin, M.A., 
D.C.L., commanding 60th Missisquoi battalion of 
militia, commanded at Eccles Hill, and drove the 
Fenians back when they crossed the frontier, and 
attacked the position named on the forenoon of the 
25th of May. 

"Lord Kimberly, who had in the meantime suc 
ceeded Lord Granville at the Colonial Office, acknow 
ledged the receipt of my despatch, submitting the 
names of the four officers, and strongly recommending 
them for the distinction named. In reply, Lord 
Kimberly stated that he had much pleasure in sub 
mitting the names of the four gentlemen to the Queen 
for the Royal approval, and Her Majesty was graciously 
pleased to direct that the decoration should be offered 
to them." 

It speaks volumes for the efficiency of the newly 
created militia department that, while arrangements 
were being made for the mobilization and equipment 
of the powerful force placed in the field to resist the 
Fenian raiders, plans were progressing concurrently 
for the raising of a force to restore order in the new 
Red River Province, or Manitoba. Of course, the 
department had the great advantage of the cheerful 
assistance of the staff and the departmental organiza 
tions of the British regular troops still remaining in 
Canada, and the imperial magazines were drawn upon 
to a considerable extent. Still the work accomplished 
this year by the new militia department and staff was 
extremely creditable, both in connection with the 
successful resistance of the Fenian raids and with the 
suppression of the half-breed uprising in the Red 
River Valley. 

From 1670 until 1869 the Hudson Bay Company 
asserted jurisdiction over the vast region which com 
prises the provinces of Manitoba, Saskatchewan, 
Alberta and the Northwest Territories. Thanks to 
the intervention of the British Government, and for 
certain considerations, the company, March 9, 1869, 
relinquished its charter and its authority over the 
whole region of Rupert s Land, or the Hudson Bay 
Territory, on the understanding that the territory 
was to be transferred to the Dominion. A delay in 
the issue of the proclamation announcing the transfer 
was productive of much trouble. 

The first attempt to raise a Canadian militia force in 
Manitoba was during the stirring winter of 1869-70. 
Louis Riel and his followers were running things with 
a high hand in Fort Garry or Winnipeg. The Honour 
able William MacDougall, the Lieutenant-Governor 



94 



designate, was making his residence, for the time 
being, across the international frontier at Penihina, 
being forbidden by Kiel s government to enter the 
country. The expected proclamation by the Queen 
announcing the transfer of Rupert s Land to the 
Dominion of Canada had not been received, and even 
loyal Canadians residing in Manitoba doubted whether 
they had any legal right to offer armed assistance to 
the men who had assumed the authority. As a matter 
of fact the Hudson Bay Company remained the only 
constituted authority in the colony. Meantime Kiel 
had armed his men with the weapons left in Fort 
Garry by the last detachment of British troops who 
had been in the country (1). 

On the first of December, Mr. Macdougall, with 
some of those of his party, crossed the frontier and, in 
British territory, issued a proclamation assuming the 
duties and authority of lieutenant-governor in virtue 
of a commission issued to him at Ottawa, and knowing 
the first of December had originally been decided upon 
as the date for the transfer of the country from the 
Hudson Bay Company to the Dominion of Canada. 
As a matter of fact the date for this event had been 
postponed, but, being out of direct communication 
with Ottawa, he could not keep himself informed of 
the course of events. 

The same day as he issued this proclamation. Mr. 
Macdougall, in virtue of the assumed authority con 
ferred by his own commission, issued a commission to 
Lieut. -Col. John Stoughton Dennis, appointing him 
to be his "Lieutenant and Conservator of the Peace, 
in and for the Northwest Territories." Colonel Dennis, 
who had charge of one of the Dominion Government 
survey parties which had started to survey the country 
in anticipation of its regular transfer to the Dominion, 
had been connected with the old Upper Canada militia, 
and had figured prominently in the operations in the 
Niagara Peninsula in connection with the Fenian 
raid of 1866-67. 

The commission issued to Colonel Dennis, after 
setting forth the condition of affairs in the colony and 
explaining his selection, proceeded: "I do hereby 
authorize and empower you as such to raise, organize, 
arm, equip and provision a sufficient force within the 
said Territories and with the said force to attack, 
arrest, disarm or disperse the said armed men, so 
unlawfully assembled, and disturbing the public peace: 
and for that purpose, and with the force aforesaid. 



Artillery and Gtn root was sent inun Kntriand to l ( urt Lrarry via tluosoi 
Bay, beine; relieved in 1848 by a force of .*(> men o!cspatcht-(l by the saint 
route. In 1857, 100 of the Royal Canadian Hifies were ,-^ent round to I- ort 




to assault, fire upon, pull down or break into any 
fort, house, stronghold or other place in which said 
armed men may be found: and I hereby authorize you, 
as such Lieutenant and Conservator of the Peace, to 
hire, purchase, impress and take all necessary clothing, 
arms, ammunition and supplies, and all cattle, horses, 
wagons, sleighs or other vehicles which may be re 
quired for the use of the force to be raised as aforesaid; 
and I further authorize you to appoint as many officers 
and deputies under you, and to give them such orders 
and instructions from time to time, as may be found 
necessary," etc., etc. 

This was surely a comprehensive enough commission, 
but unfortunately, apart altogether from its doubtful 
authority, the means for giving it effect were decidedly 
meagre, Kiel having the chief supply of arms and 
a in munition in the country under his hands. 

Colonel Dennis lost no time in proceeding to give 
effect to his orders. On December 1st, he was at 
Winnipeg, and on the 2nd he reached the Stone Fort, 
or Lower Fort Garry, 4 a Hudson Bay post twenty 
miles down the river towards Lake Winnipeg. By 
eight o clock that evening there were 70 young men 
assembled in a large room in an upper part of one of 
the buildings of the fort, and they were given an 
hour s drill. A guard for the fort volunteered for the 
night from those present, which was increased by a 
reinforcement from Chief Prince s band of christianized 
Indians of some 70 to 100 men. Colonel Dennis sent 
all of the Indians home except the chief and 50 men, 
whom he retained to serve as a permanent guard for 
the fort, considering it safer to avail himself of their 
services in that way rather than to have them exposed 
to any actual fighting. 

Reporting that night to Mr. Macdougall. Col. Dennis 
explained that he proposed to organize a full battalion 
of infantry throughout the colony, he to have the 
immediate command, with Major C. W. Boulton. a 
former officer of H.M. 100th Regiment, who was one 
of the staff of his surveying party, as second in com 
mand. Dennis also reported having called in Messrs. 
Hart. C.H., and Webb, C.K., with their surveying 
parties, to assist in organizing the forces, most of the 
surveyors having been through the military schools 
which had been conducted by the imperial troops, 
when quartered in the older provinces. The 
colonel expected to have a military school 
man to command each one of the companies. 
The other, and more subordinate officers, he intended 
to let the men select from among themselves. 

While Colonel Dennis requisitioned and purchased 
arms, supplies and ammunition, he commissioned 
.Major Houlton to visit the various parishes, supervise 
the enrolling of the companies, appoint the officers 



and drill them. Then 1 was a very general response 
to the call. 

This force had but a chequered and brief career, 
the average number a days service performed by 
those enrolled being four. 

The activity of Colonel Dennis, Major Boulton and 
their officers caused much stir throughout the country, 
and particularly in Fort Garry and Winnipeg. Dennis 
was anxious to avoid a collision until he had a suffi 
ciently large and well-formed force in hand to guarantee 
complete success, and meantime he urged caution upon 
his subordinates. But so much drilling and organizing 
in a slim community could not go on unnoticed. Kiel 
called in his sympathizers, and there was an unexpectedly 
generous response. Nothing succeeds like success, 
and, while this encouraged the French half-breeds and 
other disaffected, it had an opposite effect on the 
timorous and indifferent. Among the white popula 
tion were many loyal British subjects who rightly 
doubted the legality of the position of either Mr. 
Macdongall or Colonel Dennis. While matters were 
in this condition things came to a crisis in Winnipeg. 

Dr. Schultz (afterwards Sir John) was the leading 
spirit in the colony in opposition to the Kiel movement, 
and in his warehouse was stored a large quantity of 
Canadian government provisions brought from the 
east to supply the various survey parties and the 
workmen on the government roads. Kiel had mani 
fested a disposition to take possession of these valuable 
stores, while to protect them the enrolled volunteers 
and others had assembled and established themselves 
in the warehouse and other buildings in the vicinity. 
Saturday, December 4th, Major Boulton arrived, and, 
taking command, told the men off into guards, etc. 
The same night orders arrived from Lieut .-Col. Dennis 
to abandon the premises and stores and withdraw to 
the Scotch church, where they were to serve as an 
outpost and rendezvous for the loyal in case of any 
demonstration being made by Riel s party on the 
lower settlement. Dennis feared that the presence 
of the force on Dr. Schultz s premises, in such close 
proximity to Kiel s headquarters, would provoke a 
collision. The next day Boulton proceeded to the 
Stone Fort to consult with Dennis, the latter per 
sisting in his orders for the abandonment of the posi 
tion in Winnipeg. On the evening of the 6th, Dennis 
reiterated his orders to the "enrolled Canadians" in 
Winnipeg to leave the town and establish themselves 
at Kildonan school-house. How Dr. Schultz and his 
men persisted in remaining, how they were surrounded, 
surrendered and were made prisoners is a matter of 
Canadian history. 

Tuesday, December 7th, Colonel Dennis received 
from Mr. Macdougall a proclamation directing the 



former officials of the colony to continue to discharge 
their several duties as previous to the 1st instant. 
and by Thursday, 9th, having become convinced that 
it was useless longer to entertain any expectation of 
being enabled to get a reliable force with which to put 
down the party in arms, Dennis issued a proclamation 
which, after reciting the expressed wish of the "French 
party" to confer with Mr. Macdougull, went on to 
say: "Under the belief that the French party are 
sincere in their desire for peace, and feeling that to 
abandon for the present the call on the loyal to arms, 
would, in view of such communications, relieve the 
situation from much embarrassment and so contribute 
to bring about peace and save the country from what 
will otherwise end in universal ruin and devastation, 
I now call and order the loyal party in the Northwest 
Territories to cease from further action under the 
appeal to arms made by me; and I call on the French 
party to satisfy the people of their sincerity in wishing 
for a peaceable ending of all these troubles by sending 
a deputation to the lieutenant-governor at Pembina, 
without unnecessary delay." 

That was only forty-five years ago, and in these days 
of direct rail, telegraphic and telephonic communica 
tion, it is almost hard to believe that it was December 
18th before Mr. Macdougall s report of his doings in 
the first of that month reached Ottawa. When the 
report reached the capital, as may be supposed, it 
created great consternation, for the transfer of authority 
had been postponed until the Hudson Bay Company 
was prepared to transfer not only its own rights, but 
tin 1 territory itself, to Her Majesty. 

December 4th, Hon. Joseph Howe, Secretary of State, 
wrote Mr. Macdougall in part: "As it would appear 
from these documents that you have used the Queen s 
name without her authority attributed to Her 
Majesty acts which she has not yet performed and 
organized an armed force within the territory of the 
Hudson-Bay Company, without warrant or instruc 
tions, 1 am commanded to assure you that the grave 
occurrences which you report have occasioned here 
great anxiety. The exertion of military force against 
the misguided people now in arms, even under the 
sanction of law, was not to be hastily risked, con 
sidering the fearful consequences which might ensue 
were the Indians, many of them but recently in con 
tact with the white inhabitants of the neighboring 
states, drawn into the conflict. But as the organiza 
tion and use of such a force by you was, under the 
circumstances, entirely illegal, the governor-general 
and council cannot disguise from you the weight of 
responsibility you have incurred." 

In short, the first militia enrolled in what is now 
the Province of Manitoba, under Canadian authority, 



was raised in an absolutely irregular way and con 
trary to the laws and usages of Canada, and more than 
that, raised, armed anil drilled before the Canadian 
government had the least authority in the colony. 

There was no doubt as to the legal status or the 
practical efficiency of the next Canadian militia units 
seen in the Red River Valley, the two battalions of 
Canadian militia which formed part of Colonel Garnet 
Wolseley s historic expedition of 1870. 

These two battalions were raised under the Dominion 
Militia Act. 31 Vic.. Chap. 40, and being "Rifles," 
wore a uniform in all essential respects similar to that of 
the 60th Royal Rifles, the first battalion of which 
corps formed part of the expedition. 

Karly in the spring of 1870. it was agreed by the 
Dominion government to raise and despatch a mili 
tary contingent, in conjunction with a portion of 
HIM- Majesty s regular troops, to the Fort Garry. In 
accordance with instructions received, Colonel Robert 
son Ross, the adjutant-general of militia, submitted a 
scheme of organization for the Dominion force required 
(750 men), which was duly approved of by an Or- 
der-in-Council, dated 16th April, 1870, and adopted. 

In that report it was recommended that the Do 
minion contingent should consist of two battalions of 
riflemen, to be designated respectively the 1st or 
Ontario Battalion of Rifles and the 2nd or Quebec 
Battalion, each corps to consist of seven companies. 
and each company of fifty non-commissioned officers 
and men, having one captain, one lieutenant and one 
ensign to each company. The staff of each battalion 
consisted of one lieut. -colonel, one major, one adjutant 
with rank of captain, one paymaster, one quarter 
master-sergeant, one hospital sergeant, one surgeon, 
one sergeant-major, one armoury sergeant and one 
paymaster s clerk, thus making the strength of each 
battalion 375. including officers, staff sergeants, non 
commissioned officers and men; and it was further 
recommended that two chaplains should be appointed 
to accompany this force, one from the Church of 
England, the other from the Church of Rome. 

It was recommended that the officers and men for 
these battalions should be allowed to volunteer from 
existing corps of active militia, if possible drawn in 
equal proportions, according to the strength of the 
active militia in the seven military districts forming 
the Provinces of Quebec and Ontario; that the rate of 
pay and allowances for the officers should be the same 
as laid down in paragraph 286 in the "Rules and 
Regulations for the Active Militia." with free rations 
when on the march or encamped, and the pay of the 
non-commissioned officers and men as follows: 
Sergeant-major, $20 per month; quartermaster-ser 
geant. $20 per month; hospital sergeant, $18 per 



month: paymaster s clerk, $18 per month; armour 
sergeant, SIN per month, color sergeant, $18 ])er month; 
sergeants, $15 per month: corporals and buglers. Slo 
per month: privates, $12 per month. Each non 
commissioned officer and man receiving, in addition to 
his pay, free rations and lodgings. 

It was further recommended that the men so selected 
should be between the ages of eighteen and forty-five 
years, of good character, and as the service upon 
which they were about to be employed required more 
than ordinary strength and power of endurance, a 
strict medical examination was necessary; the men 
being required, moreover, to sign a service roll and be 
regularly attested before a magistrate to serve for one 
year at least, and one more in addition if required 
by government. 

The force was mobilized at Toronto, and left there 
May 20th. 1870, for Fort Garry, 1,280 miles distant, 
via the lakes, Prince Arthur s Landing (Port Arthur), 
the Kaministiqua River and the chain of rivers and 
lakes so frequently used by the old fur traders. 

The detail was as follows: Seven companies of the 
1st Battalion, 6()th Rifles. 350 men: Royal Artillery. 20 
men, 4 seven-pounders ; Royal Engineers, 20; Depart 
mental Corps Details, 10; 1st Ontario Battalion 
(Rifles), Active Militia. 350; 2nd Quebec Battalion 
(Rifles), 350; Voyageurs, 330. 

The expedition reached Fort Garry without mishap 
on August 24. 

October 5th. 1S70, the regular troops returned from 
Fort Garry, the militia battalions remaining as a 
garrison until near the expiration of their term of 
enlistment. A couple of small companies, one from 
each battalion, were then re-enlisted for service in the 
province, and left at Fort Garry under command of 
Major Irvine. 

During 1870 an important step forward was taken in 
the training of the active force, by the introduction, 
for the first time, at the annual drill, of a regular 
system of target practice by companies in succession, 
under their own officers, on the system, as far as cir 
cumstances would admit, then observed in the regular 
army, each man firing, under supervision, five rounds 
at 200, five at 400, and five at 600 yards. 15 rounds 
per man in all; and with view to the encouragement of 
this most important part of military training, a certain 
number of prizes (to be given to those who obtained, 
at the annual drill, the highest shooting figures of 
merit), were given by government. The amounts of 
these prizes, with other details were published in 
General Orders, dated 26thf August . 1X70. 

When the provinces of Xew Brunswick and Xova 
Scotia, became part of the Dominion Confederation, 
schools of militarv instruction in connection with the 



97 



regular army were established at St. John, N.B., and 
Halifax, N.S., on the 20th January and 1st of February, 
1869, respectively. In Nova Scotia the attendance 
during the year 1870 was moderately fair, eight first, 
and eighty second class certificates having been granted 
by the commandant. At St. John, N.B., sixty cadets 
were granted certificates, three of whom received first 
class certificates, with very high recommendations from 
Colonel Hawley, 4th Battalion, 60th Rifles, the com 
mandant. 

During 1870 the question of uniforms for the militia 
was carefully gone into, and Lieut .-Colonel Walker 
Powell, then deputy adjutant-general of militia at 
headquarters, was despatched to England for an ex 
amination, in all its details, of the Royal Army Clothing 
Factory at Pimlico, from which depot he obtained 
patterns of cloth and clothing, a list of the prices at 
which materials were being supplied to the Imperial 
government, and other information relating to the 
several descriptions of army clothing then in use in 
England, all of which proved of much value in making 
decisions for the supply of articles required for Canada, 
and enabled him to form an opinion for future re 
ference, as to whether cloth and clothing of the des 
criptions required for the militia could be satisfactorily 
manufactured in Canada, either by contract, or 
directly by material being procured and made up 
under supervision of the government, and according 
to the system then prevailing at Pimlico. 

It may be well to state that when the description 
of clothing to be worn by the active militia of Canada 
was adopted, the consideration that uniformity with 
t hat worn by regiments of Her Majesty s regular army 
was important, in view of the fact that many of these 
regiments of Her Majesty s regular army were stationed 
in the country, and that they would, in cases of in 
vasion, or other necessity, act in concert with the 
militia, and thus, while giving confidence to the latter, 
the similarity in colour of clothing would, in cases of 
attack by an enemy, prevent any undue advantage 
being taken as against the militia. The colours then 
adopted were scarlet, with blue facings, for infantry; 
rifle green, with scarlet facings, for rifles; blue, with 
scarlet facings, for artillery; and, blue with buff facings, 
for cavalry, and as similar cloth and these colours 
could not at the time be satisfactorily manufactured 
in Canada, it was found that the manufacture of 
army cloth and army clothing were special branches, 
and as cloth such as that required was only made in 
England, under contracts for delivery, as required 
from time to time, a considerable saving was effected 
by procuring the supplies for the militia from manu 
facturers who were under contract with the Imperial 
government, while at the same time the government 



of Canada had the advantage accruing from the ex 
perience of the Royal Army Clothing Factory in 
decisions as to durability of materials taken into wear 
by the army from year to year. (Col. Powell s Report). 

An amendment to the Militia Act (34 Victoria, 
Chapter xvii) was passed during 1871, and received 
the assent April 14. This provided that the Militia 
Act should apply to Manitoba at once, and to British 
Columbia whenever that colony should become part 
of the Dominion of Canada. Each province was to 
be created a separate military district, and the total 
strength of the active militia was increased from 
40,000 to 45,000 men. 

At the time the Pacific Province entered Confed 
eration the militia organization of British Columbia 
was very simple and crude. No. 117 of the Revised 
Statutes of 1871 authorized the enrollment of 
volunteer corps, the colony to make a grant of $500 
for each corps of not less than 30 members raised, 
towards the cost of establishment, and to supply the 
arms. Capitation grants of five dollars to each 
effective volunteer and of ten dollars to each 
"marksman" qualified in the annual class firing was 
provided for. 

During the year 1871, many measures were intro 
duced, calculated to increase the efficiency of the 
active militia, and the military organization of the 
Dominion. Among the most prominent of the 
measures adopted, may be mentioned: 

1st. The inauguration of a uniform and systematic 
mode of carrying out the annual drill of the active 
militia in "camps of exercise," more in accordance 
with the requirements of modern warfare; the great 
majority of the troops assembled at these camps being 
concentrated with rapidity, paid and supplied as if on 
actual service, and placed in every district under the 
command of those officers appointed for the purpose. 

2nd. Many batteries of garrison artillery, (hitherto 
practised mostly in infantry exercises), at the time of 
the annual training went through a short course of 
instruction in "gun drill" at various forts and batteries, 
firing creditably at target practice the annual allowance 
of shot and shell. The better inspection, and instruc 
tion moreover of both field and garrison batteries, 
was effected by, or under the orders of the inspector of 
artillery and warlike stores. 

3rd. The establishment of two schools of artillery, 
one at Kingston, the other at Quebec, under the com 
mand of specially trained officers of the Royal Artillery, 
affording means for the complete training in artillery 
exercises, of such officers and men of artillery corps, 
as were attached thereto. 

4th. The performance, by nearly the whole of the 
infantry, at the annual training, of a prescribed course 



of target practice, with the Snider rifle, under revised 
regulations, 584 government money prizes, with appro 
priate badges, being awarded to the successful coin- 
competitors. 

During the year the second periodical enrolment of 
the reserve militia was made, shewing a large in 
crease in the number of men available for the defence 
of the country. 

A military expedition to Manitoba, to assist Her 
Majesty s subjects resident in that province, in re 
pelling Fenian invasion, was undertaken this year. 

October 12, the adjutant-general received instruc 
tions by an Order-in-Council to organize and des 
patch to Fort Garry, via the Dawson route, a military 
expedition consisting of 275 officers and men. The 
200 riflemen who formed part of the expedition were 
recruited half in Quebec, half in Ontario, the command 
being held by Lieut. -Col. Thomas Scott. Owing to 
the late season, hardships greater even than those met 
by Wolseley s expedition the year previous had to be 
surmounted, but November 18, three weeks from 
the issuing of orders to mobilize the force, it arrived 
safely at its destination. 

Meanwhile the Fenians, under General O Neil, who 
had been identified with the eastern raids in 1866 and 
1870, crossed the Manitoba frontier near Fort Pem- 
bina and seized a Hudson Bay post. Major Irvine, 
with a force of some 200 men, including the service 
companies and some local militia, marched towards 
the threatened point, but a force of the 20th U. S. In 
fantry, under Lt.-Col. Wheaton, followed the Fenians 
across the lines, and, taking the leaders prisoners, 
conveyed thembacktoUnited States territory. October 
16, 1871, Manitoba was converted into military dis 
trict No. 10, and placed under command of Lieut.-Col. 
W. Osborne Smith. The same date British Columbia 
was constituted military district No. 11. 

October 20, 1871, orders were issued providing for 
the organization of "A" and "B" Batteries, the 
nucleus of the present permanent force. They were 
first considered rather as schools of artillery than as 
service units. In November, the 1st battalion of 
the 60th Royal Rifles, Lieut.-Col. Fielden, the last 
Imperial regular corps in garrison at Quebec, marched 
out of the Citadel and embarked on a transport, "B" Bat 
tery taking charge of the Citadel. Apart from the gar 
rison of Halifax, no British regulars remained in Canada. 

The first Canadian rifle team to participate in the 
matches of the National Rifle Association went to 
Wimbledon in 1872, being sent by the Militia De 
partment. The following year the D. R. A. assumed 
the responsibility of selecting and despatching the 
team. 



In 1872, Colonel Robertson Ross made a reconnais 
sance of the great Northwest to report upon the best 
means of providing for the opening up of that country, 
and May 3, 1873, Sir John A. Macdonald introduced 
in parliament a bill which, as the Act 36 Victoria, 
Chapter 35, provided for the organization of the 
Royal Northwest Mounted Police. This force has 
always been quite distinct from the active militia, 
but its connection with the national defensive force 
has been very intimate. During its first mobilization 
it was placed temporarily under command of the 
D.A.G. in Manitoba, but Lieut.-Col. G. A, French, 
(now Major-General Sir George French, R.A.), com 
manding "A" Battery and school of artillery, was the first 
permanent commissioner. In the autumn of 1873, 
three troops or divisions were organized from drafts 
from the east, Winnipeg being the point of mobiliza 
tion. During the summer of 1874, three new divisions 
were mobilized at Toronto and despatched to Manitoba, 
unarmed, via Chicago and St. Paul. 

The Act, 36 Vic., Chap. 46, passed in 1873, amended 
the Militia Act to provide that magistrates could call 
out the militia in anticipation of riots without waiting 
for rioting to occur. 

November 6, 1873, the Hon. Alex. Mackenzie suc 
ceeded as Prime Minister to Sir John A. Macdonald. 

May 5, 1874, the Hon. Wm. Ross, minister of militia, 
introduced into the House of Commons a bill pro 
viding for the establishment of a military college 
"after the model of the one at West Point in the 
United States." The resolutions were adopted with 
out amendment, a bill presented and passed, and 
finally assented to May 26, as the Act 37 Victoria, 
Chapter 36. June, 1876, the Royal Military College 
at Kingston opened with a class of eighteen cadets. 

By the Act 37 Victoria, Chapter 36, passed at the 
same session, the Militia Act was extended to Prince 
Kdward Island, then just admitted to Confederation. 

Prince Edward Island has had a legally established 
militia since 1780, an old colonial statute 20 George 
III, Chap. 3, providing that all male persons between 
16 and 60 years should bear arms. The Act 3 Wil 
liam IV, Chap. 30, divided the militia into two 
classes, all above 45 years of age to form the second 
class or reserve. A salaried Inspector was provided 
for and regimental, battalion and company districts 
created, the various units to be called out once a 
year. The Act of Victoria, Chap. 6, provided for the 
establishment of volunteer companies in connection 
with the militia battalions to be trained 20 days 
each year. An amending act, 14 Victoria, Chap. 6, 
provided that the Militia would only be called out 
for training or muster except in cases of emer 
gency. 24 Victoria, Chap. II, provided for the enroll- 



99 




GENERAL OFFICERS COMMANDING THE MILITIA OF CANADA 

1. Lieut-General Sir Edward Selby-Smyth, April 20th, 1875 to May 31st, 1880. 2. Major-General Richard George Amherst Luard, July 
1st, 1880 to April :inth, 1884. 3. Lieut-General Sir Frederick D. Middleton, C.B., K.C.M.G., July l 2tli, 188-1 to June 30th, 1890. 
4. Major-General Ivor John Caradoc Herbert, C.B., C.M.G., November -20th, 18(10. ,>. Major-General William Julius Gascoiipir, 
Septi-inlu-r lllth, IS1I5 to Juiu- 3nth, 18!ts. li. Major-General E. T. H. Hutton, C.B., A.D.C., August llth, 189S to Feb. llth, 18!Ml. 
7. Major-G.-n.-ral I In- Rl. Hon. the- Earl of Dundonald, C.V.O., C.B., July -20th, 19(1-2 to June l">tli, 1004. 8. Major-General R. H. 

O Grady Haly, C.H., D.S.O., July 19th, 10IK1 to July 19, MMI 2. 

Hill 



ment of volunteer corps, to be mustered 16 times 
each year. A new Act, 29 Victoria, Chap. 2, divided 
the Island Militia into Active and Sedentary, the lat 
ter comprising the men between the years of 45 and 
60. The Active Militia consisted of "Volunteer 
Militia" and "Regular Militia," who wore to drill 
not more than 10 days a year. A grant of one 
pound sterling a year was granted to each uniformed 
volunteer militiaman. Under this act schools of mil 
itary instruction were established. 

April 8, 1S75, assent was given to the Act 38 Victoria. 
Chapter S. which provided: "There shall be ap 
pointed to command an officer holding the rank of 
colonel or superior thereto in Her Majesty s regular 
army, charged with the military command and dis 
cipline of the militia. He will have the rank of major- 
general in the militia." 

Provision was also made for an adjutant-general 
at headquarters. 

In accordance with this Act, Major-General Edward 
Selby-Smyth, who since October 1. 1874. had held the 
appointment of adjutant-general, was appointed to 
the command; Colonel Walker Powell, April 21, being 
appointed adjutant-general. 

April 28, 1877, the Militia Act was amended by 40 
Victoria, Chapter 40, which more clearly defined the 
responsibility of municipalities in regard to the pay 
of troops on service in aid of the civil power. 

This same year the "Provisional Force" maintained 
in Manitoba ever since 1870 was disbanded. This 
force which performed much hard service, on one 
occasion, in 1874, marching 333 miles across the 
prairie to Fort Qu Appelle, in 1872 consisted of a 
demi-battery of artillery and a battalion of rifles 
(300 officers and men). In 1873 the dismounted 
force was transformed from rifles into red-coated 
infantry, a concession to the respect and veneration 
held by the Indians for the British troops their fore 
fathers had fought along with in the olden days. 

April 29, 1880, another amendment to the Militia 
Act (43 Victoria, Chap. 2) became law. providing 
that the militia might be called out and paid for duty 
at the opening and closing of parliament, for attend 
ance upon the governor-general, and for guarding 
armouries. 

Another Act (45 Victoria. Chapter 10) assented to 
May 17. 18S2, provided that the enrollment of the 
active militia should be considered as an embodiment 
in the meaning of the Militia Act. The same year the 
government cartridge factory was established at 
Quebec. 

In July. 1SS2. Sir John A. Macdonald again acceded 
to power, and in 1SS3, the Hon. A. P. (late Sir A. P.) 
Caron . the new minister of militia, introduced a new 



bill consolidating all the existing Acts affecting the 
militia, which (May 17) became law as 46 Victoria, 
Chapter 11. 

An order of August 10, 1883, provided for the estab 
lishment of "C" battery, Canadian Artillery, at Vic 
toria,, B.C., but it was 1887 before the battery was 
actually organized, although special courses of in 
struction at the new artillery school connected with it 
were held in 1884 and 1886. In 1883, the three per 
manent batteries were brigaded to form "The Regi 
ment of Canadian Artillery under command of the 
inspector of artillery. 

General orders of Dec. 21, 1883, provided for the 
organization of the first troop of permanent cavalry 
and the first three companies of permanent infantry, 
and the establishment of a military school in con 
nection with each unit. The original cavalry troop 
(hussars) was raised at Quebec, and first known as 
"The Cavalry School Corps," the infantry companies, 
"The Infantry School Corps, "being raised as follows: 
"A" Company at Frederick)!!, N.B., "B"at St. John s. 
Que., and "C" at Toronto. 

June, 1884, the care of all military buildings and 
fortifications was transferred from the public works 
to the militia department, and an "Engineer Branch" 
established. 

During the Soudan campaign of 1884-85 the active 
militia was represented in the field by Major (now 
Colonel) James Frederick Wilson of "A" Battery, 
R.C.A.,and Major P. O. J. Hebert, "B." Battery, at 
tached with authority to the Royal Artillery. Major 
Hebert succumbed to the campaign. 

The Canadian Voyageurs (378 men) raised for this 
campaign by the imperial government through the 
governor-general and his personal staff, was commanded 
by Lieut .-Col. F. C. Denison, Governor-General s 
Body Guard, the other officers all being borrowed 
from the active militia as follows: Medical Officer, 
Surgeon-Major J. L. H. Neilson, "B" Battery; Quarter 
master and Paymaster, Lieut .-Col. J. H. Kennedy, 
90th Winnipeg Rifles; Captains Mackay, 7th Fusiliers. 
London, and F. Aumond, Governor-General s Foot 
Guards. Ottawa, commanding companies. 

In 1885 occurred the Northwest Rebellion, which 
forever set at rest all question as to the practical 
military utility of the active militia. March 27, word 
was received of the action between the rebels and 
Major Crozier s force of mounted police and Prince 
Albert volunteers (enlisted as special constables of the 
N.W.M.P.) at Duck Lake, and orders were at once 
issued for the calling out of several corps of the active 
militia, including "A" and "B" Batteries and "C" 
Company of the Infantry School Corps. The situation 
was complicated on account of the non-completion 
101 



of the Canadian Pacific Railway, the troops having 
to march in frightfully cold weather across several un 
completed gaps through the bleak, rocky desert north 
of Lake Superior. The campaign was prolific of many 
long, hard marches, a great deal of exposure and some 
very awkward fighting, but the militia and the Mounted 
Police who were on duty with them, acquitted them 
selves well. 

During the campaign 251 officers, 3,042 non-com- 
missioned officers and men, 141 horses and 6 guns were 
sent from Nova Scotia, Quebec and Ontario to the 
Northwest. In addition, there were on active service 
100 officers, 1,563 rank and file, 445 horses and 2 guns 
from Manitoba and the North-West Territories, ex 
clusive of the Mounted Police, (500 officers and men 
with one gun, who were placed during the campaign 
under the general officer commanding the militia, 
Major-General Sir Fred.Middleton, C.B.). So that the 
total force on service included 5,456 officers and men, 
586 horses and 9 guns, including two machine guns 
purchased during the campaign. 

Notwithstanding the vastness of the field of opera 
tions, the fighting capacity of the Indians and Half- 
Breeds, and the remoteness of the front from the base, 
the rebellion was completely suppressed and all the 
leaders killed or made prisoners by July 2. 

The casualty lists of the actions in which the active 
militia participated were as follows: Fish Creek 
(April 24) 10 killed, 40 wounded; Cut Kuife Hill (May 
2) Skilled, 14 wounded; Batoche (May 9, 10, 11 and 12) 
8 killed, 46 wounded; Frenchman s Butte (May 28), 3 
wounded. 

The campaign revealed many glaring defects. The 
equipment was proved to be defective, and the field 
organization about as bad as it could be. Three com 
plete staffs had to be extemporized in the field and a 
fourth at the base. Systems of transport and supply 
had to be organized and many most essential articles 
of equipment purchased. The waste of time and mon 
ey was very extensive. 

During the latter part of 1885, the School of Mounted 
Infantry at Winnipeg, later changed to Dragoons, and 
now the Royal Canadian Mounted Rifles, was organ 
ized under an order dated September 18. 

During 1887-88, "D" company of the Infantry 
School Corps was raised at London, Out., and in the 
latter year the new School of Infantry connected there 
with organized. The total strength of the permanent 
corps was limited to 1,000 men. 

In 1886, there was a consolidation of the Dominion 
Statutes, and the Militia Act of 1883, with some minor 
amendments incorporated, was drafted as a new Act 
(49 Victoria, Chapter 41, "An Act respecting the 



Militia and Defence of Canada). This Act, with a 
couple of amendments (which will be presently re 
ferred to) remained in force until the passage of the 
Act at present governing the force, 4 Edward VI I. 
Chapter 23. 

The present government, after the defeat of the 
former Conservative administration at the polls, came 
into power, July 13, 1896, the Honourable Dr. F. W. 
Borden, (now Sir Frederick Borden, K.C.M.G.), a 
veteran officer of the Nova Scotia Militia, being awarded 
the portfolio of Minister of Militia. 

The question of a reorganization of the staff was 
soon afterwards taken up. 

In July, 1897, two old district staff officers wore 
transferred to the Infantry Reserve of officers, " their 
services being no longer required," while three old 
district officers commanding were retired with gra 
tuities. September the same year the appointments 
of seven district paymasters and superintendents of 
stores were cancelled, and three district staff officers 
were permitted to retire retaining rank. 

In December, 1897, Lieut. -Colonel D. A. Mac- 
donald was appointed chief superintendent of stores, 
and in January, 1898, the position of deputy-assistant 
adjutant-general at headquarters was abolished. 

At the session of 1898 a bill was passed, assented 
to June 13, as 61 Victoria, Chapter 19, providing that 
in addition to the salary of the general officer com 
manding the militia, ($4,000 per annum), there might 
be paid to that officer $2,000 per annum in lieu of 
allowances. 

February 15, 1898, Major R. Cartwright, R. R.C.I., 
was appointed assistant adjutant-general at head 
quarters, and Surgeon Lieut.-Col. J. L. H. Neilson, 
R.C.A., director-general of medical staff. 

In January, 1899, the following appeared in general 
orders: "As a preliminary step towards the formation 
of a Canadian general staff, arrangements have been 
made for a course of instruction in staff duties to take 
place under the direction of the commandant, Royal 
Military College, Kingston, commencing 1st February 
next and terminating on or about 31st May following. 

General Order of 13th February, 1899, announced 
that " In order to meet an urgent want and to con 
form to the requirements of the military service in the 
Dominion, orders will be issued daily from head 
quarters on and after Wednesday, February, 1, 1899, 
Sundays and public holidays excepted. Copies of 
the daily orders will be printed and issued bi-weekly, 
as follows: One for each regiment of cavalry and 
artillery, battery of artillery, battalion of infantry, 
and other independent units." 

Orders of June, 1899, provided for the organization 
of "The Canadian Militia Army Medical Department" 



102 



including -Militia Array Medical Staff Service and 
Regimental Medical Service. To this date there had 
been no organized medical service except a provisional 
one organized during the Northwest Rebellion. Each 
unit was allowed a surgeon, and the larger ones assistant 
surgeons, and many corps maintained bearer sections. 

In 1797, a strong detachment of the active militia, 
under command of Colonel Lord Aylmer. adjutant- 
general, was sent to London to assist in the official 
celebration of the Diamond Jubilee of Queen Victoria. 

The South African war, on account of the par 
ticipation therein of the Canadian contingents, the 
military spirit aroused in the Dominion, and the 
recognition of the colonial militia militias as part and 
parcel of the armed forces of the empire, marks an 
epoch in the history of the militia. Space forbids any 
reference to the distinguished services rendered by 
the Canadian militiamen during the trying cam 
paigns in the Free State and Transvaal. 

The strength of the various Canadian contingents 
despatched to South Africa with the dates of their sail 
ing, were as follows: 2nd (Special Service) Battalion of 
the Royal Regiment of Canadian Infantry. 1,039 officers 
and men, October 30, 1899; 1st Battalion Canadian 
Mounted Rifles (from August 1, 1900, designated the 
Royal Canadian Dragoons), 375 officers and men, 
February 21st, 1900; 2nd Battalion Canadian Mounted 
Rifles (subsequently designated "The Canadian 
Mounted Rifles"), 275 officers and men, January 27. 
1900; Brigade Division of Royal Canadian Artillery. 
539 officers and men, January and February. 1900; 
draft to replace casualties in the 2nd Battalion R. R.C.I., 
103 officers and men, March 16, 1900; Strathcona s 
Horse, 548 officers and men, March 16, 1900; draft to 
reinforce Strathcona s Horse, 51 officers and men, 
May 1, 1900; South African Constabulary, March 
29, 1901, 1,200 officers and men; 2nd Regiment 
Canadian Mounted Rifles, 901 officers and men, January 
28th, 1902; No. 10 Field Hospital Company, 62 officers 



and men, January, 1902; 3rd, 4th, 5th and 6th Regi 
ments Canadian Mounted Rifles, 539 officers and men 
each, May 8th to 23rd, 1902. This makes a grand 
total of 7,349 officers and men. 

In addition, the Dominion Government raised and 
equipped the 3rd (Special Service) Battalion of the 
Royal Regiment of Canadian Infantry, which per 
formed garrison duty at Halifax, N.S., thus relieving 
the service in the field the regular regiment at the time 
in garrison. 

The casualties among the Canadian contingents in 
South Africa were as follows : Killed or died of 
wounds, 65; died from disease or accidentally killed, 
79; wounded, 197; missing, 2. On the return of the 
various contingents, no less than 310 officers and men 
remained in South Africa, with permission to join vari 
ous military bodies. 

In 1900, an Act of soms importance affecting the 
militia: "63-64 Victoria, Chapter 18: An Act to Am 
end the Militia Act was passed. 

This Act amended Section 41 of the Act which 
originally provided for deputy adjutants-general being 
appointed to command districts. The amendment left 
the designation or name of office of district command 
ing officers in the hands of the government. 

Section 45 was also amended, providing for the 
granting of the honorary rank of colonel to officers 
placed upon the retired list. Previously the honorary 
rank of lieutenant-colonel was the highest which could 
be granted under such circumstances. 

Section 47 was also amended to provide that when 
ever the militia is called out for active service in the 
field, officers of rank superior to that of colonel, but not 
higher in any case than that of major-general, may be 
appointed. 

Even before the passing of this Act. the officers 
commanding districts had been designated as "Dis 
trict Officers Commanding," instead of deputy ad 
jutants-general. 






CHAPTER IX 

RECENT DEVELOPMENTS 



THK CANADIAN MILITIA BECOMES AX KFFKCTIVK ARMY, WITH ITS O\vx STAFF, DEPARTMENTAL OROAX- 

IZATIONS AND ARSENALS. CANADA Assr.MKS THK AVlfOLE H KS I>( (XSIISILITV OF KEKPl.XfJ THE UNION 

JACK FLYIXC ix NORTH AMERICA. DEPARTURE OF THE LAST BRITISH REGULARS. 



THE beginning of the twentieth century found the 
reorganization of the militia staff in full pro 
gress, and during the year 1901 there were 
several new appointments at headquarters created. 

February 6, Lieut. -Col. V. B. Rivers, R.C.A., was 
appointed intelligence officer at headquarters, attached 
to the quartermaster-general s department. 

Colonel W. H. Foster, R.K., quartermaster-general, 
having accepted employment in the intelligence depart 
ment at the War Office, vacated his appointment 
April .SO, and in May, Col. W. H. Cotton, A.A.G. for 
artillery, was appointed to the vacancy. 

The same month Lieut.-Col. R. Cartwright, A.A.G., 
was appointed inspector of musketry, with the status 
of an assistant adjutant-general. A school of musket ry . 
under the command of the inspector of musketry, was 
established. 

In July. Lieut.-Col. B. H. Vidal, D.O.C. district No. 8, 
was appointed deputy adjutant-general vice Cartwright ; 
and Paymaster and Honorary Major J. L. Biggar. from 
the 1.5th Regiment, was ga/etted to be deputy assistant 
adjutant-general for army service corps duties at head 
quarters, with the rank of major. Provision having 
been in the meantime made for the organization of the 
Canadian Army Service Corps. Major Biggar was. in 
November, promoted Lieut .-Colonel to command the 
corps, with the appointment of assistant quartermaster- 
general at headquarters. 



July 1. 1901, Major and Brevet Lieutenant -Colonel 
R. W. Rutherford, R.C.G.A., was appointed assistant 
adjutant-general for artillery at headquarters. 

The first few months of the present century saw 
arrangements made by the Militia Department for the 
establishment in Canada of the first manufactory for 
the production of military small arms, the works of the 
Ross Rifle Company at Quebec. 

In the year 1900, when the Dominion government 
wanted to purchase rifles through the imperial govern 
ment . it was impossible to secure a thousand rifles in 
Great Britain during the time of the South African war, 
and Sir Frederick Borden thought that it was the duty 
of the government, under the circumstances, to make 
as soon as possible some arrangement by which rifles 
could be manufactured in Canada. The Minister of 
Militia was in Kngland in 1900, and went to the Birm 
ingham small arms people and tried to induce that 
company to come to Canada. He quite recognized 
the desirability of having, if possible, precisely the 
same rifle in Canada as is used by the British army, 
because if the militia of this country should ever be 
called out for war. he realized it would be better that 
thev should have the same rifles as the imperial troops. 

It was found impossible to prevail upon the Birming 
ham Small Arms Company, or any other small-arms 
manufacturers in Hngand, to come out here and start 
a factory. About that time Sir Charles Ross happened 



104 



to he here. He had not then come to Canada for the 
first time, but had been living; in British Columbia, and 
had spent a great deal of money there in developing 
water-powers and establishing electrical works. He 
was introduced to Sir Frederick Borden and brought 
other letters from the most reputable men in Canada. 
He explained to the minister that he had a rifle factory 
in the United States, and was selling sporting rifles, 
rifles similar to what are being manufactured in Quebec 
now. He said that he would be willing to establish a 
factory to manufacture rifles for Canada with the same 
bore and to use the same cartridge as the Lee-Enfield 
rifle. It seemed to Sir Frederick that it was a patriotic 
thing to recommend, and on the part of the govern 
ment to accept, this opportunity to secure a factory 
which would turn out rifles for Canada. 

As to the rifle itself, Sir Frederick Borden appointed 
a committee composed of General Otter, of Toronto; 
Col. Gibson, of Hamilton, for many years president of 
the council of the D.R.A., and a crack shot; Lieut-Col. 
Anderson, engineer, of the Marine Department, an 
other expert marksman; Col. Samuel Hughes, M. P., (1) 
another veteran rifle shot, and who had served with 
great distinction in various responsible staff appoint 
ments during the South African war; and Major Gaudet, 
superintendent of the Dominion arsenal. 

This committee examined the Ross rifle, subjected 
it to various tests and reported favourably upon it. 
After the reception of this report the minister had no 
hesitation about entering into a contract for the pur 
chase of sufficient Ross rifles to re-arm the militia, the 
company agreeing to make the rifles at a factory to be 
erected in Canada. 

And so the Ross rifle factory came to be established 
at Quebec with a normal capacity of 1,000 a month, or 
2,000 upon emergency. 

About the same time, the capacity of the Dominion 
arsenal at Quebec, the output of which was under a 
million rounds of cartridges a year, was increased. 
so that it has an output of 10.000.000 or 12 .000.000 and 
its capacity is very considerably above that quantity. 

The year 1903 was a particularly important one in 
the development of the headquarters staff. 

In February, Major and Lieutenant-Colonel E. 
Fiset. A. M.S.. was appointed staff adjutant of medical 
services. 

By general order 61 of April. 1903, the formation 
of the Corps of Guides, a unit to be specially trained 
in the duties of reconnaissance, scouting, military 
sketching, map reading, guiding and intelligence, 
with a director of intelligence at headquarters and a 
district intelligence officer for each district, was 
provided for. April 22, Major W. A. C. Denny of 

(1) Now President of the Council of the Dominion Rifle .-Wonation. 



the Army Service Corps (British) was appointed 
director of intelligence at headquarters. 

October 15, Lieut .-Colonel Henry Smith was ap 
pointed military secretary at headquarters. 

October 23, the formation of the Ordnance Stores 
Corp- was provided for in orders, and the following 
staff appointments gazetted: 

To be director-general of ordnance: Colonel Donald 
A. Macdonald, I.S.O., from the reserve of officers. 1st 
July. 1903. 

To be assistant director-general of ordnance: Lieu 
tenant-Colonel J. B. Donaldson, from the unattached 
list. 1st July, 1903. 

To be director-general of engineer services: Lieu 
tenant-colonel P. Weatherhe. Canadian Engineer 
Corps. 1st July. 1903. 

To he assistant director-general of engineer services: 
Major G. S. Maunsell. Canadian Engineer Corps. 1st 
July, 1903. 

Orders of October 24, provided for the organization 
of the Signalling Corps. 

\Yith a view to placing the administration of the 
Department of Militia and Defence upon a more 
satisfactory and systematic basis, it was decided to 
transfer the custody, care and issue of arms, clothing, 
equipment and military stores of all descriptions, 
from the civil to the military branch thereof, hence 
the organization of the "Ordnance Stores Corps." 
which was formed from the officers and men previously 
employed in the Military Stores Branch of the Depart 
ment of Militia and Defence. Commissions in the 
Ordnance Stores Corps were granted to officers serving 
in the Military Stores Branch of the Department of 
Militia and Defence, and the authorized establishment 
of warrant officers, non-commissioned officers and men 
was recruited from the former employees of that 
branch, under the same conditions as to qualifications 
and length of service as applied to the other units of 
the permanent force. 

The organization of the military staff at head 
quarters up to that date was outlined in a minute of 
Council dated October 29. 1903. which was promul 
gated as General Order 159. Of this order the follow 
ing is an abstract : 

" 1. The general officer commanding shall he charged 
with the military command and discipline of the 
militia, shall issue general orders, and hold periodical 
inspections of the militia. He shall he the principal 
adviser of the Minister of Militia and Defence on all 
military questions, and shall be charged with the 
control of the branches of the adjutant -general, the 
director-general of military intelligence and military 
secretary, and the general supervision of the other 
military branches. He shall be charged with the 

105 




I. Colonel Patrick Leonard McDoujfall (later, General Sir P. L. McDousjall, in command of the Imperial Forces in North America) 
Adjutant-General of Canadian Militia, October 1st, 1868 to May 4th. 1869. 2. Colonel Walker Powell, Adjutant-General, 
April Jist, 1875 to January ist, 1896. 3. Major-General Rt. Hon. Lord Aylmer, Adjutant-General, January ist, 1896 to Nov. isl, 
1904 ; Inspector General, Nov. 1st, 1904 to April ist. 1907. 4. Colonel B. H. Vidal, Adjutant-General, Nov. 1st, 1904 to April ist, 
1907, when he was appointed Inspector-General. ~t. Colonel Charles Eugene Panet, Deputy Minister of Militia, Feb. 4th, 1875 to 
Nov. _>jnd, 1898. 6. Colonel Louis Felix Pinault, C.M.G., Deputy Minister of Militia, Dec. 7th, 1898 to December, 1906. 

XOTJ-. Colonel Patrick Robertson Ross was Adjutant-General of .Militia. .Mav .^th. uS6<> to Au#. i6th, 187.^. am! Charles Si.-lln-Sni> til troi]! (,>ct. ist, 1874 
to April itjth, 1875, wliL-n IK- \\ as appoinlfd to tin 1 command. Colonel George I- utvo\ nc \vas Ucputy Minister, May 2yth, 1868 to Jan. ist. 1875. 

106 



general distribution and localization of the militia. 
and with the selection and proposal to the Minister 
of .Militia and Defence of fit and proper persons to he 
recommended for commissions in the militia, of fit and 
proper officers for promotions for staff and other 
military appointments, and for military honours and 
rewards. He shall be charged with the preparation 
and maintenance of plans for defence and for the 
organization and mobilization of the militia. In the 
absence of the general officer commanding, the ad 
jutant-general shall act for him. 

" (a) The adjutant-general .shall be charged, under 
the control of the general officer commanding, with 
interior economy, military education and training of 
officers, warrant officers, non-commissioned officers 
and men of the militia, etc., etc. 

"(b) There shall be a director-general of military 
intelligence who shall, under the control of the general 
officer commanding, be charged with the collection of 
information on the military resources of Canada, the 
British Empire, and foreign countries, etc.. etc. 

" (c) There shall be a military secretary who shall, 
under the control of the general officer commanding. 
besides other duties, be charged more particularly to 
deal with appointments, promotions and retirements 
of officers of the militia, and with military honours and 
rewards, etc.. etc. 

"2. The quartermaster-general shall, under the 
supervision of the general officer commanding, be 
charged with supplying the militia with food, forage, 
fuel. etc. 

"3. There shall be a director-general of engineer 
services who shall, under the supervision of the general 
officer commanding, be charged with the selection of 
sites for barracks, etc. 

"4. There shall be a director-general of ordnance, 
who shall, under the supervision of the general officer 
commanding, be charged with supplying the militia 
with warlike stores, etc. 

" 5. The director-general of medical services shall, 
under the supervision of the general officer command 
ing, be charged with the administration of the medical 
establishments." 

The principle of having the quartermaster-general 
and other heads of what are called departments in the 
imperial service, under the supervision of the general 
officer commanding and advising the head of the 
department direct, was borrowed from the War Office. 
and the organization of the militia department in 
October. 1903. was similar to that of the War Office at 
that date. 

After the South African war, which had re 
vealed certain weaknesses in the organization, and 
more particularly the administration, of the defensive 



forces of the mother country, and of the empire at 
large, t he question of effecting an improvement in 
those respects had been a very live one in (Ireat 
Britain. The subject was referred to the Defence 
Committee, and, in view of contemplated changes 
in the Dominion Militia Act, the British government 
invited the .Minister of Militia to proceed to England to 
discuss the question of defence with the Defence Com 
mittee, and endeavour to bring the Dominion and 
British systems into uniformity. Sir Frederick Borden 
consequently left for England in November, 1903, met 
the Defence Committee and made a number of arrange 
ments mutually advantageous to the mother country 
and to Canada. 

One immediate result was that arrangements were 
made with the imperial authorities to admit a certain 
number of Canadian officers, yearly, to the Staff 
College. On the invitation of the imperial govern 
ment. Colonel Otter. Colonel Evans and Colonel Drury 
had already attended the mamvuvres held in the 
south of England in September this year. 

On account of the numerous changes already made 
or deemed to be necessary in the militia system, and 
to bring the law more in accordance with modern 
requirements in Canada and in touch with the system 
either prevailing or to lie introduced in England. Sir 
Frederick Borden submitted. March 17. 1904, a new 
Militia Bill to parliament. In introducing it. he 
stated, in part: 

" Let me say, in the first place, that the existing 
militia law is practically the same law which has been 
on the statute-book since Confederation, and indeed 
it was on the statute-book of old Canada long before 
that date. Times have changed since tin- existing law 
was enacted: Canada has grown and the militia force 
has grown, and it has been found impossible to carry 
on our militia system advantageously under the 
existing law. Instead of amending the present Act. 
I thought it better to bring in an entirely new Bill, 
which provides for the repeal of the existing law, but 
which, of course, includes and retains many of its 

provisions I may say that we have examined, 

aol only the imperial laws and the laws of other 
colonies of the empire, but the laws of other countries 
as well, and we have endeavoured to incorporate in 
this Bill the best there is in them all. 

" It will be found that in the Bill which 1 now intro 
duce there have been changes made in certain of the 
provisions of the existing law; there have been im 
portant additions to it. and there have been important 
omissions from it. Among the more important 
omissions from the present law is. in the first place, 
the disappearance of any reference to the naval militia. 
This is due to the fact that a Bill will be introduced by 

in: 



the Minister of Marine (Hon. Mr. Prefontaine) which 
will meet all the requirements in this regard. I may 
say that this is done at the suggestion and under the 
advice of the Colonial Defence Committee and of the 
Admiralty. (1). 

"The next important omission from the present law 
is that restriction which prevents the appointment of 
a Canadian officer as commanding officer of our militia. 
The existing Militia Act provides that no one but an 
imperial officer, and no one below the rank of colonel 
in the British army shall be appointed general officer 
commanding the militia of Canada. The new Bill 
omits this restriction and leaves it open to a Canadian 
or to any qualified person within the British empire to 
be appointed by the government as commanding officer 
of the Canadian militia. The next important omission 
military men will consider it important, although in a 
.sense it is perhaps a matter of minor importance 
the next omission from the Bill is the provision in the 
present law by which an officer of the British army of 
the same rank as a Canadian officer, but of junior date 
of appointment, takes precedence of the Canadian 
officer in the militia of Canada. This provision is not 
included in the present Bill, so that in future imperial 
ollicers who come here to serve in Canada will rank with 
ollicers of the Canadian militia according to the date 
of their appointment. 

"The next important provision which is not included 
in the present Bill, but which exists in the law as it 
now stands, is with reference to the powers of the im 
perial officer commanding the imperial troops at Hali 
fax. Under the law as it now stands, in case of war, 
the imperial officer commanding the imperial troops at 
Halifax, no matter how junior he might be, would 
immediately take command of the whole militia of 
Canada over the head of the general officer commanding 
the militia of this country. That provision has been 
eliminated from the present Bill, and no allusion what 
ever is made to the general officer commanding at 
Halifax. If he is a man of senior rank, he would in 
time of war, by virtue of his seniority, take his position 
as head of the forces in this country. 

" One other omission is made. There is no reference 
in the Bill 1 am now proposing to the King s Regula 
tions- l~nder the law as it now exists the King s 
Regulations are made a part of the law of Canada. This 
has been found to be troublesome and cumbrous, and 

( ) The question of the organization of a Canadian Naval Militia was 
taken up energetically by the Hon. Mr. Prefontaine, who prepared an 
elaborate naval militia bill, and gave notice of its introduction during the 

session of HIOo. O\vin<r to the lateness of the session it was left over until 
the following one. Already the active Minister- of Marine had hail the 
crews of the fisheries protective cruisers organized and drilled on a naval 
system, and as he contemplated making 1 he clews of the depart mental fleet 
the regularly enrolled nucleus of the new naval militia, he, during the winter 
of 1904. despatched officers and men on an instructional cruise on the 
1>.(1 cruiser "Canada" to the West Indies. Unfortunately, while on a trip 
to Kurope on business connected with his department , Mr. Prefontaine died 
suddenly at Paris, December I ."), I9[).~>. Since then the organisation of the 
naval militia has remained in abe\ mice. 



to add to the difficulties of the administration of the 
militia. Therefore, we shall rely in future upon the 
regulations made in Canada for the administration of 
the militia of Canada, except that the Army Act will 
apply. It was at first thought that we might re-enact 
the Army Act in this country; but it is a very long 
document and is being changed from time to time: and, 
after taking the best advice I could get in this country, 
it was thought wiser to adopt the British Army Act 
rather than to attempt to re-enact a similar Act here at 
present 

" Now, I will mention some alterations which have 
been made in different provisions of the law. First, 
it is proposed to increase the permanent force of the 
militia to 2,000. The present law provides for f,000. 
In the near future the population of this country will be 
double the population of the country at the time the 
present provision was made. The Northwest and 
British Columbia have since that time become parts 
of the Dominion. Important settlements are taking 
place in the Northwest, and gradually as the country 
becomes settled the Northwest Mounted Police will 
proceed to other spheres of usefulness, and the militia 
of the country will have to take the responsibility of 
maintaining order there, and depots will be required. 
In fact, at the last session of parliament, I explained 
that we were taking a sum of money to pay for an 
addition of 500 men to the permanent force. So that 
I think this increase of 1,000 will be considered to be 
entirely within the present demands of the country. 

"Another change which I propose refers to the pay 
of the permanent force. At present it stands at forty 
cents a day, with certain good-conduct pay. It is pro 
posed to adopt the rate of pay of the Northwest 
Mounted Police as that of the permanent force of this 
country. I need not stop here to argue the point, 
because this can be better done on the second reading; 
but I may say that the permanent force is the teaching 
force of this country, the one upon which we must 
largely depend for the training of the active militia, 
and therefore it is exceedingly desirable that it should 
be composed of first-class men. The pay is to begin 
at fifty cents a day, and increase at the rate of five 
cents each year until it reaches seventy-five cents as 
the maximum. 

"The next change is in the rate of pay of the active 
militia. That matter lias been discussed here on many 
occasions. I am happy to be able to say that this 
Bill provides that while the pay shall begin as it does 
now at fifty cents a day, there shall be a provision by 
regulation, which shall be laid on the table of the 
House, allowing for an increase year by year until at 
the end of three years .fl a day may be paid to men 
who have shown by their good conduct and their 



His 



proficiency in rifle shooting that they have earned it. 

"Another change which has been made is in the pro 
vision for giving aid to the civil power in time of riot. 
It is proposed to amend the law as it now stands by 
providing that the active militia shall only be used 
in the suppression of riots or in aid of the civil power 
when the permanent force is not available, or not in 
sufficient number to be utilized. 

"One other alteration proposes to extend the period 
for annual drill from sixteen days to thirty days. It 
is not compulsory, but it will be possible, if ocbasion 
requires, to make that extension of time. The present 
law provides for sixteen days, but it has been the 
custom to make the period twelve days. It is not 
probable that that will be exceeded, but it was thought 
desirable that power should be given to the govern 
ment, if at any time it might be necessary, forthedrill 
to be extended in certain cases to thirty days. 

" I now come to the additions to the law proposed 
in this Bill. I shall at first call attention to the pro 
visions in reference to cadets. We have had many 
discussions in this House on this matter, and it was pro 
mised that when the new Bill was proposed, provision 
would be made for the enrolment of cadets. I cannot 
do better than read the clauses: 

"73. The minister may (a) authorize boys over 
12 years of age who are attending school to be formed 
into school cadet corps; (b) authorize boys over 14 
years of age and under 18 years of age to be formed 
into senior cadet corps; (c) authorize senior cadet 
corps or any portion thereof to be attached to any 
portion of the active militia for the purpose of drill 
and training. 

"74. All cadet corps shall be subject to the auth 
ority and under the orders of the district officer com 
manding. 

"75. Cadet corps shall be drilled and trained as 
prescribed, and may be furnished with arms, am 
munition and equipment under the conditions pre 
scribed 

"There is a provision in the Hill for the appoint 
ment of officers to rank as brigadier-generals tempor 
arily. This will be found necessary under the pro 
posed increase of the militia at times of camp. There 
is a further provision that the rank of major-general 
may be conferred upon colonels on retirement, who 
have held the highest executive appointments on the 
headquarters staff, for distinguished service in the 
country." 

A protracted debate took place on this bill, indicating 
the greatly increased interest taken by the country s 
public men and their constituents in the once-neglected 
question of national defence. AVhile the bill was 
before parliament, a lengthy, able, but somewhat 



acrimonious discussion was precipitated by what is 
known as the "Dundonald Incident." 

The Earl of Dundonald, commanding the militia, 
at a dinner tendered to him by the officers of the 
Montreal division, June 4, used language reflecting 
upon the conduct of a member of the government in 
connection with the filling of military appointments, 
charging that political intrigue rather than military 
efficiency had determined the selection of some of the 
officers of a newly organized cavalry regiment. 

The government s attention was drawn to the 
matter in parliament on June 9, and after investigation, 
taking the ground that not only was there no justifica 
tion for the specific reflections made, but that the 
conduct of Lord Dundonald was in direct violation 
of the principles of military discipline and the rules 
of the service, and subversive of the principles of con 
stitutional government, an order in council was passed 
dispensing with Lord Dundonald s services as general 
officer commanding the militia. 

This regrettable incident resulted in the discussion 
on the Militia Bill being prolonged, and for some time 
speeches assumed a rather bitter tone. 

While the bill was still under discussion, an entirely 
new system was adopted at the War Office in London 
as a result of the adoption by the government of the 
report of the committee known as the Esher Com 
mittee, which was appointed by the Balfour govern 
ment for the purpose of investigating and reporting 
on all matters connected with the organization of the 
War Office, and making a report. This report pro 
vided for a practical reconstruction of the War Office. 
The results seemed to be so far satisfactory by July. 
1904, that the Hon. Sir Frederick Borden, minister of 
militia, in view of the course which had been pursued 
by the War Office, a course which had resulted from 
difficulties which were found to exist in working out 
the complicated system which had obtained in Eng 
land, and which, to some extent, had been in existence 
in Canada, thought it advisable to provide, in the 
new Militia Bill then before parliament, the machinery 
by which the government of Canada might follow the 
example of the imperial government. 

July 11, Sir Frederick outlined in parliament the 
principal changes he proposed to make in the bill. 
He explained that the system in force since Confedera 
tion had not operated satisfactory, and continued, in 
part: "There are many difficulties which I think 
act against the public interest in the endeavour to work 
out this system, difficulties which will be overcome 
entirely or very largely by the new system. One of 
these difficulties is that there has been absolute want 
of continuity under the existing system. Each new 
general officer commanding who conies to this country 

109 



scorns to lio possessed with the idea that it is his duty 
to overturn and change everything done by his pre 
decessor. There are no records to show in detail the 
reasons for the conclusions which the different general 
officers commanding have reached. Under the new 
system there will be a militia council corresponding 
to what is in England called the army council. That 
council will be composed of the minister of militia, as 
chairman of the council, with four military men and 
two additional civilians. Everything that is done at 
that council will be made a matter of record, or at any 
rate every conclusion of importance which is reached 
by that council will be made a matter of record, so 
that if there be a change of ministers or a change of 
officers, the record will remain there for the guidance of 
those who may come afterwards, and when changes 
are suggested, means will be found to compare new 
proposals with old proposals. 

The minister for the time being will be the chairman 
of the militia council; the principal military officer will 
be known as the chief of the general staff. Then there 
will lie the adjutant-general, the quartermaster-general 
and the master-general of ordnance. The two addi 
tional civilians would be the deputy minister and, 
probably, the chief accountant of the department. 

" I think that so far as the reconstitution of the head 
quarters is concerned the conditions are similar to 
those of the war office in England, and I cannot see 
any difficulty at all on that score. All my hon. friends 
who have written me on the subject and some of the 
most eminent military authorities agree that there 
will be no difficulty whatever in applying the system 
so far as the war office is concerned. When it comes 
to the question of decentralization it may be that 
we will not Vie able to go as far in this country as 
they have gone in England. 1 do not think that 
policy CUD be carried out in connection with the militia 
force as easily as in connection with the regular army. 

"Under the system there will be no general officer 
commanding. There is no commander in chief in 
England to-day, and there" will be no general officer 
commanding here. There would be a first military 
officer known as the chief of the general staff, the most 
important military officer in the country, as he is 
to-day the most important military officer in England, 
except some of the generals commanding in chief in 
some of the largo districts. Under the new system 
we would have more important commands than we 
have to-day. The centralization would be carried 
out to Mime extent, perhaps not to the same extent 
as in England, so that officers commanding districts 
would have much greater powers than they have at 
the present moment, and properly so, because these 
men. if they are over to be lit to command, must have 



experience in times of peace which will enable them 
to perform the duties which may be required of them 
in times of war." See H. of C. Hansard, July 11 and 
(3rd Heading of Bill) Aug. 2, 1904. 

The bill as thus amended by the Minister of Militia 
finally passed, and was assented to as Act 4, Edward 
VI J. Chapter 23, August 10th. 

Among its most important new provisions were the 
following: 

"Sod ion 7. The Governor in Council may appoint a 
militia council to advise the minister on all matters 
relating to the militia, which are referred to the council 
by the minister. The composition, procedure and 
powers of the council shall be as prescribed." 

"Section 30. There may be (1) appointed an officer 
who shall hold rank not below that of the colonel in 
the militia or in His Majesty s regular army, who may 
be, subject to the regulations and under the direction 
of the minister, charged with the military command of 
the militia, and such officer shall have the rank of 
major-general in the militia, and shall be paid at such 
rate, not exceeding $6,000 per annum, as is prescribed. 

"31. There may be appointed an officer who shall 
hold rank not below that of colonel in the militia or in 
His Majesty s regular army, who may be, subject to the 
regulations and under the direction of the minister, 
charged with the military inspection of the militia, and 
such officer shall be paid at such rate, not exceeding 
,16,000 per annum, as is prescribed. 

"32. The duties and authority of each of the officers 
respectively referred to in the two next preceding- 
sections shall be denned by the Governor in Council." 

"36. The Governor in Council may establish a 
general staff, headquarters staff, and district staff. 
and ma-.v appoint a chief of the general staff and such 
officers to the respective staffs as are deemed necessary, 
and shall define their duties and authority." 

General Orders of June 15, 1904, provided that 
Colonel the Right, Honourable .Matthew, Lord Aylmer, 
adjutant-general, would act as officer commanding the 
Canadian militia in succession to the Earl of Dun- 
donald. retired. By G.O. 166, November 1, 1904, 
Lord Aylmer was appointed " Inspector-General of 
the Canadian Forces," with the rank of brigadier- 
general. 

The same order contained the following: Brigadier- 
General P. H. N. Lake, C.B.. Chief Staff officer, 
Southern Command. Great Britain, is appointed 
(temporarily) chief of the general staff, with rank of 
brigadier-general in the Canadian forces while so em 
ployed. such rank to date from 2nd March, 1904, under 



to the 

no 



Appeared ;i> "Tin 1 !*- shall tie, etc." in the hill a.s originally presented 




THE MILITIA COUNCIL (1) 

1. Colonel E. Fiset, D.S.O., G.G.H.S., P.A.M.C., Deputy Minister of Militia, Vice-President. 2. Major-General P. H. X. Lake, 
C.B., C.M.G., p.s.c., Eng-., Chief of" the General Staff, (First Military Member). 3. Colonel F. L. Lessard, C.B., A.Oc 
Adjutant-General (Second Military Member). 4. Colonel D. A. Macd onald, I.S.O., O.S.C Quartermaster-General (Third 
Military Member), a. Colonel W. H. Cotton, .Master-General of the Ordnance (Fourth Military Member), li. J. W. Borden, Ksq., 

Accountant and Paymaster-General (Finance Member). 

(1) The Hon. Sir F, W. Burden, K.C.M.U., etc., .MiniMcr of .\liMti;i. is President of the Militia ( ..uncil. SrrT nmi i>pici- ( -. 

Ill 



provisions of section 47, Militia Act. 1st November. 
1904. 

Brigadier-General Lake had already served a term 
in Canada as quartermaster-general of militia with 
universal acceptance, and had temporarily acted as 
general officer commanding after the departure of 
Major-General Gascoigne. 

In the same order Lieut. -Colonel and Brevet Colonel 
B. H. Vidal was appointed adjutant-general to the 
Canadian forces with the substantive rank of colonel. 

General Order 167, November 15, p ovided for the 
following changes in the headquarters staff: 

Colonel 1). A. Macdonald, I.S.O., D.G. of O., to be 
quartermaster-general. 15th November, 1904. 

Colonel W. H. Cotton, Q.M.G., to be master general 
of the ordnance, under the provisions of section 35 of 
The Militia Act, 1904. 15th November, 1904. 

G.O. 17 . , dated December 28, 1904, provided for the 
following appointments to the headquarters staff: 

To be director-general of medical services: Colonel 
E. Fiset, D.S.O. 1st December, 1904. 

To be director of clothing and equipment: Lieuten 
ant-Colonel J. B. Donaldson, from assistant director- 
general of ordnance, 1st December, 1904. 

To be director of transport and supplies: Lieutenant- 
Colonel J. L. Biggar, from assistant quartermaster 
general. 1st December, 1904. 

To be director of artillery: Lieutenant-Colonel R. W. 
Rutherford, from assistant adjutant-general of artil 
lery. 1st December, 1904. 

To be director of engineer services: Lieutenant- 
Colonel P. Weatherbe, from director-general of en 
gineer services. 1st December, 1904. 

During the year 1904, the whole of the regimental 
establishments of active militia were revised, and 
new lists providing establishments on a peace 
and war footing were issued. A number of sub-target 
guns were procured for the use of the militia in con 
nection with musketry instruction. 

In accordance with the new Militia Act an increased 
scale of pay for all ranks was authorized, and efficiency 
pay for warrant officers, non-commissioned officers 
and soldiers of the active militia, the permanent force 
except ed, provided for, with a view to increasing t In 
efficiency of the several units of the militia by inducing 
men to continue to serve therein. 

During the year 1,770 officers, 19,10X non-com 
missioned officers and men, and 4,400 horses received 
12 days training in district camps; and 979 officers. 
12,997 non-commissioned officers and men, and 1,032 
horses (city corps) at local headquarters. 

The present order of things as regards (he adminis 
tration of the force was inaugurated at the beginning 
of 1905, the first general order of that year, dated 



January 3rd, reading as follows: By an Order in 
Council, dated the 17th November, 1904, as amended 
by an Order in Council dated the 7th December, 1904, 
which read as follows, the organization of the Militia 
Council was authorized: 

"On a report dated 15th November, |1904, from the 
Minister of Militia and Defence, submitting that, by 
the Militia Act, 1904, sec. 7, it is enacted as follows: 
The Governor in Council may appoint a Militia Council 
to advise the minister on all matters relat ng to the 
militia which are referred to the Council by the minister. 
The composition, procedure and powers of the council 
shall be as prescribed. 

" The minister submits that it is expedient that a 
Militia Council be appointed accordingly, and re 
commends that it be constituted under the title of 
The Militia Council, and that it be composed of the 
following members: 

" President The Minister of Militia and Defence. 

"1st Military Member The Chief of the General 
Staff. 

"2nd Military Member The Adjutant-General. 

" 3rd Military Member The Quartermaster-General. 

"4th Military Member The Master -General of 
Ordnance. 

"Civil Member The Deputy Minister of Militia and 
Defence. 

"Finance Member The Accountant of the Depart 
ment of Militia and Defence. 

"With a secretary to be nominated by the Minister 
of Militia and Defence from among the clerical staff of 
the Department of Militia and Defence." 

G.O. 65, dated Headquarters, Ottawa, April 4, 1905, 
provided for the creation of the higher commands, 
with the following officers commanding: 

Western Ontario Command To command, (with 
temporary rank of brigadier-general), in addition to 
the command of No. 2 military district: Colonel W. 1). 
Otter, C.B., A.D.C.. 1st May, 1905. 

Eastern Ontario Command. To command, (with 
substantive rank of colonel), in addition to the com 
mand of No. 3 military district: Lieutenant-Colonel 
and Brevet Colonel W. 1). Gordon. 1st May, 1905. 

Quebec Command To command, (with substantive 
rank of colonel), in addition to the command of No. 5 
military district: Lieutenant-Colonel and Brevet Col 
onel L. Buchan, C.M.G. 1st May, 1905. 

Maritime Provinces Command To command, (with 
substantive rank of colonel) in addition to the command 
of No. 9 military district: Lieutenant-Colonel and 
Brevet Colonel C. W. Drury, C.B., R.C.A. 1st May, 
1905. 

The grouping of the military districts of eastern 
Canada into higher units had been advocated by 



112 



successive G. O. C. for years previously. Nos. 
1 and 2 military districts became the Western 
Ontario Command: Xos. 3 and 4. the Eastern Ontario 
Command; Nos. 5, 6 and 7, the Quebec Command, 
and Nos. 8, 9 and 12, the Maritime Provinces Command. 
The objects of this organization were, first, to afford 
selected officers of the militia practice in the higher 
duties of command and administration, by placing 
them in charge of large bodies of troops approximating 
to the commands which they would exercise in the 
event of war; secondly, decentralization, with the 
object of relieving militia headquarters of a great 
mass of detail questions which could be far better 
dealt with locally, and, thirdly, the introduction of a 
system of administration which would be the same 
both for peace and war. Incidentally the creation of 
these commands opened up a far more attractive pro 
fessional career for officers of ability than it had hitherto 
been possible to offer them. 

The following staff officers and heads of departments 
were allotted for each of these commands: Staff 
officers : Chief staff officer, deputy-assistant-adjutant- 
general. 

Heads of departments: District engineer, senior 
Army Service Corps officer, principal medical officer, 
senior Ordnance Stores Corps officer, senior paymaster, 
principal veterinary officer. 

During 1905, the cavalry and infantry were organized 
into brigades, and the Royal Canadian Field Artillery 
was reorganized as Horse Artillery. 

The attendance at annual drill during 1905, and 
especially at the camps of instruction, was highly 
satisfactory. Indeed, the total number of men trained 
reached a higher figure by 4,900 than that of any 
previous year. This was no doubt largely attributable 
to the efficiency pay introduced in 1904. 

During the year, the department carried out the 
project for acquiring a suitable territory for a central 
training camp, land at Petawawa, Out., being secured. 
The new camp ground is situated in the county of 
Renfrew, near Pembroke, on the line of the Canadian 
Pacific Railway, and is. roughly speaking, about eight 
miles by ten. It lies upon the Ottawa river, and 
affords excellent ranges for both artillery and infantry. 
Steps have since been taken to prepare it for regular 
occupation, and suitable buildings, ranges, etc., erected. 
In June. 1905, the military members of the Militia 
Council submitted to the minister a memorandum on 
general militia policy, which was approved by him and 
laid before parliament. To the carrying out of that 
policy the efforts of the department have been steadily 
dirccted with satisfactory results. 

But by far the most important event in 1905, from 
a military point of view, was the fact that the Dominion 



took over from His Majesty s regular troops the res 
ponsibility for the maintenance of the Imperial for 
tress of Halifax, X.S., the control of which is now 
entirely in the hands o. Canada. The Dominion 
government also arranged similarly to assume control 
of Esquimault. Canada thus relieved the British tax 
payer of the burden of any military expenditure what 
ever for military purposes within her borders. On her 
part, the mother country treated Canada with liberality. 
in handing over the fortresses free of charge, complete, 
up to date, and fully equipped in every respect. 

In consequence of the decision of the Dominion 
government to assume the entire defence of the Do 
minion, an increase of the permanent force was au 
thorized from 2,000 to (if necessary) 5,000 of all ranks, 
and recruiting was actively commenced in the month 
of April, 1905, for the additional force required in con 
nection with the gar ison at Halifax. The recruiting 
was satisfactory in point of numbers, and the class of 
recruits obtained was good, their physique being much 
above the average for infantry of the line. 

Owing to this large augmentation, it was necessary 
to obtain, for service in the permanent force, a few 
officers, non-commissioned officers and men from the 
Imperial army. The Imperial government granted 
the non-commissioned officers and men free discharges, 
with permission to enlist in the permanent fo:ce, the 
Dominion government undertaking to give them in the 
permanent force the rank they held in the army, and 
to count their army service towards pay, promotion 
and pension, the portion of the pens on earned in the 
army to be borne by the Imperial government. 

Two additional companies were formed to replace the 
two companies of the Royal Canadian Garrison Artil 
lery sent to Halifax from Quebec. 

An increase in the strength of the Royal Canadian 
Engineers was author! /AM I. 

Five additional companies were added to the Royal 
Canadian Regiment, and were organized to reinforce 
the five old companies, which were recruited as nearly 
as possible to their full strength. 

It was also found necessary to organize a corps of 
military staff clerks as a separate unit of the permanent 
force, with a strength of one warrant officer and thirty 
staff-sergeants and sergeants. 

May 16, the following appeared in orders: " Brig- 
adie -General (temporary) P. H. X. Lake. C.B.. having 
been appointed a major-general in His Majesty s re 
gular army from the 23rd March, 1905, is, under the 
provisions of paragraph 47 of the Militia Act. granted 
the rank of ma or-general (temporary) in the militia 
from the above date, and is confirmed in his appoint 
ment of chief of the general staff." 

113 



October 23, 1905, Major and Brevet Lieutenant- 
Colonel W. G. Gwatkin, Manchester regiment, ap 
peared in orders as being appointed "Director of 
Operations and Staff Duties on the General Staff," 
with the temporary rank of Lieutenant-colonel in the 
militia, taking rank and precedence in the militia 
from Jan. 6. 1904, that being the date o his army 
rank as lieutenant-colonel. 

In connection with the transfer of the fortress of 
Halifax to the Dominion government, it was found 
necessary to temporarily retain the services of Major- 
General Sir Charles S. B. Parsons, K.C.M.G., com 
manding, and a numbe of his subordinate officers 
after the date fixed for the withdrawal of the British 
troops, and arrangements having been made with the 
Imperial government, they were temporarily taken 
on the st ength of the Canadian militia. (See G.O. 
296, Dec. 9, 1905). 

This transfer of a number of senior Imperial officers, 
in their army ranks, to the Canadian militia empha 
sizes the great change in the status of the national 
force from the days when the militia was a mere 
auxiliary of the regular army, whose chief usefulness 
in war time was the raising of recruits to form pro 
visional battalions. 

The transfer, to the Dominion of Canada, of the 
garrison, fortifications and military buildings of the 
Imperial fortress at Halifax, X.S., which was Hearing 
completion at the end of 190-5, was practically com 
pleted during 1906. 

Similarly the coaling station at Esquimault. B.C.. 
was entirely taken over from the Imperial troops during 
the year. 

The formal transfer of the two fortresses took place 
on January 18, 1906. The command of Halifax being 
assumed by Col. C. W. Drury. (Mi., commanding 
Maritime Provinces; that of Esquimanlt by Col. J. G. 
Holmes, commanding M.D. Xo. 11. 

The increase to the permanent force, required in 
order to enable the infantry, artillery and engineers to 
provide efficiently for the necessary garrisons of 
Halifax and Esquimalt. proved difficult. Recruiting 
suffered seriously from the state of the labour market 
and the universal demand for labour at high wages. 
To meet the resulting shortage of men, until such time 
as the classes from which recruits are drawn in this 
country become better aware of the advantages offered 
by military service, the experiment was tried of en 
listing volunteers from certain British regular regi 
ments, which, during the year, were in process of dis- 
bandment, direct into the permanent force. The Army 
Council was good enough to give its consent. 

A new departure was made during the year by the 
completion of arrangements for the temporary inter 



change of selected officers with the governments of 
India and Australia. 

Captain J. H. Elmsley, Royal Canadian Dragoons, 
was attached to the Indian army for a year, while 
Lieut .-Col. O. B. S. F. Shore, D.S.O., 18th Tiwana 
Lancers, was sent to the Canadian militia to fill his 
place. 

Similarly Lieutenant K. Clairrnonte, Royal Canadian 
Artillery, was attached to the Australian Permanent 
Forces and Lieutenant P. S. Long-Innes, Royal Aus 
tralian Artillery, took his place. 

It was hoped that the new scheme would afford 
officers of the Dominion an opportunity of studying 
the military systems of other portions of the empire 
and of widening their military knowledge and ex 
perience thereby. 

During this year a considerable improvement was 
effected in the training system of the active militia. 
Steps were taken at the camps to eliminate as far as 
possible all movements not of general utility, with a 
view to giving more attention to essentials, and with 
good results. As city corps generally suffer from too 
constant drill in drill-halls and too little work in the 
field, an opportunity to remedy this defect was 
offered by giving permission to city corps to form 
provisional battalions for four days attendance at the 
district camps. 

During the year 1906, 1,950 officers, 24,112 non 
commissioned officers and men, and 6,567 horses re 
ceived 12 days training in district camps; and 912 
officers, 12,330 non-commissioned officers and men, 
and 284 horses similar training at local headquarters. 
162 officers, 1,334 non-commissioned officers and men, 
and 64 horses received less than 12 days training. 

Although authority was obtained from parliament 
in 1905 to raise the establishment of the permanent 
force to a maximum not exceeding 5,000 men. in 
order to provide for the garrisons of Halifax and 
Ksquimalt and other requirements, it was decided that 
the increase should only proceed gradually, and as funds 
were available. For the year 1906 it was determined 
that the numbers should not, for financial reasons, ex 
ceed the following: Royal Canadian Dragoons, 200 
all ranks; Royal Canadian .Mounted Rifles, 120; Royal 
Canadian Horse Artillery, 258; Hoyal Canadian Garri 
son Artillery, 790; Royal Canadian Engineers, 300; 
Royal Canadian Regiment, 1,067; Army Service Corps. 
100; Army Medical Corps, 100; Ordnance Stores Corps, 
120; total. 3.055. 

The permanent force was served during the year with 
the Ross rifle, Mark II, and many rifle associations 
with the same rifle, Mark I. 

Complaints, as to these rifles (the first of Canadian 
make issued to the militia), according to the annual 

114 



report of the Militia Council, did not appear to be more 
frequent than those made about other service rifles, 
at their first introduction. Defects observed were 
being rapidly remedied. 

As this rifle aims at being a modification of all 
modern patterns of small-arms, its introduction re 
vealed the weak points inherent in new models. They 
are now well known, and good progress has been made 
towards remedying them. A very careful and thorough 
inspection is made, during manufacture, of components, 
and of the finished rifle. The materials entering into 
the composition of the rifle are carefully tested, and 
defects, as far as possible, obviated. In addition to the 
above, investigations have been made at the factory 
by the inspector of small-arms on the following main 
points, in the matter of which some defects have shown 
themselves: Sights, bands, butt plates, magazine feed 
and extractor. 

The remainder of the field batteries were completely 
re-armed with 12-pr. B.L. guns during the year, and 
the full complement of ammunition completed. This 
distribution released from the field forces the 9-pr. 
R.M.L. This gun being obsolete, it is not proposed 
to re-issue it as a service weapon. As, however, the 
12-pr. gun is being replaced in other armies by a more 
modern quick-firing weapon, a supply of the new 18-pr. 
q.f. gun adopted for the British service has been 
ordered from England, the delivery of which is shortly 
expected. 

The expenditure on account of the militia for 1905-6 
amounted to $5,594.009 or $1,644,167 in excess of the 
amount expended during 1904-5. the increase being 
distributed as follows: Permanent force, $1,014.166; 
annual drill, $110,000; military stores, $100,000; 
military properties, $48,600; Dominion arsenal, $64,- 
500: defence, Esquimalt. $69.263; clothing, active 
militia, $80.000; allowances,$76.000; sundry, $81,638. 

The increase in expenditure on the permanent force, 
$1,014.166. which amount did not include contingent 
expenses, such as transport, <tr.. was due to the 
Canadian government taking over the fortresses at 
at Halifax and Ksquimalt. the two garrisons requiring 
between them about 1.500 men and entailing the 
following extra expenditure: 



(a) Additional pay funds for the permanent force 
consequent upon the increase in the establishment. 
In 1904-5. the average strength was about 1,200 all, 
ranks. In 1905-6 the average was about 1,000 greater, 
the total strength June 30, 1906. including about 70 
semi-military employees at Halifax, standing at 2,448. 

(b) Larger expenditure for clothing consequent upon 
the augmentation of the force. 

(c) $220.000 paid to re-imburse the Imperial govern 
ment for garrisoning Halifax some six months after 
July 1. 1905, the date from which Canada agreed to 
assume the cost; $200,000 being taken from the vote 
for "pay," and $20,000 from the vote for "supplies" 
for the permanent force. This was due to the fact 
that it was not possible to replace all at once the Im 
perial troops by Canadian ones; the exchange had to be 
carried out gradually. 

A statement given in the annual report of the Militia 
Council for the year ending December 31. 1906, shows, 
in detail, the expenditures on account of the militia 
during the fiscal years 1896-97 to 1905-06 inclusive. 
For the first, fifth and last years of this period the 
expenditures were as follows: 





1896-97. 


1900-01. 1905-O6. 


Pay of headquarters and district staffs 
Pay of Permanent Force. including 
officers, n.c.o. s and men attached, 
guards of honour and military survev . 
Allowances for care of arms, drill in- 
structionand postage to Active Militia 
Annual drill, including supplies and 
transport 


$ 

41.353 

265,470 
63,280 

430.168 
67.868 
39,101 
73,491 


* t 

41,093 143,880 

248.1139 1,118.836 
70,882 122.897 

454.357 809.924 
86,495 72,603 
39,203 50.523 
191,858 254,427 

76.104 132.747 
85.171 174.980 

209.657 429,727 
121.790 4ti:i.<i<ls 

39,824. 84.856 
36.035 -(.I. XL .-> 
72..V20 86,243 
110,783 290,037 
131.551 1,09 M"8 
5.411 582 
Ivnii; -11.4711 
12S.140 179.25(1 


Salaries and wa^es of civil employees 
Military properties maintenance. .... 
construction 
rifle ranges and 
lands 


\\ arlike and other stores . . . 


.50,427 
232,107 
llo,899 

43,998 
39,050 
59,616 

58,492 
745.965 
5,158 
46,123 
45,119 


Clothing and necessaries for Permanent 
1 orcc and Active Militia 
Provisions and supplies for Permanent 
Force 


Transport and freieht, other than an 
nual drill 


Crants to rifle associations and bands 
Royal Military College. . . 


Dominion Arsenal. . 


Arms and ammunition . . . 


(Jratuities and compensation 
Miscellaneous votes 


Defences of Esquimalt . 


Special services. South Africa 
Halifax, provisional uarrison. 




Totals 




$2,413,651 


$2,197,559 $5,594,009 





(1) S!iiiv, t M> expense* in connection with special service in South 
Africa ami Halifax provisional garrison not included. 



MARK WORKMAN 

Manufacturer of Military Clothing 



<I Uniforms of every descrip 
tion made on short notice 



<I Tenders furnished on ap 
plication 



Office: 326 Notre Dame St. W. - Factory: 337 Notre Dame St. W. 

MONTREAL 



A. W. ROBERTSON. 



QUINLAN & 
ROBERTSON 

CONTRACTORS 



BLACK S BRIDGE, 

Montreal, Que. 





Montreal, Que. 




*i 



B. J. COGHLIN & CO. 

Wholesale Hardware Merchants 



Manfg. Springs and Axles, 
Railway Supplies 




Works : 

HOCHELAGA 



Office and Warehouse : 

432-434-436 ST. PAUL STREET. 

Cor. St. Francois Xavier St. 



-:- 



# 



P. O. Box 429. 



TELEPHONE 620. 



REID & ARCHIBALD 

Wharf and Bridge Builders 
and General Contractors 

Also Lightering and Towing throughout the Province. 
Dealers in Piling and Wharf Building Materials. 



Room No. 10, Bedford Chambers, 



HALIFAX, N. S. 






^^^Jf^^^^J^J^J^^J^ 







FRANK DARLING. 



JOHN A. PEARSON. 



DARLING & PEARSON 

Architects 



Imperial Bank Building, 
TORONTO. 



Canada Life Building, 
WINNIPEG. 



and 
REGINA, Sask. 



r^ 

^^^^^^^^^ ^^^K^^^^^ ^^^^^^^ 



CANADIAN 

VACIFIC/ 

RAILWAY 



ACROSS CANADA 

FROM OCEAN TO OCEAN 



FAST TRAINS to Quebec, the Laurentiaus, Eastern Townships, St. John, N. B., Halifax, 
Boston, Worcester, Springfield, Mass., New York, Portland, Me., and (he principal Atlantic sea 
side resorts, Kawartha Lakes, Toronto, Muskoka Lakes, Niagara Falls, Detroit, Chicago, 
Ottawa, the Timiskaming, Mississaga, French River, Xevv Ontario, Sault Ste. Marie, St. Paul, 
;uul Minneapolis, Winnipeg and the Western Prairies, the Kootenay Mining Regions, the 
Mountains of British Columbia, unrivalled for scenic grandeur, Vancouver and (he Pacific Coast. 

FAST STEAMSHIP SERVICE on the Upper Lakes (Owen Sound to Fort William), 
on the inland waters of British Columbia, and on the Pacific Ocean to China, Japan, Australia, 
via Honolulu and Suva, and to Skngway, t H route to the Yukon. : : : : 

The FASTEST and most luxuriously furnished Steamers between Victoria, Vancouver and 
Seattle, and on the Atlantic Ocean between Bristol, London, Liverpool, Montreal and Quebec, in 
summer, and St. John in winter. : : : : ; : : 



DOUBLE DAILY TRANSCONTINENTAL TRAIN SERVICE 

Commencing June 2nd, 1907. 

IMPERIAL LIMITED trains leave Montreal daily, crossing the Continent in 4% days. 
SUPERB SLEEPING and DINING CARS, and the most modern type of first-class passenger cars. 

For illustrated pamphlets apply to --ity office, 129 St. James Street, Montreal, or to any assent of the Canadian Pacific Railway or to 
ROBERT KKRR, Passenger Traffic Man-liter, Montreal W.M. STITT. General Passenger Agent, Montreal 



QUALITY AND 
SATISFACTION 

Yovi want both of these get tKe former and 
the latter is sure to follow. ^ V V 



As we have been estab 
lished 20 years it puts us 
in a position to know the 
requirements of the public. 
Only the best goods kept 
in stock which insures us 
the best customers. : : 



J. R. GOWLER 

Wholesale and Retail 

GROCER AND BUTCHER 

90 DISRAELI ST. WINNIPEG. MANITOBA 

Telephone 580 



R. J. INGLIS 

Established 1875 

BREECHES MAKER 



Civil and 
Military 
Tailor 



487 St. Catherine St. West - MONTREAL 
288 Portage Avenue - - WINNIPEG 

Price List and Estimates on Application 



Canadian Express Company 

An improved and perfected system of Transportation in all its 
branches, resulting from the experience of over Half a Century, 
always appeals to the progressive merchant, who must have 
Expedious Service, Lowest Rates and Undoubted Responsi 
bility, all of which are abundantly afforded by the CANADIAN 
EXPRESS COMPANY, one of the Pioneer Express Companies 
of the World in the handling of Freight and Valuables of every 
description. 

OUR MONEY ORDERS can be purchased at any office of the 
Company in Canada, payable in any place in Canada, United 
States or Europe at the following rates : 

$5.00 and under, 3 cts. Over $10.00 to $30.00, 10 cts. 
Over 5.00 to $10.00, 6 30.00 to 50.00, 15 cts. 

Larger Amounts in Proportion. 

ADVANTAGES Cheap, Safe and Satisfactory. Most 
convenient method of remitting through the mails. Not neces 
sary to fill out an application. You obtain a receipt with each 
order. If the money orders are lost, stolen or delayed, prompt 
refund is made. 



CASHED "AT PAR" PRACTICALLY EVERYWHERE 



ACCEPTED ON DE 
POSIT AT BANKS 



Richelieu & Ontario Navigation Company 

"NIAGARA TO THE SEA" 

Toronto and Montreal Line 

Through Lake Ontario, the Thousand Islands 
and all the Rapids 



Montreal-Quebec Line 



A cool and refreshing night s ride between 

these cities 

Saguenay Line 

From Quebec down the Lower St. Lawrence 

to Murray Bay and Tadousac, thence to 

points on the world s famous 

Saguenay River 

Trips from One Hour to a Week s Duration 

For Further Particulars Apply to 
JOS. F DOLAN, C. P. A., 128 St. James St., or THOS. HENRY, Traffic Manager. 



JOS. CHEVALIER 

CONTRACTOR 



Plasterer, Mason, Bricklayer 



44 Renaud Avenue, 



QUEBEC. 



NAPOLEON RENAUD 

CONTRACTOR 



Brick, Stone and Plaster 



1 3 1 Napoleon St , 



QUEBEC. 



P. O. Box 244. 



PHONE MAIN 1 122. 



Canadian General Supply Co. 

Manufacturers and Commission Agents 



Railway, Steamship, Mill and Lumber 
men s Supplies Oils, Paints & Varnishes 



39 St. Sacrament Street, 



MONTREAL. 



J. T. SPEIRS 



BAKER AND CONFECTIONER 



WINNIPEG, Manitoba. 

(Opposite C. P. R. Station) 



E. B. NIXON 



Grocer and Importer 
of Table Delicacies 



Avenue Block, 

267 Portage Avenue, 



WINNIPEG, 

Man. 



Established 1864 



Manufacturers 

Post Office 
Letter Boxes 



Tel. 
Main 860 

Rubenstein Bros. pfc^foSi 

Brass Signs. 

41 Craig Street W. MONTREAL. 




PHONES MAIN 



(7400 
I 7401 



BRANCH - 744 Q ueen w - 
I Phone Park 736 



MEDLANDS LIMITED 

Wholesale and Retail Grocers 



Agents : Wallaceburg Sugar Co., Limited 



Darling Brothers, Limited 

MANUFACTURERS OF 
Steam and Power Pumps for any 
service, Feed Water Heaters 
and Steam Specialties. Sole 
Agents and Manufacturers for 
the Webster Vacuum Heating 
Apparatus. : : : 



128 King St. E., 



TORONTO. 



Montreal 



Toronto 



Winnipeg 







IN the North- West, where life or death often hangs on a shot, "Dominion" 
Ammunition is the brand most often called for. More than half of all the 
metallic Ammunition used in Canada is made by the Dominion Cartridge Co., 
Ltd., Montreal. 

DOMINION AMMUNITION 

is made to fit all popular fire-arms: Winchester, Marlin, Stevens and Savage 
Rifles; Colt, Smith &- Wesson, Iver Johnson and Harrington & Richardson 
Revolvers and Pistols. 

DOMINION CARTRIDGE COMPANY, LIMITED, 

4 Hospital Street, Montreal. 



SOVEREIGN SHELLS made by the Dominion Cartridge Co., Ltd., are the trap shot s 
ideal. The shell, a deep cupped, waterproof one, is loaded under expert supervision with 
Nobel s Empire Bulk Smokeless Powder, the best in the world. Great range is given 
with minimum recoil and absolutely no variation on account of temperature. 



FURNE5S LINES 

Regular Sailings Between 
HALIFAX AND LONDON 
HALIFAX [AND LIVERPOOL 
HALIFAX AND ST. JOHN S, Nfld. 
HALIFAX AND HAVRE 



For information regarding Rates of Freight, Passage, Etc., 

= apply to 

FURNESS, WITHY & CO., LTD 

AGENTS HALIFAX, NOVA SCOTIA 



T. COTTER. PHONE, 520. R. COTTER. 



COTTER BROS. 



-WESTERN AGENTS FOR- 



Phoenix Automatic Sprinkler Systems 



Sanitary Plumbers, Gas, Steam and Hot Water Fitters, 
Ventilating and Mechanical Draft Apparatus. 



207 FORT ST.. - - - WINNIPEG, CANADA 



*###**##*#***#*#*#********#********#* 



* 
# 
* 
# 



F. J.BERRY, 

SANITARY 
CONTRACTOR 

71 VICTORIA ST. COR. LOMBARD 



HESI1JEXCE 



223 EUCLID AVE., TORONTO 

i 



PHONE MAIN 4775 



* 
* 
# 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
# 
* 
* 
* 
* 
# 



########**#*###*##**#*#&##****#*##**# 
* * 



* 
* 



* 
* 
* 
# 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 
# 
* 
# 
* 
* 



JOHN MALLON & Co. 



and 



Retail "Butchers 



Poultry & Game in Season 



Phone Main 651 



2 & 72 St. Lawrence Market 
TORONTO, ONT. 



* 
* 
* 
# 
* 
# 
* 
* 
* 
# 
* 
* 
* 
* 
* 



*##***#*#**#*##**#*### < ***#****#**** ###################*################# 



* 
* 
* 
* 
* 

* 
* 
* 



* 
* 

-K 
* 

* 
* 



JAMES HUTTON & CO. 



MANUFACTURERS 
- - AGENTS - - 



Sovereign Bank Building, Montreal, QllC. 



REPRESENTING: $ 



JOSEPH RODGERS & SONS, Ltd., 

Cutlers to His Majesty ; 
STEEL, PEECH & TOZER, Ltd., 

Steel Axles, Tyres, Spring- Steel, &c., &c.; 

W. & S. BUTCHER, 

Razors, Files, &c. 

THOS. GOLDSWORTHV & SONS, 

Emery, Emery Cloth, &c. 

BURROUGHES & WATTS, Ltd., 

Billiard Tables, &c. 



* 



# 

* 

* 



ARTHUR BRYCE 



* 
* 

* 

* 



* 

if 
* 
* 
* 
* 

* 

* 



LUMBER DEALER 



PUBLIC CONTRACTOR 



1 1 Quebec Bank 
Chambers, 



2 Toronto Street, 
Toronto, Ont. 






* 
* 



* 
* 

* 
* 

* 



* 

* 
* 



* 
* 

* 

* 
* 

* 

* 

* 



* 

* 



5 



* 
* 

* 



* 
* 



4c 
* 



J. V. CALCUTT 



* 



IMPORTER OI 



IRISH 
LINENS 



* 
* 

* 

* 
* 



12 Cathcart Street, 

Phillips Square. 



Montreal 

Telephone Up 2488. 



* 



********************;!c.******************jt************************************** 

Canada s Double Track Railway 

The only double track railway between Montreal, Toronto, 
Niagara Falls, Detroit and Chicago. The finest and fast- * 

est trains in the Dominion are operated over these lines. 



* 

| 
* 
* 

t 

* 

* 
* 

* 

% 

* 
* 
* 

4* 



G868B 




Leaves Montreal every day 9:00 a.m. 
7 hrs. 20 min. to Toronto; 13 hrs. 50 
min. to Detroit. First-class coaches, 
cafe, parlor and library cars and Pull 
man cars on this train. 

FEATURES OF THE GRAND 

TRUNK ARE: 
Excellent Road-bed. 
Beautiful Scenery. 
Polite and Attentive Employees. 
Fast Time, Punctual Trains and Best 
Equipment. 

W. E. DAVIS, 
Passenger Traffic Manager, Montreal. 




THE "INTERNATIONAL LIMITED" 
(The Railway Greyhound of Canada) 



Y 

J 
* 
I 

I 
| 

G. T. BELL. 
General Passenger and Ticket Agent, Montreal 2 



************************************** 



It 

& 



;.-************************************ 





Established in 1892. 

CUDDY & BRODEUR CO. 

Importers and Wholesale Dealers in 

China, Crockery, Glassware, Lamps, Hotel 

Silverware, Cutlery, Burners, Chimneys, 

Cut Glass, Electroliers, Bronzes 

and Fancy Goods. 

We control the sales of several makers in England and on 
the continent, and we can give to our customers a very well 
assorted stock to select from on account of our 
TWO RETAIL STORES 

533 St. Catherine St. E. 327 St. Lawrence Blvd. 
MONTREAL, CANADA. 



* 



GEO. T. 



* 

* 
* 

* 



DAVIE & 

LEVIS, QUE. 



SONS, 



Patent Slip and Docks, Twin Screw 
Salvage Steamer "Lord Strathcona" 



5 



1 


* 

* 


Steam Pumps and all necessary gear 


1 

-: 


4 




for floating and assisting Stranded 



.. 


1 


! 


Vessels 


~ 
j 






Also Ship Builders and Ship Repairers 


4 
jj 


i 




Machine Shop at Cable Address: 


* 


-:., 


*:- 


& 


ST. JOSEPH DE LEVIS. DAVIE, LEVIS. 


i 


* 


* 




i 



*************************************<$. ************************************** 

************************************** ************************************** 
* It f * 



I 
* 



Thos. Powers 

Contractor 
LEVIS QUE. 



* * 

! 5 

* 



I 

* 
* 
i 

-> 
-.;- 



Windsor & Woodley 

TORONTO 



i 

* 

j 

rLkfr********* ************************** ************************************** 



* 
* 
* 
* 
* 



Dominion Bridge Company, 



LIMITED 



MANUFACTURERS OF 



BRIDGES & STRUCTURAL METAL WORK 




Combined Railway and Highway Bridge over the Fraser River at New Westminster, British Columbia. 
Built by Dominion Bridge Company, Limited, for the Government of British Columbia. 1905. 



General Offices and Works at LACH1NE LOCKS, P.O. 

Branches at - - 
TORONTO, ONT., and WINNIPEG, MAN. 





4 

SKEDDEN BRUSH Co. j 

i i iw iTnn 


SPECIALTIES : 

? 

; Machine Brushes Moulders Brushes 
Factory Brushes Jewellers Wheel 
Loom Dusters Brushes 

t 

Household Painters Standard 
Brushes Brushes 

Rifle Brushes 
\ 


4 
* 

4 


ESTABLISHED 1895 


HAMILTON ONT. 

. j 


,, 



D. A. BETHl NE 



PLUMBING 
HEATING AND 
VENTILATION 



PHONES 



/RESIDENCE - UP 3157 
\OFF1CE - UP 247 



287a BLEURY STREET 
MONTREAL, QUE. 




^ 



JNO. E. RUSSELL 



General Contractor 



Crib and Dock 
Building, Pile 
Driving, Sub 
marine Work 
and Heavy Con 
crete Construc 
tion 



307 LOGAN AVE. TORONTO 

I HONES M 2007 and M 4626 







PHONE 2699 

WILTON BROS. 

Successors to Q. OLAFSON & CO. 

The Leading Produce, Flour and Feed, Grain and Hay Merchants of Winnipeg 

All Varieties of Stock Foods 

Cor KING and JAMES STS. WINNIPEG, MANITOBA 



BANK OF MONTREAL 



(ESTABLISHED 1817.) 

INCORPORATED BY ACT OF PARLIAMENT. 



CAPITAL (all paid up] 
REST, - - 
UNDIVIDED PROFITS, 



$14,400,000.00 
11,000.000.00 
- 422,689.98 



1 1 EAI) OFFICE MONTREAL. 



BOARD OF DIRECTORS 

RT. Ho\. LORD STRATHCONA AND MOUNT ROYAL, G.C.M.G., Honorary President. 

HON. SIR GEORGE A. DRUMMO.VD, K.C.M.G. , President. E. S. CLOUSTON, ESQ., Vice-President. 

A. T. PATERSON, ESQ. E. B. GREENSHIELDS, ESQ. SIR WILLIAM C. MACDONALD. 

R. B. ANGUS, ESQ. JAMES Ross, ESQ. R. G.REID, ESQ. 

HON. ROBT. MACKAY. 



E. S. CLOUSTON, General Manager. 

A. MACNIDER, Chief Inspector, and Superintendent of Branches. 
H. V. MEREDITH, Assistant General Manager, and Manager at Montreal. 



( Superintendent of Branches . v r c . { Superintendent of Branches 

C. SWEENY, j British Columbia W. E. STAVBRT,^ Maritime Provinces 

F. J. HUNTER, Inspector N. West and Br. Col. Branches. E. P. WINSLOW, Inspector Ontario Branches. 

D. R. CLARKE, Inspector Maritime Provinces and Newfoundland Branches. 

BRANCHES: 



IN CANADA: 



PROV. OF ONTARIO. 


PROV. OF ONTARIO. 


PROV. OF QUEBEC 


ALLISTON, 
ALMONTE, 
AURORA, 
BELLEVILLE, 
BOWMANVILLE, 
BRANTFORD, 


Cot/Ill/ III !/. 

NEWMARKET 
OTTAWA, 
Bank St. 
" Ontario Bk. Branch 
PARIS, 
PERTH, 


BUCKINGHAM, 
COOKSHIRE, 
DANVILLE, 

l-RASERVII.LE, 
GRAND MERE, 
LAKE MEGANTIC, 


BROCKVTLLE, 

CHATHAM. 


PETERBORO, 
" Ontario Bk. Branch 


LEVIS, 

MONTREAL. 


COLLINGWOOD, 

Ontario Bk Branch 


PICTON, 
PORT ARTHUR, 


" Hochelaga, 
Ontario Bank Branch 


CORNWALL, 
DESERONTO, 

EGLINTON. 
FENELON FALLS. 


PORT HOPE. 
QUEENSVILLE, 
SARNTA. 
STRATFORD. 


Papineau Ave. 
Point St. Charles 
Seigneurs St. 
Ste. Anne de Bellevue 


FORT WILLIAM. 


ST. MARYS, 


St. Henri 


GODERICH, 


SUDBURY, 


West End 


GUELPH. 
HAMILTON, 


TORONTO. 
Yonge St. 


Westmount 
QUEBEC, 


" Sherman Ave. 
IIOLSTEIN, 


Wellington St. 
Queen St. 


" Upper Town, 
SAWYERVILLE, 


KING CITY, 
KINGSTON, 


Richmond St. 
Carlton St. 


PROV. OF NEW BRUNSWICK 


" Ontario Bk. Branch 


TRENTON, 


ANDOVER, 


LINDSAY". 


TWEED. 


BATHURST, 


LONDON. 


WALLACEBVRG. 


CHATHAM. 


MII.LBROOK, 


WARSAW. 


EDMUNDSTON, 


MOUNT FOREST. 


WATERFORD. 


FKEDER1CTOX. 



PROV. OF NEW BRUNSWICK 

Continued. 
GRAND FVU.S, 
HARTLAND, 
MONCTON, 
SHEDIAC, 
ST. IOIIN, 
WOODSTOCK. 

PROV. OF NOVA SCOTIA 
AMHERST, 

BRIDGEWATEP, 
CANSO, 

GLACE BAY, 
HALIFAX, 

North End 
LUNENBURG. 
MAHONE BAY, 
PORT HOOD, 
SYDNEY, 
\YOLFYILLE, 
YARMOUTH, 

NORTHWEST PROVINCES 
AI.TOXA. Man. 
HKA.NDON. Man. 
CALGARY. Alta. 
EDMONTON. Ak:i. 
INDIAN HEAD, Sask. 



.NORTHWEST PROVINCES 

Confint utl. 

LETHBRIDGK, Alta. 
OAK VI I. I.E. M.m. 
PORTAGE LA PRAIRIE. Man. 
RAYMOND. Alta. 
REGINA, Sask. 
ROSICNKELD, Man. 
SASKATOON. Sask. 
WINNIPEG. Man. 

Fort Rouse 
" Logan Ave. 

PROV. OF BRITISH CULL MBU 
\RMSTRONG. 
CHILLIWACK, 
ENDERBY, 
GREENWOOD, 
K BLOWN A. 
NELSON, 
NEW DENVER. 
N. WESTMINSTER 
NICOLA. 
ROSSLAND, 
SUMMERLAND, 
VANCOUVER, 

Westminster Ave. 

VERNON, 

VICTORIA. 



IN NEWFOUNDLAND: 

ST. JOHN S 

BIRCHV COVE, BAY OF ISLANDS 



..BANK OK MONTREAL. 
..BANK OF MONTREAL. 



IN GREAT BRITAIN: 
LONDON, BANK OF MONTREAL, 46-47 Throadiu-ecIIe Street, E.C F. \V. TAYLOR, Manager. 

IN THE UNITED STATES: 

R. V. HEBDEN, ^ 
NEW YORK, W. A. Boo, j- Agents, 31 Pine Street. 

J. T. MOLINEUX, J 

CHICAGO, BANK OF MONTREAL, J. M. GREATA, Manager. 
SPOKANE, WASH., BANK OF MONTREAL 

IN MEXICO: 
MEXICO, D. F T. S. C. SAUNDERS, Manager. 

BANKERS IN GREAT BRITAIN: 



LONDON, THE BANK OF ENC.LAND. 

THE UNION or LONDON- AND SMITH S BANK, LTD. 
" THE LONDON AND WESTMINSTER BANK, LTD. 
" THE NATIONAL PROVINCIAL BANK OF KNG., LTD. 



LIVERPOOL, THE BANK OF LIVERPOOL, LTD. 

( TIIK BRITISH LINEN COMPANY BANK, AND 
SCOTLAND, BRANCHES 



NEW 



BANKERS IN THE UNITED STATES: 
YORK, THE NATIONAL CITY BANK. BOSTON, THE MERCHANTS NATIONAL BANK. 

TIIK BANK OF NEW YORK, N.B.A. BUFFALO, 

" NATIONAL BANK OF COMMERCE IN NEW YORK. SAN FRANCISCO, 



NATIONAL PARK BANK. 



THE MARINE NATL. BANK, BUFFALO. 
THE FIRST NATIONAL BANK. 



THE ANGLO-CALIFORNIAN BANK, LTD. 






JH^ftifeL 





M & ill 

u il i i i i i i 

. i L ill! 
^ 3l ii 

fc ttj*ji!i 

^ejli^-^ 



THE MORTIMER CO. 

LIMITED 



ILLUSTRATORS 
PHOTO-ENGR A VE RS 
PRINTERS 
LITHOGRAPHERS 
BOOKBINDERS 



TWO PLANTS 

OTTAWA MONTREAL 



ADAMS BROS. 
HARNESS MFG. CO. 



LIMITED 



MANUFACTURERS OF 

All kinds of Harness 
Saddles, Collars 
Horse Clothing and 
Saddlery Hardware 



ALSO MANUFACTURERS OF 

All kinds of Military 
Saddles & Equipments 



TOKONTO AND WINNIPEG- 



A. ZIMMERMAN & Co., 



NAVAL PATTERN CAPS, 
SWORDS, SAM BROWNE BELTS, 

AND ALL KINDS OF 

MiLiTA-fY EQUIPMENT & TRIMMINGS 

ALWAYS ON HAND. 
Price List and Estimates on Application. 



High- Class Civil and Military Tailors 
and Breeches Makers ==^= = 



38 James St. North, HAMILTON, Can. 
THE BOILER INSPECTION AND INSURANCE COMPANY 

OF CANADA 

Q Issues Policies of Insurance covering All Loss of Property as well 

as damage resulting from Loss of Life and Personal Injuries due 

to Steam Boiler Explosions. 

Its folicies are guaranteed by The Hartford Steam "Boiler Inspection and Insurance Co. 

Combined Assets amount to $4,111,092.27 Surplus Cor Benefit of Policyholders $2,053,705.89 

Head Office : CANADA LIFE BUILDING TORONTO. ^SS^te^STfe^SBST* 



The John Whitfield Company 



JOHN WHITFIELD, Manager 



Engine Builders & Machinists 



{Main 2099 



PACKING HOUSE AND ABATTOIR MACHINERY 
AND SUPPLIES. 



Hydrants, Valves, Bridge Bolts, and every Description of Iron Work for Builders. 
Fire Escapes, Malt Kiln Floors, Chains and Mining Drills. Whitfield Stump Extractor 



SPECIAL MACHINERY MADE 
AND REPAIRED. 



1 76 Front Street East, TORONTO. 




s the "Best 
15 here ij> 



THE MITCHELL RIFLE SIGHT 

Gives Full Satisfaction because it is true and easily set 

This SIGHT enjoys world-wide endorsation 

A BOOKLET IS YOURS FOR THE ASKINO 

Canada Arms and Rifle Sights Limited, 

Confederation Life Building, 

TORONTO, Ont. 













: 



: 
* 



1 

: 



* 

m 





THE 


RO55 


RIFLE 





The history of the adoption of the Ross Rifle as the arm of the Canadian Militia 
reflects great credit on Sir Frederick Borden and his advisers. 
f Why it was adopted has been told by Sir Frederick in the House of Commons and 
again at the recent Colonial Conference in London, when the subject of Imperial 
defence came up for discussion. Briefly, Sir Frederick had on occasion found it 
impossible to obtain a sufficient supply of Loe-Knfields from England. He did 
his best to induce one of the English factories to establish a branch in Canada for 
the manufacture of the Lee-Enfields, but failed. He then resolved to use a rifle 
of Canadian make. This resolution led to the adoption of the Ross Rifle, and to 
the erection of the extensive plant at Quebec for its manufacture. 
(The fact that the Ross Rifle fires the same .303 ammunition as the Lee-Enfield 
was no doubt an important consideration with Sir Frederick and his advisers. 
Another consideration of probably greater importance was stated by him at the 
conference in these words: "The maintenance of the Empire rests primarily on 
supremacy at sea, " and in that connection 1 would like to submit the advisability 




::::-**************-:;-: ::*************: ; : ..::;- :::::: : I: ::-::::-************!* 

* s, 

S it 

* m 

* m 





THE ROSS RIFLE 




m 

m 

: 

* 
m 



* 
t. 



t lie necessity perhaps for the establishment in the different dominions of 
factories, which shall he able to manufacture arms, etc., and which will thus 
render those comniunilies safer in the event of the sea, control being temporarily 
lost by Kngland. 

HThis weighty view was approved by .Mr. Deaken, of Australia. .Moreover, it 
was in accordance with the opinion of the Imperial authorities who stated in a 
paper on the Kquipmenf of Colonial Forces, that it is most desirable that the area 
of supply of warlike appliance.- should be as wide as possible, and therefore Colonial 
< iovernments should be urged to arrange for local manufacture and provision 
rather than rely on the resources of the United Kingdom. 

The arm adopted was no untried experiment. In 1S95, Sir Charles Ross commen 
ced to take out a series of patents throughout the world on a, straight pull breech 
mechanism. Later this system was adopted by the Austrian Government under 
the name of the "System Maunlicher," and all the military forces of the Austrian 
Kinpire armed with this weapon. 



i 

!*] 

m 



- 





:: 



i 

- 
: 



: : 




ffl 
m 
m 
m 
m 
m 
m 




THE ROSS RIFLE 





* 

.: 
:: 



- 

: 



IfA most exhaustive scries of tests of the rifle was made by a Board convened for 
that purpose by the Minister of Militia, consisting of Colonel W. I). Otter, President : 
Members. Colonial ,1. M. Gibson; Lieutenant-Colonel \V. I . Anderson: Lieutenant- 
Colonel Sam Hughes. M.P.. and Major F. M. (lauclet. who reported in favour of 
the Ross Rifle and suggested certain modifications which, in their opinion, were 
desirable in an arm to meet the special requirements of the Canadian service. 
IThe results of this far sighted policy are just beginning to lie seen and appreciated 
by the country at large who have seen the clamor of adverse criticism, always 
accompanying the introduction of a new arm. subside and give way before the 
growing popularity of the rifle with the militia. 

^Instructions in musketry practice are reporiing increased rate of progress towards 
efficiency by their classes resulting from the use of the new rifles. It is established 
that twice as many shots may be put on a target with the straight pull Ross Rifle 
as can be delivered from the rifle that preceded it. as a result of the rapidity with 
which the magazine can be filled and the breech mechanism operated by the 
soldier while in the firing position. 




* 
* 



:: 

- . 






-: 



I 

:: 
:< 


* 
* 







m 





THE ROSS RIFLE 





! 



IBut the great increase in military strength gained by Canada by the adoption 
of this formidable weapon is of only secondary importance to the advantage 
obtained by establishing within her borders a most complete and modern plant 
for the production of this most important of warlike material. Situated in Quebec, 
on the historic Plains of Abraham, and defended by the guns of that most impreg 
nable fortress in America a large plant has been established for the manufacture of 
smalt arms. This establishment is complete in every respect, performing; every 
one of the thousand and one operations required to convert raw steel and wood 
into the highest type of magazine rifle. A large factory filled with marvellous 
automatic machinery and precision tools operated by a force of skilled Canadian 
artizans who have been specially trained to carry on this work. 







m ffl 

m u 

m * 

* m 



BE 

n 

n 
n 

n n 

B 

* 



Held in Reserve for Ross Rifle Company 







m mm^ * : : : - | , , mw^^^m^^* -. 

i#i 
.. 

i*j 
an 



Held in Reserve for Ross Rifle Company 



- 









* 

:: 



:: 
:: 

m 




:: 
- 



Held in Reserve for Ross Rifle Company 





* 
f. 



Held in Reserve for Ross Rifle Company 




s * s s 
* 
* * 



* ffl 

ffl 

m i 

n 

* * 

a 1 



i 

i . i 

ffl ffl 

i 

ffl a 

ffl a 



* 

H 

m 



Held in Reserve for Ross Rifle Company 



:: 
:: 



H ffl 

ffl M 

ffl ffl 

ffl m 

m 

ffl m 

ffl 1 

m 

* 

* 

8 

: 

1 

ffl a 

I S 

I 

B BH 

ffl m 



I 
| 

I ffl 

| 

1 

1 
* 



Held in Reserve for Ross Rifle Company 




m 

H 




- . -- - - H 

m 

m ffl 

m m 

m 38 

en a 

n * 

n ffl 

* B 
SB ffl 
a a 
a ffl 
a ffl 
m ffl 

88 ffl 

*, s 

* ffl 

* 

* L_"J 

* H 

a ffl 

B ffl 



! 

1